V'*^''V "V'^^'^y" %'*»T«'^0' ♦ 4» .^^\ .<^^ O N O ^ X>. O H O * .0 « ^ o o " ' -» <^ ^^^<^ >^^^^ 4CL 1 "^ w o <. -: A-* n M ft -^ IBP Invasion of Julius Cc^sar, Vortigern and Rowena. HUMS AITB SBZOIiXiET'S CELEBRATED HISTORY OF ENGLAND, FROM ITS FIRST SETTLEMENT TO THE YEAR 1780. ACCURATELY AND IMPARTIALLY ABRIDGED. AND A CONTINUATION FROM THAT PERIOD TO THE CORONATION OF GEORGE IV. July 19, 1821. EMBRACING A Period of nearly Two Thousand Years, BY REV. JOHN ROBINSON, D.D. Author of a Gramirar of History, ArchaBoIogia GrjBca, Ancient and Modern History for the Use of Schools, and a Theological Dictionary. nimtrated by twenty-four pages of Engravings TOGETHER WITH AN APPENDIX, CONTAINING THE SUCCESSION OF SOVEREIGNS — EMINENT AND REMARKABLE PERSONS WHO HAVE FLOURISHED IN BRITAIN BATTLES IN ENGLISH HISTORY, BY SEA AND LAND, FROM 1588 TO 1806— IMPROVEMENTS AND INVENTIONS DISCOVERIES AND SETT- LING OF BRITISH COLONIES. NEWYORK: PUBLISHED BY ROBINSON, PRATT, & CO., 63 WALL STREET ; AND SOLD BY THE PRINCIPAL BOOKSELLERS THROUGHOUT THE UNITED STATES, 18437 ■0- •\9> TO HIS SONS, WILLIAM RICHARDSON ROBINSON, AND iVIATTHEW WILKINSON ROBINSON. THIS VOLUME OF ENGLISH HISTORY IS SPECIALLY INSCRIBED, BY THEIR AFFECTIONATE FATHER. Cliflon Rectory^ 7iear Penrith, MarcJt 15, 1823. '^^vt^a-^ ■ f'- -y ' ^ R" s^ V pimrj^os. The following work claims no higher merit than that of being a faithful abridgment of Hume and Smol- let's Histories of England, with a continuation .from au- thentic documents of events between the year 1760 and the coronation of George the Fourth. The author hopes that the whole will prove useful as a manual to juvenile students, for whom it is chiefly designed. The necessity of acquiring knowledge of the history of our own country, and of public events in which Great Britain has participated, is so obvious, as to render it unnecessary to prove, that the history of their own coun- try is a study which no British youth of either sex ought to neglect. The author has endeavoured to devest himself of all party spirit, and, in recording the successive facts, he has allowed no prejudices of his own to intermingle with the narration. Truth, and the principles of the British constitution, have been the standards by which his labours and sentiments have uniformly been guided. The history of Mr. Hume having obtained an unri- valled degree of literary precedency, and that of Dr. Smollet having been generally recognised as a worthy continuation from the Revolution to the demise of George H., it is reasonable that a succinct compression of these standard national works should be preferred to all others for purposes of education. But the design would have been incomplete without a continuation to IV PREFACE. the present age ; and, though the author is aware of the delicate responsibility of becoming a contemporary histo- rian, yet, as the duty became necessary, he has endea- voured to perform it with care and fidelity. The tables and facts contained in the Appendix form new features of such a work as the present ; but they furnish data, from which the student will be able to draw many valuable conclusions, and will tend to illus- trate and corroborate many details in the text of the History. I'HE HISTORY OF ENGLAND. CHAP. I. The Britons — Romans — Saxons — The Heptarchy. All ancient writers agree in representing the first in habitants of Britain as a tribe of the Gauls or Celts, who peopled that island from the neighbouring continent. Theii ianguage was the same — their manners, their government, iheir superstition ; varied only by those small differences, which time, or a communication with the bordering na- tions, must necessarily introduce. The inhabitants of Gaul, especially in those parts which lie contiguous to Italy, had acquired, from a commerce witli their southern neigiibours, some refinement in the arts, which gradually diiiuLed themselves northward, and spread only a very faint light over this island. The Greek and Roman navi- gatoi<5 or merchants, gave the most shocking accounts of the fi;rocity of the people, which they magnified, as usual, in order to excite the admiration of their countrymen. However, the south-east parts of Britain had already, be- fore the age of Ceesar, made the first and most requisite step towards a civil settlement ; and the Britons, by tillage and agriculture, had there increased to a great multitude. The other inhabitants of the island still maintained them- selves by pasture. They were clothed with the skins of beasts. They dwelt in huts that they reared in the forests and marshes, with which the country was covered. They easily removed their habitation, when actuated either by the hopes of plunder, or the fear of an enemy. The conve- nience of feeding their cattle was even a sufficient motive for removing their dwellings; and, as they were ignorant of all the refinements of life, their wants and their pos- sessions were equally limited and scanty. The Britons were divided into many small nations or tribes ; and being a military people, whose sole property I* HISTORY Of ENGLaNO. was their arms and their cattle, it was impossible, after they had acquired a relish of liberty, for their princes or chieftains to establish any despotic authority over them. Their governments, though monarchical, were free ; and the common people seem to have enjoyed even more liber- ty among them, than among the nations of Gaul, from whom they were descended. Each state was divided into factions within itself. It was agitated with jealousy or ani- mosity against the neighbouring states ; and while the arts of peace were yet unknown, wars were the chief occupa- tion, and formed the chief object of ambition among the people. The religion of the Britons was one of the most consi- derable parts of their government; and the Druids, who were their priests, possessed great authority. They en- joyed an immunity from wars and taxes. They possessed both the civil and criminal jurisdiction. They decided all cns ; and whoever refused to submit to their decree, ^'i as exposed to the most severe penalties. Thus the bands )f government, which were naturally loose among that rude and turbulent people, were happily corroborated by the terrors of their superstition. No species of superstition was ■ ver more terrible than that of the Druids. Besides the evere penalties which it was in their power to inflict in his world, they inculcated the eternal transmigration of iouls, and thereby extended their authority as far as the fears of their votaries. Human sacrifices were practised among them. The spoils of war were often devoted to their divinities ; and they punished with the severest tor- tures those who dared to secrete any part of the conse- crated offering. These treasures they kept in woods and forests, secured by no other guard than the terrors of their religion; and this steady conquest over human cupidity, may be regarded as more signal than their prompting men to the most extraordinary and most violent efforts. No idolatrous worship ever attained such an ascendancy ovei mankind, as that of the ancient Gauls and Britons. The Britons had long remained in this rude and inde- pendent state, when Csesar, having overrun all Gaul by his victories, and being ambitious of carrying the Roman arms into a new world, then mostly unknown, took advan- taf?e of a short interval ni his Gaulic wars, and invaded THE BRITONS. / Britain. The natives, informed oi his intention^ were sen- sible of the unequal contest, and endeavoured to appease him by submissions ; but these retarded not the execution of his design. After some resistance, Cssar land- ed, as is supposed, at Deal ; and having obtained l,- * several advantages over the Britons, and obliged them to promise hostages for their future obedience, he was constrained, by the necessity of his affairs, and the approach of winter, to withdraw his forces into Gaul. The Britons, relieved from the terror of his arms, neglected the performance of their stipulations ; and that haughty conqueror resolved next summer to chastise them for this breach of treaty. He landed with a greater force ; and though he found a more regular resistance from the Bri- tons, who had united under Cassivelaunus, one of their petty princes, he discomfited them in every action. He advanced into the country ; passed the Thames in the face of the enemy ; took and burned the capital of Cassivelau- nus ; established his ally, Mandubratius, in the sovereignty of the Trinobantes ; and having obliged the inhabitants to make him new submissions, he again returned with his army into Gaul, and left the authority of the Romans more nominal than real in this island. The civil wars which ensued saved the Britons from t] yoke which was ready to be imposed upon them. Aiig\ tus, the successor of Caesar, content with the victory c tained over the liberties of his own country, was little ai bitious of acquiring fame by foreign wars. Tiberius, ygealous of the fame which might be acquired by his gene- rals, made this advice of AugTistus a pretence for his inac- tivity. The mad sallies of Caligula, in which he menaced Britain with an invasion, served only to expose himself and the empire to ridicule ; and the Britons, during almost a century, enjoyed their liberty unmolested. In the reign of Claudius, the Romans began to think seriously of re- ducing them under their dominion. Without seeking any justifiable reason of hostility, they sent over an army under the command of Plautius, an able general, '^'^' who gained some victories, and made a considera- ble progress in subduing the inhabitants. Claudius him- self, finding matters sufficiently prepared for his reception, made a journey into Britain, and received the submission of several British states, the Cantii, Atrebates, Regni, and HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Triiiobantes, who inhabited the south-east parts of the island. The other Britons, under the command of Carac- tacus, still maintained an obstinate resistance ; and the Romans made little progrtss against them, till Ostorius Scapula was sent over to command their armies. This general advanced the Roman conquests over the Aq * Britons ; pierced into the country of the Silures, a v/arlike nation, who inhabited the banks of the Se- vern ; defeated Caractacus in a great battle ; took him prisoner, and sent him to Rome, vvhere his magnanimous behaviour procured him better treatment than the Romans usually bestowed on captive princes. Notwithstanding these misfortunes, the spirit of the Bri- tons was not subdued. In the reign of Nero, Suetonius Paulinus was invested with the command, and penetrated into the island of Mona, now Anglesey, the chief seat of the Druids. He drove the Britons off the field, burned the Druids in those fires wliich the priests had prepared for their captive enemies, and destroyed all the consecra- ted groves and altars. Having thus triumphed over the religion of the Britons, Suetonius expected that his future progress would be easy, in reducing the people to subjec- tion. But the Britons, headed by Boadicea, queen of the Icena, who had been treated in the most ignominious manner by the Roman tribunes, attacked with success several settlements of their insulting conquerors. London, which was already a flourisliing Roman colony, was re- duced to ashes ; and the Romans and all strangers, to the number of seventy thousand, were massacred by the exas- perated natives. Their fate, however, was soon after avenged by Suetonius, in a bloody and decisive battle, in which eighty thousand Britons are said to have perished ; and Boadicea, rather than submit to the victor, put an end to her life by poison. Julius Agricola, who governed Britain in the reigns of Vespasian, Titus, and Domitian, formed a regTilar "^Ai^* plan for subduing this island, and rendering the acquisition useful to the conquerors. He carried his victorious arms northwards ; defeated the Britons in eveiy encounter; pierced the forests and mountains of Caledonia ; and reduced every state to subjection in the southern parts of the island. Having fixed a chain of forts between the friths of Clvde and Forth, he secured THE ROMANS. *-\ the Roman province from the incursions of its ferocious neighbours. During these military enterprises, Agricola did not ne- glect the arts of peace. He introduced laws and arts among the Britons; taught them to value the conve- niences of life ; reconciled them to the Roman language and manners ; instructed them in letters and science ; and endeavoured to render their chains easy. By this conduct, the inhabitants gradually acquiesced in the do- minion of their masters. To secure the Roman province from the irruptions of the Caledonians, Adrian built a rampart between the river Tyne and the frith of Solway : this was strengthened with new fortifications by Severus ; and during the reigns of the other Roman emperors, such a profound tranquility prevailed in Britain, that little mention is made of the affairs of that island by any historian. The natives, dis- armed, dispirited, and submissive, had lost even the idea of their former independence. But the Roman empire, which had diffused slavery and oppression, together with a knowledge of the arts, over a considerable part of the globe, approached its dissolution. Italy, and the centre of the empire, removed, during so many ages, from all concern in the wars, had entirely lost its military spirit, and were peopled by an enervated race, equally ready to submit to a foreign yoke, or to the ty- ranny of their own rulers. The northern barbarians assail- ed all the frontiers of the Roman empire. Instead of arm- ing the people in their own defence, the emperors recalled all the distant legions, in whom alone they could repose confidence. Britain being a remote province, and not much valued by the Romans, the legions that defended it were employed in the protection of Italy and Gaul ; and that island, secured by the sea against the inroads of tlie greater tribes of barbarians, found enemies on its frontiers, ready to take advantage of its defenceless situation. "The Picts, who were a tribe of the British race driven northwards by the arms of Agricola, and the Scots, who were supposed to have migrated from Ireland, pierced the rampart of Adrian, no longer defended by the Roman arms, and ex- tended their ravages over the fairest part of the country. The Romans, reduced to extremities at home, and fatigued with distant expeditions, informed the Britons tliat they aO history of ENGLAND. must no longer look on them for succour ; exhorted thera to arm in their own defence; and urged them to protect by their valour their ancient independence. Accordingly, the Romans took a final adieu of Britain, after having been masters of the best portion of it nearly four centuries. The abject Britons of the south, unaccustomed to the ^ ^ perils of war and the cares of civil government, ^^g* found themselves incapable of resisting the incur- sions of their fierce and savage neighbours. The Picts and Scots now regarded the whole of Britain as theii prey ; and the ramparts of the northern wall proved only a weak defence against the attacks of those barbarians. The Britons in vain implored the assistance of the Romans, in an epistle to ^Etius the patrician, which was inscribed, \*' The Groans of the Britons." .The tenor of the epistle was suitable to the superscription : " The barbarians," say they, " on the one hand drive us into the sea, the sea, on the other, throws us back on the barbarians ; and we have only the hard choice left us, of perishing by the sword or by the waves." The Romans, however, at this time pressed by Attila, the most terrible enemy that ever assailed the empire, were unable to attend to the com- plaints of their allies. The Britons, reduced to despair, and attending only to the suggestions of their own fears, and to the counsels of Vortigern, the powerful prince of Dumnonium, rashly invited the protection of the Saxons. The Saxons had been for some time regarded as one of the most warlike tribes of Germany, and had A4Q become the terror of the neighbouring nations. * They had spread themselves from the northern parts o1^ Germany, and had taken possession of all the sea- coast from the mouth of the Rhine to Jutland. Hengist and Horsa, two brothers, who were the reputed descend- ants of the god Woden, commanded the Saxons at this period. These leaders easily persuaded their countiymen to accept of the invitation of the Britons, and to embrace an enterprise in Avhich they might display their valour and gi-atify their desire of plunder. They embarked their troops in three vessels, and transported to the shores of Britain sixteen hundred men, who landed in the isle of Thanet, and attacked with confidence and success the northern invaders. Hengist and Horsa, perceiving, from their easy victoiy THE feAXONS. II over the Scots and Picts, with what faciUty they might subdue the Britons themselves, determined to fight and conquer for their own grandeur, and not for the defence of their allies. They sent intelligence to Saxony of tiie riches and fertility of Britain ; and their representations procured for them a reinforcement of five thousand men* The Saxons formed an alliance with the Picts and Scots, whom they had been invited to resist, and proceeded to open hostility against the English, whom they had enga- ged to protect. The Britons, roused to indignation against their treache- rous allies, took up arms ; and having deposed Vortigern, who had become odious for his vices, and for the bad suc- cess of his counsels, they put themselves under the com- mand of his son Vortimer. They ventured to mee. their perfidious enemies, and though generally defeated, one l3attle was distinguished by the death of Horsa, who left the sole command in the hands of his brother, Hengist. This active general, reinforced by his countrymen, still advanced to victory ; and, being chiefly anxious to spread the terror of his arms, he spared neither age, sex, nor con- dition. Great numbers of Britons, to avoid his cruelty or avarice, deserted their native country, and passed over to the continent, where, in the province of Armorica, they were received by a people of the same language and manners, and gave to the country the name of Brittany. The British writers say, that the love of Vortigern for Rowena, the daughter of Hengist, was one cause that facilitated the entrance of the Saxons into this island ; and that Vortigern, who had been restored to the throne, accepted of a banquet from Hengist at Stonehsnge, where three hundred of his nobility were treacherously slaugh- tered, and himself detained a captive. But these accounts are not sufficiently corroborated. After the death of Vortimer, Ambrosius was invested with the supreme command over the Britons, and united them in their resistance to the Saxons. Hengist, however, maintained his ground in Britain. H3 invited into this island another tribe of Saxons, under the command of his brother Octa, and of Ebissa, the son of Octa, whom he settled in Northumberland ; and he founded the kingdom of Kent, comprehending Kent, Middlesex, Essex, and part of Surry, which he bequeathed to his posterity. l'^ IIISTORV OF ENGLAND. The success of Hengist alliiied new swarms from the iiorlhern coasts of Germany. The southern Britons gra- dually receded before the invaders, into Cornwall and Wales ; and vElla, a Saxon chief, founded the kingdom of South Saxony, comprising Sussex, and that portion of Surry wliich Hengist had not occupied. The kingdom of the West Saxons, or of Wessex, was founded by Cerdic, and his son Kenric, in Hampshire, Dor- setshire, Wiltshire, Berkshke, and the Isle of Wight ; but it was not till after many a bloody conflict, that these ad- venturers enjoyed in peace the harvest of their toils. They were opposed by Arthur, prince of the Silures, whose he- roic valour suspended the declining fate of his country, antl whose name has been celebrated by Taliesin and the other British bards. The military achievements of this prince have been blended with fiction : but it appears from incontestible evidence, that both in personal and mental powers he excelled the generality of mankind. Whilst the Saxons thus established themselves in the south, great numbers of their countrymen, under several leaders, landed on the east coast of Britain. In the year 575, IJfFa assumed the title of king of the East Angles ; in 585, Crida, that of Mercia ; and, about the same time, Fa'kemvint, that of the East Saxons. This latter kingdimi was dismembered from that of Kent, and comprehended Essex, Middlesex, and part of Hertfordshire; that of the East Angles, Cambridgeshire, Suffolk, and Norfolk ; Mer- cia was extended over all the middle countries, from the banks of the Severn to the frontiers of those two kingdoms. Though the Saxons had been settled in Northumberland soon after the landing of Hengist, yet they met with so miich opposition from the inhabitants, that none of their princes for a long time assumed the appellation of king. In 547, Ida, a Saxon prince, who boasted his descent from Woden, and who had brought other reinforcements fi-om Germany, subdued all Northumberland, the bishopric of Durham, and some of the south-east counties of Scotland. About the same time, .Ella, another Saxon prince, having conquered Lancashire, and the greater part of Yorkshire, received the appellation of king of Deira. These two kingdoms were united in the person of Ethelfrid, grand- son of Ida, who married Acca, the daughter of vElla ; and THE H!:PTARCny. 13 oXpellmg his brother-in-law, Edwin, he assumed the title of king' of Northumberland. Thus was established, after a violent contest of nearly a hundred and fifty years, the Heptarchy, or seven Saxon kingdoms, in Britain ; under wliicli the whole southern part of the island, except Wales and Cornwall, in a great measure mixed its inhabitants, and changed its language, customs, and political institutions. The Britons, under the Roman dominion, had made such progress in the arts and civilization, that they had built twenty-eight consider- able cities, besides a great number of villages and country- seats ; but the Saxons, by whom they were subdued, re- stored the ancient barbarity, and reduced to the most ab- ject slavery those few natives vrho were not either massa- cred, or expelled their habitations. After the Britons vrere confined to Cornwall and Wales, and no longer disturbed the conquerors, the alliance be- tween the princes of the Heptarchy was in a great mea- sure dissolved. Dissentions, wars, and revolutions among themselves, were the natural consequence. At length, nearly four hundred years after the first arrival of the Saxons in Britain, all the kingdoms of the Heptar- chy were united in one gi'eat state, under Egbert, ok-y* whose prudence and policy effected what had been often in vain attempted.* His territories were nearly of the same extent with what is now properly called Eng- land ; and prospects of peace, security, and increasing refinement, were thus afforded. The Saxons at this period seem not to have thuch ex- celled their German ancestors in arts, civilization, huma- nity, justice, or obedience to the laws. Christianity had not hitherto banished their ignorance, nor softened the ferocity of their manners ; credulity and superstition had accompanied the doctrines received through the corrupted channels of Rome ; and the reverence towards saints and relicks seemed almost to have supplanted the adoration of the Supreme Being. Monastic observances w^ere es- teemed more meritorious than the active virtues ; the uni- versal belief in miraculous interpositions superseded the knowledge of natural causes ; and bounty to the church atoned for every violence against society. The sacerdotal habit was the only object of respect. Hence the nobility preferred the security and sloth of the cloister to the tumult 2 14 HISTORY OF ENGLANO. and glory of war, and endowed monasteries of which th» ^ assumed the government. Hence also the kings, impove- rished by continual benefactions to the churcli, were neither able to bestow rewards on valour or military services, nor retained sufficient influence to «iupport their government. Another inconvenience which attended this corrupt spe cies of Christianity, was tiie superstitious attachment to Rome. The Saxons were taught by the monks a profound reverence for the holy see ; and kings, abdicating their crowns, sought a secure passport to Jieaven at the feet of the Roman pontiff. The successors of St. Peter, encou- raged by the blindness and submissive disposition of the people, advanced every day in their encroachments on the independence of the English church. In the eighth cen- tury, Wilfrid, bishop of Lindisfe^ne, the sole prelate of the Northumbrian kingdom, increased this subjection by an appeal to Rome against the decisions of an English synod. Wilfrid thus laid the foundation of the papal pretensions, which we shall find in the sequel were carried to the most disgraceful heights, and submitted to with a patience al- most incredible. CHAP. n. From tlie Union of the Kingdoms of the Heptarchy under Egbert, to the Norman Conquest. The kingdoms of the Heptarchy appeared to be firmly united in one state under Egbert ; and this union c^ryj' promised future tranquility to the inhabitants of ' Britain. But these flattering hopes were soon over- cast oy ti\e appearance of the Danes. The emperor Char- lemagne had been induced to exercise great severities in Germany ; and the more warlike of the natives, to escape the fury of his persecutions, had retired into Jutland. From that northern extremity they invaded France, which was exposed by the dissentions of the posterity of Char- lemagne. Designated by the general name of Normans, which they received from their northern situation, they became a terror to the maritime, and even to the inland countries. In their predatoiy excursions they were tempt- ed to visit England, and in their hostilities made no distinction between the French and English na- 'jgj tions. After an unsuccessful attempt on Northum- berland, they landed on the isle of Shepey, which they EGBERT ETHEL WOLF. 1 5 plundered with impunity. The next year they disem- barked in Dorsetshire from thirty-five ships, and were encountered by Egbert at Ciiarmouth, where the Danes were defeated with great loss. They afterwards entered into an alliance with the Britons of Cornwall, and, in conjunction with their allies, made an inroad into Devon- shire, where they were met at Hingesdown by Egbert, and overthrown with considerable slaughter. The death of Egbert, whose prudence and valour had rendered him a terror to his enemies, revived the hopes of the Danes, and prompted them to new efforts. Ethelwolf, the son and successor of Egbert, pos- sessed neither the abilities nor the bravery of his ^Joq' father ; he was better qualified for a cloister than a throne. He commenced his reign with resigning to his eldest son, Athelstan, the' provinces of Essex, Kent, and Sussex. The domestic dissentions which this partition was calculated to occasion, was prevented by the terror excited by the Danes, whose inroads were felt through Hampshire, Suffolk, Norfolk, and Kent. In their course they carried off the goods, the cattle, and even the wretched inhabitants ; and then retiring to their vessels, they set sail to some distant quarter which was not prepared for their reception. Though often repulsed, and sometimes defeated, yet they could not be expelled. They established themselves in the isles of Thanet and Shepey, whence they constantly harassed and ravaged the adjacent coasts. The unsettled state of England did not prevent Ethel- wolf from making a pilgrimage to Rome, whither he car- ried his fourth and favourite son, Alfred, then only six years of age. He passed a twelvemonth at Rome, in ex- ercises of devotion, and failed not in liberality to the church. In his return home, he married Judith, the daugh- ter of the emperor Charles the bald ; but on his landing m England, he met with an opposition which he little ex- pected. Athelstan, his eldest son, had paid the debt of nature ; Ethelbald, his second, who had assumed the go- vernment, formed the project of excluding his father from a throne, for which his weakness and superstition little qualified him. E.thelwolf yielded in a great measure to the pretensions of his son : he retained the eastern, which were the least considerable, and ceded to Ethelbald the sove- reignty of the western districts of the kingdom. Ixnme 16 /^ HISTORY OP ENGLAND. diately after, he summoned the states of the whole king- dom, and, with the same facihty of disposition, not only granted to the priesthood a perpetual right to tithes, but exempted it from all imposts and burdens. Ethelwolf lived only two years after conferring this im- portant grant to the church. By his will he divi- ArJ" ded England between his two eldest sons, Ethelbald and Ethelbert ; the west being assigned to tlie for- mer and the east to the latter. Ethelbald was a profli- gate prince, who married Judith, his mother-in-law, and whose reign was short. His death united the whole go- vernment in the hands of Ethelbert, who during five years reigned with justice and prudence, and bequeathed the sceptre to his brother Ethered. Thougli Ethered defended himself with great braveiy, yet, during the whole of his reign, he enjoyed no Af>f*' tranquility from the Danes, who landed in East Anglia, penetrated into the kingdom of Northum- berland, and seized the city of York. Alfred, the younger brother, assisted Ethered in all his enterprises against the enemy. The Danes were attacked by the forces under Ethered and Alfred ; and being defeated in an action, they sought shelter within the walls of Reading. Thence they infested the neighbouring country. An action soon after ensued at Aston, in Berkshire, where the English, through the good conduct of Alfred, obtained a victory. Another battle was fought at Basing, where the Danes were more successful. Amidst these disorders, Ethered died of a wound which he had received, and transferred his kingdom and the care of its defence to the illustrious Alfred, who was then twenty-two yeai*s of age. Alfred gave early proof of his abilities, by which, in the most difficult times, he saved his country from ruin^ Q^l* Pope Leo the Third predicted his future greatness, by giving him the royal unction, when Alfred was on a visit to the Roman pontiff. Being indulged in youth ful pleastires, his education was much neglected ; but the recital of some Saxon poems awakened his native genius; and he applied himself with diligence and success to the study of the Latin tongue. From these elegant pursuits, however, he was early recalled by the danger of his coun- try. Scarcely had he buried his brother, when he was obliged to take the field, in order to oppose the Danes, who had seized Wilton,* and A^ere ravaging the surround- ing country. He gave them battle, and was at first suc- cessful ; but j)ursuing his advantage too eagerly, he was oppressed by the superiority of numbers, and obliged to relinquish the field. Alfred, however, was still formida- ble ; and though he was supported only by the West Saxons, he obliged his enemies to conclude a treaty, in which they solemnly swore to evacuate his territories. The oath was taken and violated with equal facility ; and the Danes, without seeking any pretence, attacked Alfred's army, which they routed, and, marching westward, took possession of Exeter. Alfred collected new forces, and exerted such vigour, that he fought eight battles in one year, and obliged the enemy to engage that they would settle in some part of England, and not suff*er more of their countrymen to enter the kingdom. Whilst Alfred ex- pected the execution of this treaty, another body of Danes landed in this island ; and collecting all the scattered troops of their countryiuen, they seized Chippenham, and extended their ravages over Wiltshire. This last event broke the spirits of the Saxons, and re- duced them to despair. They believed themselves aban- doned by Heaven to destmction. Some left their country, and retired into Wales, or fled beyond the sea ; others submitted to the conquerors, in hopes of appeasing their fury bv a servile obedience ; and Alfred was obliged to re- linquisn the ensigns of royalty, and to seek shelter in the meanest disguises, from the pursuit of his enemies. He concealed himself under the habit of a peasant, and for some time lived in the house of a neatherd, who had for- merly been entrusted with the care of his cows. In this humiliating situation, it is said that the wife of the neat- herd, ignorant of the condition of her royal guest, and obsei*ving him one day busy by the fire-side, in trimming his bow and arrows, desired him to take care oi some cakes which were toasting, while she was employed in other domestic concerns. However, Alfred, who^e thoughts were differently engaged, forgot the trust ; and the good woman, on her return, finding her cakes burnt, rated the king veiy severely, and upbraided him with neglecting what he was ready enough to eat. * The real situation of Wilton has been much disputed 2* is ( ^ HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Alfred, finding that success had rendered his enemies more remiss, collected some of his retainers. In the centre of a bog, formed by the stagnated waters of the Thone and Parret, in Somersetshire, he found two acres of firm ground, where he built a habitation, which he rendered secure by fortifications, and still more by the unknown and inaccessible roads that led to it. This place he called iEthelingay, or the Isle of Nobles ; and thence he made frequent and unexpected sallies on the Danes, who often felt the vigom* of his arm, but knew not from what quarter the blow came. In this insulated place he was informed that Oddune, earl of Devonshire, had routed and killed Hubba the Dane, who had besieged him in his castle ol Kinwith, near the mouth of the river Tau ; and that he had got possession of the enchanted standard, or reafen^ «'o called from containing the figure of a raven, which the Danes believed to have been interwoven by the three sis- ters of Hinguar and Hubba, with magical incantations, and to express by the motions of its wings the success or failure of any entei*prise. When Alfred was informed of this successful resistance, he left his retreat ; but before he would assemble his sub- jects in arms, he resolved to inspect the situation of the enemy. Under the disguise of a harper, he entered their camp; his music obtained for him a welcome reception, and introduced him into the tent of their prince Guthrum ; and he was witness during several days to the supine secu- rity of the Danes, and their contempt to the English. Encouraged by what he observed, he sent private emis- saries to the most considerable of his friends, and sum- moned them to meet him with their followers at Brixton, on the borders of Selwood Forest. The English having experienced that submission only increased the insolence and rapacity of their conquerors, repaired to the place of rendezvous with alacrity, and received with shouts of transport a monarch whom they had fondly loved, and whom they had long concluded to have been dead. Al- fred immediately led them against the Danes, who, sur- prised to see an army of English, fled after a faint resis- tance, and suffered greatly in the pursuit : tlie remnant that escaped, were besieged by the victors in a fortified camp ; and being reduced to extreinity by hunger, they implored the clemency of Alfred, whose prudence con- ALFRED. /^ 19 verted them from mortal enemies into faithful friends and confederates. He proposed to Guthrum and his followers to repeople the desolated parts of East Anglia and Nor- thumberland ; but he required from them as a pledge of their future sincerity, that they should embrace Christi- anity. The Danes complied ; and Guthrum received, as the adopted son of Alfred, the name of Athelstan. The success of this expedient seemed to correspond with Alfred's hopes : the greater part of the Danes settled peaceably in their new quarters ; the more turbulent pro- cm*ed subsistence by ravaging the coasts of France ; and England enjoyed for some years a state of tranquility. Alfred employed this period in establishing civil and mili- tary institutions, and in providing for the future defence of the island. He repaired the ruined cities ; built castles and fortresses ;- and established a regular militia. Sensible that the best means of defending an island is by a navy, he increased the shipping of his kingdom both in number and strength, and trained his subjects to maritime con flicts. He stationed his vessels with such judgment as continually to intercept the Danish ships either before or after they had landed their troops ; and by this means he repelled several inroads of the Danes. At length Hastings, the celebrated Danish chief, having ravaged all the provinces of France, along the Loire and the Seine, appeared off the coast of Kent with three hun- dred and thirty sail ; where the greater part of the Danes disembarked, and seized the fort of Apuldore. Hastings himself, with a fleet of eighty sail, entered the Thames, and fortifying Milton in Kent, spread his forces over the country, and committed the most dreadful ravages. Al- fred, on the first alarm of this descent, hastened with a chosen band to the defence of his people ; and collecting all the armed militia, he appeared in the field with a force superior to that of the enemy. The invaders, instead of increasing their spoil, were obliged to seek refuge in their fortifications. Tired of this situation, the Danes at Apul- dore suddenly left their encampment, and attempted to march towards the Thames, and to penetrate into the heart of the kingdom ; but Alfred, whose vigilance they could not escape, encountered and defeated them at Farnham. They fled to their ships, and escaped to Mersey in Essex, wheie they erected new works for their protection. Has- 20 ') HISTORY OF ENGLAND. tirgs attempted a similar movement at the same time, and vvitli the same success ; after leaving Milton, he was glad to find refuge at Bamflete, near the isle of Canvey, where he threw up fortifications for his defence. I'rom these invaders the attention of Alfred was soon distracted b.y another enemy. Guthrum was now dead ; and his followers, encouraged by the appearance of so great a body of their countrymen, revolted against the authority of Alfred. They embarked on board of two hundred and forty vessels, and appeared before Ex»eter, in the west of England. Alfred immedi&ttely marched to the west, and suddenly attacking them, defeated them, and pursued them to their sliips with great slaughter. In another attempt on the coast of Sussex, they were again repulsed, and some of their ships taken. Discouraged by these difficulties, they embarked, and returned to their settlements in Northumberland. In the mean time, the Danes in Essex, having quitted their retreat, and united their forces under the command of Hastings, ravaged the inland country. The English army left in London attacked the Danish intrenchments at Bamflete, overpowered the garrison, and carried ofi*the wife and two sons of Hastings. Alfred restored the cap- tives to the Danish chief, on condition that he should quit the kingdom, to which he readily assented. However, many of the Danes refused to follow Hastings. Great numbers of them seized and fortified Shobury, at the mouth of the Thames ; and leaving a garrison there, they marched to Boddington, in the county of Gloucester, where they were reinforced by the Welsh, and erected fortifications for their protection. Alfred surrounded them with his whole force. After having endured the extremi- ties of famine, they attacked the English, and a small number of them effected their escape ; but most of them being taken, they were tried at Winchester, and hanged as public robbers. This well-timed severity restored tranquility to Eng- land, and produced security to the government. Not only the East-Anglian and Northumberland Danes, but the Welsh, acknowledged the authority of Alfred. By pru- dence, by justice, and by valour, he had now established his sovereignty over all the southern parts of the island, from the English channel to the frontiers of Scotland ; ALFRED. U\ wUen, in the vigour of his age, and in the full possession of his faculties, he expired, after a glorious reign of twen- ty-nine years and a half, in which he had deservedly at- tained the appellation of Great, and the title of founder of the English monarchy. The character of Alfred, both in private and public life, is almost unrivalled in the annals of any age or nation. His virtues were so happily tempered together, and so justly blended, that each prevented the other from exceed- ing its proper boundaries. He reconciled the most enter- prising spirit with the greatest moderation ; the most se- vere justice with the gentlest lenity ; the highest capacity and inclination for science, with the most shining talents for action. His civil and his military virtues are almost equally the objects of our admiration ; and nature, also, as if so bright a production of her skill should be set in the fairest light, had bestowed on him every personal grace and accomplishment. The martial exploits of Alfred afford only an imperfect idea of his merit. His civil institutions, many of which still exist, and his encouragement of the arts and sciences, form the most prominent features of his reign. The vio- lence and rapacity of the Danes had subverted all order throughout England, and introduced the greatest anarchy and confusion. To provide a remedy for the evils which their licentiousness had occasioned, and to render the execution of justice strict and regular, Alfred divided the Idngdom into counties ; these he subdivided into hundreds, and the hundreds into tithings. Ten householders farmed a tithing, who were answerable for each other's conduct, and over whom a headborough or borsholder was appoint- ed to preside. Every man was obliged to register himself in some tithing ; and none could change his habitation without a certificate from the headborough of the tithing to which he belonged. When any person had been guilty of a crime, the head- borough was summoned to answer for him ; and if the headborough was unwilling to be surety for his appear ance, the criminal was committed to prison till his trial. If the criminal fled, either before or after finding sureties, the headborough and tithing w^ere exposed to the penalties of the law. Thirty-one days were allowed them for pro- ducing the criminal. If the time elapsed before they 22 HISTORY OF ENGLAND- could find him, the headborough and two other members of the tithing were obHged to appear, and together with three chief members of three neit,hbom'ing tithings, con- sisting of twelve in all, swear that the tithing was free from all privity both of the crime and of the escape of the crimi- nal. If the headborough could not produce such a num- ber of witnesses to their innocence,- the tithing was compel- led to pay a fine to the king. This institution obliged every man carefully to observe the conduct of his neigh- bours, and was a kind of surety for their behaviour. In the admin>3tration of justice, the headborough sum- moned his tithing to assist him in deciding any trivial difi'erence which occurred among the members. In affairs of greater moment, or in controversies between members of different tithings, the cause was brought before the hundred, which consisted of ten tithings, or one hundred families, and which was regularly assembled once in four weeks. In their method of decision we trace the origin of juries. Twelve freeholders were chosen, who, together with the presiding magistrate of that division, were sworn to administer impartial justice in the cause submitted to their jurisdiction. The county court, which met twice a year, and consist- ed of the freeholders of the county, was superior to that of the hundred, from which it received appeals. The bishop with the aldermen presided in it. The latter origi- nally possessed both the civil and military authority ; but Alfred, sensible that this conjunction of power might render the nobility dangerous, appointed a sheriff in each county, who was equal with the aldermen in his judicial function, and whose office also consisted in guarding the rights of the crown from violation, and in levying the fines. In default of justice in these courts, an appeal lay to the king in council ; but finding that his time would be entirely engrossed in hearing these appeals, Alfred took care to correct the ignorance or corruption of inferior magistrates, and to instruct his nobility in letters and laws. To guide them in the administration of justice, he framed a code of laws, which, though now lost, long sei-ved as the basis of English jurisprudence, and is generally deemed the origin of what is now denominated the common law. To encourage learning among his subjects was no less the* care of this illustrious prince. When he came to the ALFRED. 23 throne, he found the EngHsh sunk into the grossest igno- ranee. Alfred himself complains, that on his accession he did not know one person, south of the Thames, who could so much as interpret the Latin sei-vice ; and very few even in the northern parts who had reached that })itch of erudition. To supply this defect, he invited the most celebrated scholars from all parts of Europe ; he esta- blished schools ; and he founded, or at least revived, the university of Oxford, which he endowed with various privi- leges, revenues, and immunities. He enjoined by law^all freeholders possessed of two hides, or about two hundred acres of laud, to send their children to school for instruc- tion ; and he gave preferment, both in church and state, to such only as had made some proficiency in knowledge. However, the most effectual expedient employed by Alfred for the encouragement of learning, was his own example. He usually divided his time into three equal portions : one was employed in exercise and the refection of his body ; another, in the despatch of business ; and a third, in study and devotion. Sensible that the people were incapable of speculative instruction, he conveyed his morality by apologues, parables, stories, and apothegms, couched in poetry. He translated the fables of iEsop, the histories of Orosius and Bede, and Boethius on the consolation of Philosophy ; nor did he deem it derogatory from his high character of sovereign, legislator, warrior and politician, thus to lead the way in literary pursuits. This prince was also an encourager of the mechanical arts. He invited industrious foreigners to repeople his country, which had been desolated by the ravages of the Danes. He introduced and encouraged manufactures: he prompted men of activity to engage in navigation and commerce ; he appropriated a seventh part of his own revenue to rebuild the ruined cities, castles, palaces, and monasteries ; and such was the impression of his sagaci- ty and virtue, that he was regarded by foreigners, as well as by his own subjects, as one of the greatest princes tliat hadVppeared on the throne of the world. Of the two surviving sons of Alfred by his wife Ethels- ^ witha, the daughter of a Mercian earl, Ethelwald QQ-j * the younger inherited his father's passion for let- ters, and lived a private life ; but Edward the elder succeeded to the military talents as well as to the throne 24 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. of Alfred. Ethel wald, the consin-german of Edward, and son of Ethelbert, the elder brother of Alfred, insisted on a title to the throne preferable to that of Edward. Ethel- wald, however, was obliged to flee ; but connecting his interests with those of the Danes, he obtained the assist- ance of those freebooters, and returned. An action was fought near Bury, in which the Kentish men vigorously opposed the Danes, who lost their bravest leaders, and among the rest Ethelwald himself. The reign of Edward was an incessant but successful struggle against the North- umbrians, the East- Angles, and the Danes. lie gain d two signal victories at Telmsford and Naldon, compelled the Danes to retire into France, and obliged the East- An- gles to swear allegiance to him. After a :rbulent but successful reign of twenty-four years, his kingdom d 3- volved on Athelstan, his natural son. The mature age of Athelstan obtained for him the pre- ference over the legitimate children of Edward; q;^-,* and, amidst storms of civil conflict and foreign war, he proved himself not unworthy of it. He crushed Alfred, a powerful nobleman, who had conspired against him ; he entered Scotland with an army, and ex- torted the submission of Con'stantine its king ; he reduced to obedience tlie turbulent Northumbrians ; and he de- feated with considerable slaughter the Danes and Welsh. Athelstan was regarded as an able and active prince ; and the remarkable law which he enacted, that a merchant, who had made three long sea voyages, should be admitted to the rank of thane or gentleman, is a proof of great liberality of mind. He died at Gloucester, after a reign of sixteen years, and was succeeded by Edmund, his le- gitimate brother. The reign of Edmund was shon. and his death violent. He chastised the Northumbrians, who seized every %A^ opportunity of rebelling ; and he conquered Cum- berland from the Britons, and conferred it on Mal- colm, king of Scotland, on condition that he should do him homage for it, and protect the north from the incur- sions of the Danes. He perished by the hand of Leolf, a notorious robber, whom he had sentenced to banishment, and who presumed to enter the royal apartment. The king, enrasred at this insolence, ordered him to leave the room ; and on his refusing to obey, Edmund, naturally Edgar and Elfrida. Henry JL scourged at BeckeVs Tomb, ATHELSTAN — EDMUND-— EDREt). 25 choleric, seized him by the hair, when the ruf&an drew a dagger, and gave him a mortal wound. Edred, the brother and successor of Edmund, had no sooner ascended the throne, than he found it ne- cessary to oppose the incursions of the Northum- ^,^' brian Danes, and to oblige Malcolm, king of Scot- land, to renew his homage for the lands which he held in England* Edred though not destitute of courage, was an abject slave 1 j superstition; and he abandoned his consience to Dunstan, abbot of Glastonbury, who, under the appearance of sanctity, veiled the most violent ambition. Dunstan practised the most rigid austerity, and pre- tended to have frequent conflicts with the devil ; in one of which he seized the devil by the nose with a pair of red-hot pincers, and held him till the whole neighbour- hood resounded v/ith his bellowings. Supported by this affected character, Dunstan obtained an entire ascendancy over Edred, and was placed at the head of the treasury. Sensible that he owed his advancement to the austerity of his life, he became a partisan of the rigid monastic rules. The celibacy of priests was deemed meritorious by the church of Rome ; and the pope undertook to make all the clergy in the western world renounce the privilege of marrying. In England, Dunstan seconded his efforts, and introduced the reformation into the convents of Glas- tonbury and Abingdon ; but the secular clergy, who were numerous and rich, defended their privileges against this usurpation. During the ferment occasioned by these re- ligious controversies, Edred departed this life. The children of Edred being too young to bear the weight of government, the throne was filled by his gV^' nephew Edwy, who was adorned with a graceful person, and possessed the most promising virtues. Contrary to the advice of his wisest counsellors, he unfor- tunately married Elgiva, a beautiful princess of the royal blood, who was within the degrees of affinity prohibited by the canon law. This occasioned the invectives of the monks ; and the king found reason to repent his creating such dangerous enemies. On the day of his coronation, whilst his nobility were indulging in riot and disorder, Edwy retired from the noisy revelry of the table, to taste the pleasures of love with Elgiva. Dunstan, conjecturing the reason of the king's retreat, burst into the apartment, «3 26 ^ HISTORY OF ENULANB* and with every opprobrious epithet that could be applied to her sex, thrust the queen from her royal consort. To avenge this public insult, Edwy accused Dunstan of mal- versation in the treasury, and banished him the kingdom* But Dunstan's party were not inactive during his absence : they exclaimed against the impiety of the king and queen, and proceeded to still more outrageous acts of violence. Archbishop Odo, with a party of soldiers, seized the queen, burned her face with a hot iron, and forcibly car- ried her into Ireland. Edwy, finding himself unable to resist, was obliged to consent to his divorce. The un- happy Elgiva, attempting to return to her husband, was seized by the infernal Odo, who, with the malice of a de- mon, caused her to be hamstrung, of which she died a few days after, at Gloucester, in the sharpest torments. Not satiated with this horrible vengeance, the monks encouraged Edgar, the younger brother of Edwy, to aspire to the throne, and soon put him in possession of Mercia, Northumberland, and East-Anglia. Dunstan returned to England, to assist Edgar and his party; and, after Odo's death, was installed in the see of Canterbury. The un- happy Edwy was excommunicated, and pursued with un- relenting vengeance; but his death, which happened soon after, freed him from monki'sh persecution, and gave Ed- gar peaceable possession of the throne. Edgar discovered great abilities in the government oj the kingdom ; and his reign is one of the most for- tunate in Englisli histoiy. By his vigorous prepa- qitq* rations for war, he ensured peace ; and he awed equally the foreign and domestic Danes. The neigh- bouring sovereigns, the kings of Scotland, the princes of Wales, of the Isle of Man, of the Orkneys, and of Ireland, were reduced to pay him submission ; but the chief means by which he maintained his authority, was his assiduous yet forced respect to the fanatical and inhuman Dunstan and his kindred monks. These repaid his politic concessions by the highest panegyrics ; and Edgar has been represented by them not only as a consummate statesman and a great prince, but as a man of strict virtue, and even a saint. Nothing, how- ever, could more fully prove, that the praises bestowed on Ed2:ar, with respect to the sanctity of his life, were ex- aggerated and unmerited, than his immoral and licentious EDGAR. 27 conduct. He broke into a convent, carried off Editha, a nun, by force, and even committed violence on her per son. For this crime, Dunstan required him merely to abstain from wearing his crown during seven years. At Andover, too, Edgar, struck with the beauty of the daugh- ter of a nobleman, in whose house he lodged, unceremo- niously went to her mother, and desired that the young lady might pass that very night with hin^u The mother, knowing the impetuosity of the king's temper, pretended a submission to his w^ill ; but she secretly ordered a waiting- maid, named Elflede, to steal into the king's bed, after the company had retired to rest. The dawn of light disco- vered the deceit; but Edgar, well pleased with his com- panion, expressed no displeasure on account of the fraud ; and Elflede became his favourite mistress, until his crimi- nal marriage with Elfrida. This lady was daughter and heir of Olgar, earl of De- vonshire, and all England resounded with the praises of her beauty. The curiosity of Edgar was excited ; and he resolved to marry her, if he found her charms answerable to the report. He communicated his intentions to Athel- wold, his favourite, whom he deputed to bring him an au- thentic account of her person. Athelwold found that general report had not exaggerated the beauty of Elfrida ; and being smitten with her charms, he determined to sa- crifice to his love for her the fidelity which he owed to his master. He returned to Edgar, and assured him, that the birth and riches of Elfrida had been the cause of the admiration paid to her, and that she possessed no charms of superior lustre. After some time, he intimated to the king, that, though her parentage and fortune had not de- ceived him with regard to her beauty, she would be an advantageous match for him, and might, by her birth and riches, make him sufficient compensation for the homeli- ness of her person. Edgar, pleased with an opportunity of establishing his favourite's fortune, forwarded his suc- cess by a recommendation to the parents of Elfrida, whose hand Athelwold soon obtained. Envy, which ever pursues the favourite of a king, spee- dily informed Edgar of the truth. However, before he avenged the treachery of Atlielwold, he resolved to satisfy himself of his guilt. He told him that he intended to visit his castle, and to be introduced to his wife. Athel 28 ^ A HISTORY OP ENGLAND. wold, unable to refuse this honour, revealed the whole transaction to Elfrida, and conjured her to conceal from Edgar that beauty which had seduced him from his fide- lity. Elfrida promised a compliance, but appeared before the king in aU her charms, and excited in his bosom at once the passions of desire and revenge. However, he dissembled his emotions, till he had an opportunity, in hunting, of stabbing Athelwold, and soon after publicly espoused Elfrida. Edgar died after a reign of sixteen years, and was suc- ceeded by Edward, whom he had by his first inat- g,^^* riage with the daughter of earl Ordmer. This prince was anointed and crowned by Dunstan at Kingston, and lived four years after his accession. His death alone was memorable and tragical. Though his step-mother had opposed his succession, and had raised a party in favour of her own son Ethelred, yet Edward had always shown her marks of regard- He was hunting one day near Corfe-castle, in Dorsetshire, where Elfrida resided, and paying her a visit without attendants, he pre- sented her with the opportunity for which she had so long \7ished. After remounting his horse, he desired some liquor to be brought him ; and whilst he was holding the cup to his mouth, a servant of Elfrida approached, and stabbed him behind. The prince, feeling himself wound- ed, set spurs to his horse ; but faint with the loss of blood, he fell from the saddle, and his foot being entangled in the stirrup, he was dragged along until he expired. His youth and innocence obtained for him the appellation of Martyr. Ethelred, the son of Edgar and Elfrida, reaped the ad- vantage of his mother's crime, and succeeded to the throne. He was a weak and irresolute monarch, q-,Q* and obtained the appellation of Unready. During his reign the Danes resumed their ravages ; and Ethelred exhibited neither courage nor ability sufficient to repel so formidable an enemy. A shameful composition was made with Sweyn, king of Denmark ; and the English monarch consented to the disgraceful badge of tribute. Ethelred, desirous of forming a closer alliance with the pirates of the north, solicited and received in marriage Emma, sistei of Richard the second, duke of Normandy, whose family sprang from the Danish adventurer, Rollo. ETHELKED ~ "^ 29 Whilst their sovereign courted the alliance, the English groaned beneath the rapacity and arrogance of the north- ern invaders. Sensible of the superiority of these hardy warriors, the English princes had been accustomed to re- tain in their pay bodies of Danish troops. These merce- naries, by their arts and military character, had rendered themselves so agreeable to the fair sex, that they debauched the wives and daughters of the English ; but what mosf provoked the inhabitants was, that instead of defending them against invaders, they were always ready to join the foreign foe. This animosity inspired Ethelred with the resolution of massacreinof the Danes throuo-hout his do- minions. Secret orders were despatched to commence the execution every where the same day ; and so well were these orders executed, that the rag'e of the 100^ people, sanctioned by authority, distinguii^^hed yy 7*0 not between innocence and guilt, and spared ' neither sex nor as^e. o This barbarous policy, however, did not remain long unrevenged. Sweyn and his Danes, who wanted 100'^ only a pretence for invading England, appeared off the westei^n coast. Exeter first fell into their hands, from the negligence or treachery of Earl Hough, a Norman, who had been made governor of that city. Thence they extended their devastations over the country. The calamities of the English were augmented by famine ; and they submitted to the infamy of purchasing a nominal ])eace, by the payment of thirty thousand pounds. The dissentions of the English prevented them from opposing the Danes, who still continued their depredations, and from whom they purchased another peace at the expense of forty-eight thousand pounds. The Danes, however, disregarded all engagements, and extorted new contribu- tions. The English nobility, driven to despair, swore alle- giance to Sweyn, and delivered him hostages for their fidelity. Ethelred, equally afraid of the violence of the enemy and the treachery of his own subjects, fled into Normandy, whither he had sent before him Emma, and her two sons, Alfred and Edward. The king had not been more than six weeks in Nor- mandy, when he was informed of the death of 1014 ^^^y*^* '^^® English prelates and nobles sent a deputation into Normandy, and invited Ethelred 3* 30 ' fs^ HISTORY OF ENGLAND. to resume the royal authority. But on his return they soon perceived that adversity had not corrected his errors : he displayed the same incapacity, indolence, cowardice, and credulity. In Canute, the son and successor of Sweyn, the English found an enemy no less formidahle than his father. After ravaging the eastern and southern coast, lie burst into the counties of Dorset, Wilts, and Somerset ; where an army was assembled against him under the com- mand of prince Edmond, the eldest son of Ethelred. The Enghsh soldiers demanded the presence of their sovereign ; and upon his refusal to take the field, they became dis- couraged, and gradually retired from the camp. Edmond, after some fruitless expeditions into the north, retired to London, which he found in confusion, from the death of the king, who had expired, after an inglorious reign of thirty-five years. He left two sons by his first marriage, Edmond who succeeded him, and Edwy who was mur- dered by Canute ; and two more by his second marriage, Alfred and Edward, who, upon the death of Ethelred, were conveyed into Normandy by queen Emma. Edmond, who from his hardy valour obtained the sur- name of Ironside, was inferior in abilities only to the difficulties of the time. In two battles he en- int/^ countered the Danes with skill and courage ; but in both he was defeated or betrayed by the enmity or per- fidy of Edri c, duke of Mercia. The indefatigable Edmond, however, had still resources : he assembled a new army at Gloucester, and was again prepared to dispute the field; when the Danish and English nobility, equally harassed, obliged their kings to submit to a compromise, and to por- tion the kingdom. Canute reserved to himself the northern part, and relinquished the southern to Edmond. This prince survived the treaty about a month ; he was mur- dered at Oxford by two of his chamberlains, accomplices of Edric, who thereby made way for the succession of Canute the Dane to the crown of England. Canute, at the head of a great force, was ready to take advantage of the minority of Alfred and Edward, the two sons of Edmond. To cover, however, his in .7 injustice under plausible pretences, before he seized the dominions of the English princes, he summoned a general assembly of the states, in order to fix the succes- sion of the kingdom. He here suborned some nobles CANUTE. 31 to depose, that, in the treaty of Gloucester, it had been vei bally agreed, in case of Edmond's death, to name Ca- nute successor to his dominions, or tutor to his children ; and this evidence, supported by the great power of Canute, determined the states to vest in him the government of the kingdom. Jealous of the two princes, he sent them to his ally, the king of Sweden, whom he desired to free him by their death from all future anxiety. The Swedish monarch was too humane to comply with this cruel request ; but afraid of a quari'el with Canute if he protected the young princes, he conveyed them to Solomon, king of Hungary. The elder died without issue ; but Edward, the younger, married Agatha, the sister-in-law of Solomon, and daugh- ter of the emperor Henry H., by whom he had Edgar Atheling, Margaret, afterwards queen of Scotland, and Christina, who became a nun. Canute no sooner found himself confirmed on the throne, than he put to death the nobles on whose fidelity he could not rely ; and among these was the traitor Edric, who had presumed to reproach him with his services. But, like a wise prince, he was determined that the English, now de- prived of all their dangerous leaders, should be reconciled to the Danes by the justice and impartiality of his govern- ment. He restored the Saxon customs in the general assembly of the states ; he made no distinction between Danes and Enghsh in the distribution of justice ; and the victors were gradually incorporated with the vanquished. Though the distance of Edmond's children was regarded by Canute as the greatest security to his government, yet he dreaded the pretensions of Alfred and Edward, who were supported by their uncle, Richard, duke of Normandy. To acquire the friendship of that prince, he paid his ad- dresses to his sister Emma ; and the widow of Ethelred consented to bestow her hand on the implacable enemy of her former hu^'^and, on condition that the children of their marriage should mount the English throne. After repelling the attacks of the king of Sweden, Ca- nute ip^aded and subdued Norway, of which he retained possession till his death. At leisure from war, he cast his '^iew towards that future existence, which it is so natural for the human mind, whether satiated by prosperity, or disgusted with adversity, to make the object of its atten- tion. Instead, however, of endeavouring to atone for the 03 HISTOllY OF ENGLAND. crimes which he had committed by compensation to the injured, it was in building churches, in endowing monas- teries, and in a pilgrimage to Rome, that his penitence was displayed. Some of his courtiers affected to think his power uncontrollable,'* and that all things would be obedient to his command. Canute, sensible of their adu- lation, ordered his chair to be placed on the sea shore while the tide was rising ; and as the waters approached, he commanded them to retire, and to obey the voice of him who was lord of the ocean. But when the sea, still advancing towards him, began to wet his feet, he turned to his courtiers, and remarked to them, that every crea- ture in the universe is feeble and impotent, compared to that Almighty Being in whose hands are all the elements of nature, and who can say to the ocean, " Thus far shalt thou go, and no farther." Canute died at Shaftsbury, in the nineteenth year of his reign. Of his two sons by his first marriage, Sweyn had been crowned king of Norway, and Harold succeeded his father on the English throne ; and Hardicanute, who was his issue by Emma, was left in possession of the king- dom of Denmark, Though Harold succeeded to the throne of England agreeably to the will of his father, who considered it dangerous to leave a newly-conquered kingdom inor in the hands of so young a prince as Hardicanute ; yet this was a manifest violation of the treaty with the duke of Normandy, by which End^and-was assigned to the issue of Canute by Emma. Harold was favoured by the Danes, and Hardicanute by the Enghsh. The death of Harold, however, which happened four years after his accession, l3 HAHOLD. 35 tcrial loss, d\, Pevensey, in Sussex ; and the troops were disembarked without meeting any obstacle. The duke bmiself, as he leaped on shore, happened to stumble and fall ; but he had the presence of mind to turn the omen to his advantage, by calling aloud that he had taken pos- session of the country. Harold had just gained a great and important victory over the Norwegians, who had invaded the kingdom, when he received the intelligence that the duke of Normandy had landed with a numerous army in the south of Eng- land. He resolved to give battle in person, and soon appeared in sight of the enemy, who had pitched their camp at Hastings. So confident was Harold of success, feliat to a message sent by the duke, he replied, " The God of battles should soon be the arbiter of all their dif- ferences." Both parties immediately prepared for action ; but the English spent the night previous to the battle in ■I'fxna riot and jollity ; whilst the Normans were occu- Of-iA pied in prayer and in the duties of religion. In * the morning, the duke assembled his principal officers, and harangued them in a set speech, in which he used every argument that could stimulate their courage and repel their fears. He then ordered the signal of bat- tle to be given ; and the whole army, moving at once, and singing the hymn or song of Roland, the famous peer of Charlemagne, advanced in order and with alacrity towards the English. Harold had seized the advantage of a rising ground, and having secured his flanks with trenches, he resolved to stand on the defensive, and to avoid an engagement v/ith the cavalry, in which he was inferior. The Kentish men were placed in the van, a post of honour which they always claimed as their due. The Londoners guarded the standard ; and the king himself, accompanied by his two valiant brothers, Gurth and Leofwin, dismounting from his horse, placed himself at the head of his infantiy, and expressed his resolution to conquer or to die. The first attack of the Normans w^as desperate, but was re- ceived with equal valour by the English ; and the former began to retreat, w^hen William hastened to their support with a select band. His presence restored the action ; and the English in their turn were obliged to retire. They 36 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. rallied again, however, assisted by the advantage o^ the ground; w^hen William commanded his troops to allure the enemj from their position, by the appearance of iiight. The English followed precipitately into the plain ; where the Normans faced upon them, and forced them back with considerable slaughter. The artifice was repeated a se- cond time with the same success ; yet a great body of the Enghsh still maintained themselves in firm array, and seemed resolved to dispute the victory. Harold, however, was slain by an arrow, whilst combatting at the head ot his men ; and his two brothers sliared the same fate. The English, discouraged by the fall of their princes, fled on all sides ; and the darkness of the night contributed to save those who had survived the carnage of the battle. Thus was gained by William, duke of Normandy, the great and decisive victory of Hastings, after a battle foughl from morning to sun-set, in which the valour of the van- quished, as well as of the victors, was highly conspicuous. In this engagement nearly fifteen thousand Normans fell; and William had three horses killed under him. But the victory, however dearly purchased, was decisive, as it paid the price of a kingdom. The body of Harold was brought to William, who generously restored it without ransom to his mother. The Nonnan araiy gave thanks to heaven for their success ; and their prince pressed forward to secure the prize he had won. CHAP. HI. The Reigns of William the Conqueror^ William Riifus, IIen.>j J., and Stephen, As soon as William passed the Thames at Wal- lingford, Stigand, the primate, made submission to -tkr^r^ him : and before he came in sight of London, all the chief nobility entered his camp, and requested him to mount the throne, declaring that, as they had always been ruled by regal power, they desired to follow, in this in- stance, the example of their ancestors, and knew of no one more woithy than himself to hold the reins of govern- ment. Though William feigned to hesitate, and wished to obtaiii a more formal consent of the English nation, yet he dreaded the danger of delay, and accepted of the crown which was thus tendered him. He was consecra- WILLIAM THE CONQUEROR. 37 ted in Westminister abbey by Alfred, archbishop of York ; and he was attended, on this occasioji, by the most con- siderable of the nobility, both English and Norman. Thus, by a pretended destination of king Edward, and by an irregular election of the people, but still more by force of arms, William seated himself on the English throne. He introduced into England that strict execution of justice for which his government had been much cele- brated in Normandy. He confirmed the liberties and im- munities of London, and the other cities of England, and appeared desirous of replacing every thing on ancient establishments. His whole administration had the sem- blance of that of a lawful prince, not of a conqueror ; and the English began to flatter themselves that they had changed only the succession of their sovereigns, and not the form of their government. But amidst this confidence and friendship which he expressed for the English, the king took care to place all real power in the hands of the Normans. He built citadels in London, Winchester, Here- fo^d, Oxford, and the towns best situated for commanding the kingdom, all of which he garrisoned wuth Norman soldiers. By this mixture of vigour and lenity, William had sc soothed or humbled the minds of the English, that he thought he might safely revisit his native country, and en- joy the congratulations of his ancient subjects. Accord- ingly he set out for Normandy, and carried over with him the chief of the English nobles, who, whilst they served to grace his court by their magnificence, were in reality hos- tages for the fidelity of the nation. During the absence of William, aiiairs took a yerj un- favourable turn in England. It is probable that the Nor- mans, despising a people who had so easily submitted to the yoke, and envying their riches, were desirous of pro- voking them to rebellion. Certain, however, it is, that their arrogance multiplied discontents and complaints every where; that secret conspiracies were entered into against the government ; and that every thing seemed to threaten a revolution. The disaftection of the English daily increa- sed; and a secret conspiracy was entered into to perpe- trate in one day a general massacre of the Normans, like that which had been formerly executed upon the Danes. The return of the king, however, disconcerted the plans 4 38 / « HISTORY OF ENGLAND. of the conspirators ; and the confiscation of their estates enabled the king still farther to gratify the rapacity of the Normans. Though naturally violent and severe in his temper, yet William still preserved the appearance of jus- tice in his oppression ; he restored to their inheritance such as had been arbitrarily expelled by the Normans during his absence ; but he imposed on the people the tax of Danegelt, which had been abolished by Edward the Con- fessor, and which was extremely odious to the nation. The English now clearly foresaw that the king intend- ed to rely entirely on the support and affection of foreign- ers, and that new forfeitures would be the result of any attempt to maintain their rights. Impressed with this dismal prospect many fled into foreign countries. Several of them settled in Scotland, and founded families which were afterwards illustrious in that countiy. But whilst the English suffered under these oppressions, the Normans found themselves surrounded by an agreeable people, and began to wish for tranquihty. However, the rage of the vanquished English served only to excite the attention of the king and his warlike chiefs to suppress every com- mencement of rebellion. William introduced into England the feudal law, which had some time been established in Normandy and France. He divided, with very few exceptions, besides the royal de- mesnes, all the lands of England into baronies ; and he conferred them with the reservation of stated services and payments, on the most considerable of his adventurers. These barons made a grant of a great part of their lands to other foreigners, under the denomination of knights or vassals, Avho paid their lord the same duty and submis- sion which the chieftains paid to their sovereign. The whole kingdom contained about 700 chief tenants, and 60,215 knights-fees; and as none of the native English were admitted into the first rank, the few who retained their landed property were glad to be received into the gecond, under the protection of some powerful Norman. The doctrine which exalted the papacy above all humaii power, had gradually diffused itself from Rome ; but, at this time, was more prevalent in the southern, than in the northern kingdoms of Europe. Pope Alexander, who hao assisted William in his conquest, naturally expected thai he wcMild extend to England the reverence for this sacred WILLIAM THE CONQUEROR. 39 character, and break the spiritual independence of the Saxons. As soon, therefore, as the Norman prince was estabhshed on the throne, Alexander despatched to him Esmenfroy, bishop of Siam, as his legate: and the king, though he was probably led by principle to pay submission to Rome, determined to employ this incident as a means of serving his political purposes, and degraded those English prelates who were obnoxious to him. However, the superstitious spirit which became dangerous to some of William's successors, was checked by the abilities of that monarch. He prohibited his subjects from acknow- ledging any one for pope, whom he himself had not pre- viously received ; and he would not suffer any bulls or letters from Rome to be produced without the sanction of his authority. But the English had the mortification to find that the king had employed himself chiefly in oppressing them. He even formed a project of extinguishing the English language ; and, for that purpose, he ordered that in all schools youth should be instructed in the French tongue ; and that all law proceedings should be directed in the same idiom: hence arises that mixture of French which is at present found in the English tongue, and particularly in legal forms. William's eldest son, Robert, who was greedy of fame, impatient of contradiction, and without reserve in his friendships or enmities, had been flattered with the hope that his father, in possession of England, would resign to hirn the independent government of his continental do- minions. The king, indeed, had declared Robert his suc- cessor in Normandy, and had obliged the barons of that duchy to do homage to him as their future sovereign ; but when Robert demanded of his father the execution of those engagements, William refused; Robert openly de- clared his discontent, and cherished a violent jealousy against his two surviving brothers, William and Henry. Irritated by an imaginary affront, he quitted the court, and after an ineffectual attempt to surprise the citadel of Rou- en, fled to Hugh de Neufchatel, a powerful Norman baron, and openly levied war against his father. After a strug- gle of several years, a reconciliation was effected between the king and Robert, who soon after accompanied his father to England. 40 , HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Having gained a respite from war, William employed his leism-e in an undertaking which does honour to his me- mory. He appointed commissioners to survey all the lands in the kingdom ] their extent in each district ; their proprietors, tenures, value ; and the quantity of meadow, pasture, wood, and arable land, which they contained. This monument, called Domesday Book, was perfected in six years, and is still preserved in the exchequer. The domestic happiness of William was again interrupted by the death of his consort Matilda, ij^,^o* whom he tenderly loved. He was involved in war with France, on account of the inroads into Normandy by some French barons on the frontiers. The displeasure of William was increased by some railleries which Philip of France had thrown out against his person. He was be- come corpulent, and had been detained in bed some time by sickness, when Philip jocularly expressed his surprise, that his brother of England should be so long in being de- livered of his big belly. This being reported to William, he sent Phillip word, that, as soon as he was up, he would present so many lights at Notre-Dame, as perhaps would give little pleasure to the king of France ; alluding to the usual practice at that time of women after child-birth. Immediately after his recovery, he led an army into the Isle of France, which he laid waste; and he also took and reduced to ashes the town of Mante. But the pro- gress of these hostilities was stopped by an accident, which put an end to his life.. His horse starting, he bruised his belly on the pommel of his saddle ; and being in a bad habit of body, and apprehending the consequences, he ordered himself to be carried to the monastery of St. Ger- vas. In his last moments, he was struck with remorse for the cruelties he had exercised, and endeavoured to make atonement by presents to churches and monasteries. He left Normandy and Maine to his eldest son, Robert ; and he wrote to Lanfranc, archbishop of Canterbuiy, de- siring him to crowii his second son, William. To Henry, his third son, he bequeathed nothing save the possessions of his mother Matilda ; but foretold that he would one day suqiass both his brothers, in power and opulence. Having made these dispositions, he expired, in the sixty- third year of his age, and in the twenty-first of his reign over England. Death of William Rufus, Mnmsmnrit lllllHP^I ==jl . jii . -. - ^ - ^. ^ H^NliinlD ypiiiii^^l jW ~ ^^^- ' — = ^^ ^g^ ^^^ m B| fc= — ^ ^j-- '^W f^PUlr:: HI HHn^HHH IS-mJ^^^.TlV iBi ff ^^raliiiill 1^7 w r ^ljr\jM^\^|^A^JMP Hl^L ■Hi S^^^M ^^W i^\vsS^llEt(a ^^HHH ^wBa^^^^S^^ ^jp^^^kJ^^ I TT'i^ fiVl s^S^^^^^^Hi JWwi4H^3i^^^^^^^am//M[mi ^ jfir f'w^^j^myj^A R\t iK ^HFi ^^{IKnTilJw^ ^Ru M^^^lP l^^yi |b«\ m^^m ll^^«M>^ kif^ »Vr jLJ** ' ^^3 r^^^^^^^ iMP^ i^^^^^wiii \m ^m nra h1 V^Km KSm HH %> ^H ^^^HB hI^^ jp^^ ^H^^^^ ViH H ^^^LJHU S^^^^HKS ^Jfr Pf^^ ^^^^a l^iPfF^utl IpII^ vtaa fffilLiii Ky^i ^m ^m ^^S ^^^ ^y Edward the first receiving the crown WILLIAM RUPUS. 41 Few princes have been more fortunate than WilHam, or were better entitled to grandeur and prosperity, fmm the abihties and vigour of mind which he displayed in all his conduct. His spirit Avas bold and enterprising, yet guided by prudence ; and his ambition, though exhorbitaiit, gene- rally submitted to the dictates of sound policy. Though not insensible to generosity, he was hardened against com- passion ; and his conduct was too austere to render his government popular over a vanquished people, who felt him to be both a master and a tyrant. William, surnamed Mufus, from the red colour of his hair, was solemnly crowned king of England by the 1 0S7 Pi'i^^^^^^ 5 ^1^^ about the same time Robert was ac- knowledged successor to Normandy. But the barons, who possessed estates both in England and Normandy, were uneasy at the separation of those territories ; they respect- ed the claim of primogeniture in Robert, and they pre- ferred his open and generous nature to the haughty and tyrannical disposition of his brother. A conspiracy, there- fore, was formed against William, who, conscious of his danger, endeavoured to conciliate the affections of the English, by promises of futm-e lenity, and the indulgence of hunting in the royal forests. The English espoused the cause of William, who marched an army into Kent, and reduced the fortresses of Pevensey and Rochester, which had been seized by his uncles. This success, together with the indolent conduct of -Robert, broke all the hopes of the rebels ; some few of whom received a pardon, but the greater part were attainted, and their estates confiscated. But the noise of the petty wars and commotions sunk in the tumult of the crusades, which engrossed the atten- tion and agitated the hearts of the principal nations of Europe. Peter the Hermit, a native of Amiens in Pi- cardy, had made the pilgrimage to Jerusalem, then in possession of the Turks. Deeply affected with the dan- gers to which that act of piety now exposed the pilgrims, he entertained the design of leading against the Moslems the hardy warriors of the west. By permission of the pope, Martin the Second, he preached the crusade over Europe; and men of all ranks flew to arms, with the greatest alacri- ty, for the purpose of rescuing the Holy Land from the infidels. The sign of the cross became the badge of union and was affixed on their right shoulder, by all who 4* 42 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. enlisted themselves in this sacred warfare. Such was the general ardour, that while the youthful and vigorous took up arms, the infirm and aged contributed to the expediti'^n by presents and money. A promiscuous, disorderly mul- titude of 300,000, impatient to commence operations, under the conduct of Peter the Hermit, attempted to penetrate through Hungary and Bulgaria to Constantinople, and perished by disease, by famine, and the sword. These were followed by more numerous and better disciphned armies, which, after passing the streights at Constantino- ple, were mustered in the plains of Asia, and amounted to the number of 700,000 combatants. Robert duke of Normandy, impelled by the bravery and mistaken generosity of his spirit, had early engaged in the crusade ; but being destitute of money, he offered to mort- gage, or rather sell his dominions, to his brother William, for the inadequate sum of ten thousand marks. The bar- gain was soon concluded ; and v/hilst Robert set out with a magnificent train for the Holy Land, William possessed himself of Normandy, and thus reunited beneath his authority the extensive dominions of his father. The cession of Normandy and Maine extended the do- minions, but, on account of the unsettled state of those countries, weakened the power of William. The Norman nobles were men of independent minds, and were support- ed by the French king in all their insurrections. Helic, lord of LeFleche, a smalltown in Anjou, obliged William to undertake several expeditions, before he could prevail over a petty baron, who had acquired the confidence and affections of the inhabitants of Maine. However, the king was not less desirous of extending his dominions. William, earl of Poictiers and duke of Guienne, inflamed with the spirit of adventure, determi- ned to join the crusaders ; but wanting money to forward the preparations, he offered to mortgage his dominions to the king of England. This proposal was accepted by the king, who had prepared a fleet and army to escort the money and to take possession of the rich provinces of Poictiers and Guienne, when an accident pxtt an end to all his ambitious projects and views of aggrandizement. He was engaged in the New Forest in hunting, accompa- nied by Walter Tyrrel, a French gentleman, remarkable for his skill in archery ; and as William dismounted after HfeNRV i. 43 a chase, Tyrrel, impatient of showing his dexterity, let fly an arrow at a stag, which suddenly started before him. The arrow glancing from a tree, struck the king in the breast, and instantly killed him. Tyrrel, fearful of suspi-^ cions Avhich perhaps he was conscious of incurring, with- out informing the royal attendants, gained the sea shore, embarked for France, and joined the crusade in an expe- dition to Jerusalem, as a penance for this involuntary crime. William was perfidious and oppressive ; and the extremes of prodigality and rapacity, which were reconciled in him, had long estranged from him the hearts of his subjects. The chief monuments which perpetuate his name are the Tower, Westminister Hall, and London Bridge. Prince Henry was hunting with Riifus in the New Fo- rest, when that monarch was killed ; and, hasten- 1*100 ^^^ ^^ Winchester, he extorted by threats the royal treasure from William de Breteuil, the keeper. Pursuing his journey to London, and having assembled some noblemen and prelates, whom his address or hbe-'- rality gained to his side, he was saluted king ; and in less than three days after his brother's death, he was solemnly crowned by Maurice, bishop of London. To maintain the dignity which he had thus usurped, Henry resolved to court, by fair professions at least, the favour of his subjects. He passed a charter, which was framed to remedy many of the grievous oppressions that had been complained of duping the reigns of his father and brother. He espoused Matilda, daugliter of Malcolm the Third, king of Scotland, and niece to Edgar Atheling ; and his marriage with a Saxon princess endeared him to the English, and tended to establish him on the throne. RolDcrt returned to Normandy about a month after the death of his brother William. After establishing his au- thority over Normandy, he made preparations for possess- ing himself of England, of which he had been so unjustly defrauded. The two armies lay in sight of each other for several days without coming to action. It was, however, agreed, that Robert, in lieu of his pretensions to England, should receive an annual pension of 3000 marks ; that if either of the princes died without issue, the survivor should succeed to his dominions ; and that the adherents of each should be pardoned. Although plunged into the most dissolute pleasures, or 14 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. abandoned to the most womanish superstitions, Robert neglected the government of his duchy ; and Normandy became a scene of violence and depredation. To avail himself of these disorders, Henry raised a numerous army, with which he invaded Normandy. He took Bayeuk by storm, and was admitted into Caen by the inhabitants. Robert^ roused at last from his lethargy, advanced to meet him, w^ith a view of terminating their quarrels in a deci- sive battle ; he resumed his wonted spirit ; he animated his troops by his example, and threw the English into dis- order : but when he had the fairest prospects of victoiy, the treachery and flight of one of his generals occasioned the total defeat of his army. Robert and ten thousand of his followers were made prisoners. Normandy sub- mitted to the victors ; and the unfortunate prince was carried by Henry to England, and detained in prison du- ring the remainder of his life in the castle of GardifF, in Glamorganshire. The conquest of Normandy seemed to establish the throne of Henry ; but his prosperity was clouded by a severe domestic calamity. His only son, William, had reached his eighteenth year ; he had been affianced to the daughter of Fulk, count of Anjou ; and he had been ac- knowledged as successor to the kingdom of England, and the duchy of Normandy. The prince was detained for some hours after his father had set sail from Barfleur to return to England ; and his captain and crew having spent the interval in drinking, when they weighed anchor, in their impatience to overtake the king, they stnick the ship on a rock, where she immediately foundered. William was instantly put into the long-boat and had got clear of the ship ; when hearing the cries of his natural sister, the countess of Perche, he ordered the seamen to row back in hopes of saving her. But the numbers who then crowded in, soon sunk the boat ; and the prince, with all his retinue, perished. Above one hundred and forty young noblemen, of the principal families of England and Nor- mandy, were lost on this occasion ; and the only person that escaped to relate the melancholy tale was a butcher of Rouen, who clung to the mast, and was taken up the next morning by some fishermen. When Henry received intelligence of this mournful event, he fainted away ; aad STEPHEN. 45 it was remarked that he never after recovered his wonted cheerfulness. Heniy had now no legitimate issue except one daugh- ter, Matilda, whom he had betrothed, when only eight years of age, to the emperor Henry the Fifth, and whom he had sent over to be educated in Germ an j'-. Fearful lest her absence from the kingdom, and marriage into a foreign family, might endanger the succession, Heniy obtained the hand of Adelais, daughter of Godfrey, duke of Lo- raine. Adelais, however, proved barren in his embraces ; and he bestowed his daughter Matilda, who had become a widow, on Geoffery, the son of Fulk, count of Anjou. Henry died at St. Dennis le Forment, from eating too plentifully of lampreys, in the sixty-seventh year of his age, and the thirty-fifth of his reign ; leaving by will his daughter Matilda the heir of all his dominions. He was one of the most accomplished princes that ever graced the English thurone. His person was manly, and his counte- nance engaging ; and he was eloquent, penetrating, and brave. By his great progress in literature, he acquired the name of Beau-clerc, or the scholar ; but his application to those sedentary pursuits abated nothing of the activity and vigilance of his government. The failure of male heirs to the kingdom of England and duchy of Normandy, seemed to leave the suc- 1 135 ^^^^^^^^ open, without a rival, to the empress Ma- tilda ; but no sooner had Henry breathed his last, than Stephen, son of Adela, daughter of William the Con- queror, hastened to London, and was saluted king by the populace. His father was the count of Blois, whom Adela had married ; and Stephen had always affected the greatest attachment to his uncle, the late king, and the most ardent zeal for the succession of Matilda. After gaining the populace, Stephen next acquired the good-will of the clergy, by the influence of his brother Henry, bishop of Winchester ; and he was solemnly crowned by the arch- bishop of Canterbury, without much attendance indeed, but ^vithout opposition. The Normans no sooner heard that Stephen had seized the English crown, than they swore allegiance to him : and Matilda was scarcely informed of her father's death, before she found another had usurped her rights. Matilda, however, did not long delay to assert her claim to the 46 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. crown. Encouraged by a quarrel which had broken out between Stephen and some of the clergy, slie landed in England, with Robert, eaii of Gloucester, and a retinue of one hundred and forty knights. She fixed her residence at Arundel castle, the gates of which were opened to her by Adelais, the queen-dowager ; and she excited her par- tisans to take arms in every county of England. The war quickly broke out in eveiy quarter; and England, for more than a year, was distressed and laid waste by the fury of the contending parties. At last, a battle took place between Stephen and the earl of Gloucester. After a vio- lent shock, the two wings of the royalists were put to flight ; and Stephen himself, surrounded by the enemy, was borne down by numbers, and taken prisoner. The authority of Matilda now seemed to be established over the wiiole kingdom ; but affairs did not remain long in this situation. Matilda was passionate and imperious, and did not know how to temper with affability the harsh- ness of a refusal. Stephen's queen, seconded by many of the nobility, petitioned for the liberty of her husband, on condition that he should renounce the crown, and retire into a convent. Other petitions also were presented to Matilda ; but she rejected them all in the most haughty and peremptoiy manner. A conspiracy was entered into to seize her person ; but Matilda saved herself by a precipi- tate retreat to Oxford. The civil w^ar was rekindled with greater fuiy than ever ; and Matilda, harassed with inces sant action, sought repose with her son in Normandy. But when prince Henry, the son of Matilda, had reach- ed his sixteenth year, he resolved to reclaim his hereditary kingdom. Informed of the dispositions of the English in his favour, he invaded England ; and, at Malmesbury, he prepared to encounter Stephen in a pitched battle. The great men on both sides, alarmed at the consequences of a decisive action, compelled the rival princes to a negotia- tion. It was agreed, that, on the demise of Stephen, the crov/n should revert to Heniy ; and that William, Ste- phen's sui*viving son, should succeed to the earldom of Boulogne, and his patrimonial estate. After all the barons had sworn to the observance of tliis treaty, and done ho- mage to Henry, as heir-apparent to the crown, that prince evacuated the kingdom ; and the death of Stephen, which HENRY II. 47 1 happened the next year, after a short illness, in the fiftieth year of his age, put an end to farther jealousies. Had Stephen succeeded by a just title to the crown, he seems to have been well qualified to have promoted the happiness of his subjects. He was possessed of industry, activity, and courage ; and though his judgment may be arraigned, his humanity must be acknowledged, and his atldress commended. During this reign, the see of Rome made a rapid progress in its encroachments, and ulti- mately pretended to a paramount authority over the kings of this country. CHAP. IV. Heigns of Henri/ II., Richard /., and John. The first acts of Henry's government corresponded to the high idea entertained of his abilities. He dis- , I ^1 missed the mercenary soldiers of Stephen ; revok- ed all grants made by his predecessors ; restored the coin which had been debased during the former reign ; and was rigorous in the execution of justice, and the sup- pression of violence. In addition to his possessing the throne of England, Henry, in right of his father, was master of Anjou and Touraine ; in that of his mother, of Normandy and Maine ; in that of his wife, of Guienne, Poictou, Xantiogne, Au- vergne, Perigord, Angoumois, and the Liinosin ; and he annexed Brittany to his other states ; all of which ren- dered him one of the most powerful monarchs in Christen- dom, and an object of great jealousy to the king of France. Henry directed his attention to the encroachments of tbv9 see of Rome, which had grown with a rapidity not to be brooked by a prince of his high spirit. To facilitate his design of suppressing them, he advanced to the dignity of m^etropolitan, Becket, his chancellor, on whose flexibi- lity of temper he had made a wrong estimate. Thomas a Becket was born of reputable parents in the city of London ; and having insinuated himself into the favour oif Theobald, archbishop of Canterbury, he obtained from that prelate considerable preferment. Being of a gay and splendid turn, and apparently little tenacious of ecclesiastical privileges, Henry thought him the fittest per- son, on the death of Theobald, for the high station of me 48 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. tropolitan ; but no sooner was he installed on this high dignity, than he altered his conduct and demeanor. He maiutained in his retinue and attendants alone his ancient pomp and lustre ; in his own person he affected the greatest austerity ; he wore sackcloth next his skin, which he pre- tended to conceal ; he seemed perpetually employed in re- citing prayers and pious lectures ; and all men of penetra- tion plainly saw that he was meditating some great design. Though Henry found himself grievously mistaken in the character of the person whom he had raised to the pri- macy, yet he determined not to desist from his former in- tention of retrenching clerical usurpations. The ecclesi- astics in that age had renounced all immediate subordina- tion to the magistrate ; and crimes of the blackest die were committed by them with impunity. A clerk in Worces- tershire, having debauched a gentleman's daughter, had proceeded to murder the father ; the general indignation against the crime, moved the king to attempt the remedy ol an abuse which had become so palpable, and to require that the clerk should be dehvered up, and receive condign pun- ishment from the magistrate. Becket insisted on the privi- leges of the church, and maintained that no greater punish- ment could be inflicted on the criminal than degradation. In order to define expressly those laws to which he re- quired obedience, and to marlv the limits between the civil and ecclesiastical jurisdictions, Henry summoned a gene- ral council of the nobility and prelates at Clarendon ; v/hen, by his influence or authority, the laws so favourable to pre- rogative, known by the name of the Constitutions of Cla- rendon, were voted without opposition. Becket, of all the prelates, alone withheld his assent ; but he was at last obliged to comply, and engaged by oath legally, with good faith, and without fraud or reserve, to observe them. However, Alexander, who was po^e at that time, con- demned them in the strongest terms, abrogated, annulled, and rejected them. Becket no sooner learned the determination of the Ro man pontiflT, than he expressed the deepest sorrow for his compliance, and endeavoured to engage the other bishops to adhere to their common rights. This excited the resent- ment of Henry, who caused a prosecution for some land that he held to be commenced against him ; and when the primate excused himself from appearing, on account of HENRV U. 49 hi«disposition, he was arraigned as guilty of a contempt of the king's court ; and being condemned, his goods and chattels were confiscated. Henry soon after required Becket to give in the account of his administration while chancellor, and estimated the balance due at 44,000 marks, for which he demanded sureties. After celebra- ting mass, where he had previously ordered that the introit to the communion service should begin with the words, Princes sat and spake against me, arrayed in the sacred vestments, and bearing the cross aloft in his hands, he entered the royal apartments, and declared that he put himself and his see under the protection of the supreme pontiff. Having in vain asked permission to leave North- ampton, \e withdrew s-ecretly to the sea-coast, and found a vessel which conveyed him to France, where he was received with every token of regard. Henry issued orders to his justiciaries, inhibitijig, under severe penalties, all appeals to the pope or archbishop ; and by discovering some intentions of acknowledging Pascal III., the anti-pope at that time, he endeavoured to terrify the enterprising though prudent pontiff from pro- ceeding to extremities against him. On the other hand, Becket not only issued a censure, excommunicating the king's chief ministers by name, but also abrogated and annulled the constitutions of Clarendon ; and he declared that he suspended the spiritual thunder over Henry him- self, solely that the prince might avoid the blow by a timely repentance. At length a reconciliation was effected between the king and the primate ; and Becket was allowed to return, on conditions v»^hich may be esteemed both honourable and advantageous to that prelate. He was not required to give up any rights of the church, or resign any of those pretensions which had been the original ground of the controversy. It was agreed that all thv.se questions should be buried in oblivion ; but that Becket and his adherents should, without making further submission, be restored to all their livings ; and that even the possessors of such be- nefices as depended on the see of Canterbury, and had been filled during the primate's absence, should be expel- led, and Becket have liberty to supply the vacancies. In return for concessions which trenched so deeply on tlie honour and dignity of the crown, Henry reaped only the 5 50 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. advantage of seeing his ministers absolved from tl>e sen* tence of excommunication pronounced against them^ and of preventing the interdict with which his kingdom had been threatened. So anxious was Henry to accommo- date all differences, and to reconcile himse-lf fully with Becket, that on one occasion he humiliated himself so far as to hold the stirrup of that haughty prelate while he mounted his horse. Whilst the king was expecting an interdict to be laid on his kingdom, he had associated his son, prince Henry, m the royalty, and had caused him to be crowned by the archbishop of York. Becket, elated by the victory which he had gained over his sovereign, on his arrival in Eng- land suspended the archbishop of York, and excommuni- cated the bishops of London and Salisbury, who had as- sisted at the coronation of the prince. When the suspended and excommunicated prelates ar- rived at Baieux, where the king then resided, and inform- ed him of the violent proceedings of Becket, he was vehe- mently agitated, and burst forth in an exclamation againsi his seiTants, whose want of zeal, he said, had so long left him exposed to the enterprises of that ungrateful and im- perious prelate. Four gentlemen of his household, Regi- nald Fitz-TJrse, William de Traci, Hugh de Moreville, and Richard Brito, taking these passionate expressions to be a hint for the primate's death, immediately communi- cated their thoughts to each other ; and swearing to avenge their prince's quarrel, secretly withdrew from court. The four assassins, though they took different roads to Eng- land, arrived nearly at the same time at Saltwood, near Canterbury ; and being there joined by some assistants, they proceeded in great haste to tlie archiepiscopal palace. They found the primate, who trusted entirely to the sa- credness of his character, very slenderly attended ; and though they threw out many menaces and reproaches against him, he was so incapable of fear, that, without using any precautions against their violence, he immedi- ately proceeded to St. Benedict's church to hear vespers. They followed him thither, attacked him before the altar, and having cloven his head with many blows, retired with- out experiencing any opposition. Such was the tragical end of Thomas a Becket, a prelate of the most lofty, in- trepid, and inflexible spirit, who was able to cover to the HENRY II. 51 world, and probably to himself, the ente-rprises of pride and ambition, under the disguise of sanctity, and of zeal for the interests of*religion. The intelligence of Becket's murder threw the king into the greatest consternation ; and he was immediately sen- sible of the dangerous consequences which he had to ap- prehend from so horrible an event. However, the rage of Alexander was appeased, by the ministers of Henry ma- king oath before the whole consistory of their sovereign's innocence, and engaging that he would make every sub- mission which should be required of him. Becket was afterwards canonized by the pope ; and pilgrimages were performed to obtain his intercession with heaven. Heniy, finding himself in no immediate danger from the thunders of the Vatican, undertook an expedi- , i ^^ tion against Ireland. That island, about the mid- dle of the twelfth century, besides many small tribes, contained five principal sovereignties, Munster, Leinster, Meath, Ulster, and Connaught ; and, as it had been usual for one or the other of these to take the lead in their wars, there was commonly some prince, who seemed, for the time, to act as monarch of Ireland. Roderic O'Connor, king of Connaught, was then advanced to this dignity ; but his government, ill obeyed even within his own territoiy, could not unite the people in any measures either for the establishment of order, or for defence against foreigners. Dermot Macmorrogh, king of Leinster, having rendered himself obnoxious by his licentious tyranny, had been ex- pelled his dominions by a confederacy, of which Con- naught was the chief. The exiled prince applied to Henry for succour, who gave Dermot no other assistance than letters patent, by which he empowered all his subjects to aid him in the recovery of his dominions. Dermot formed a treaty with Richard, surnamed Strongbow, earl of Stri- gal ; who stipulated, for this assistance, a promise that he should marry his daughter Eva, and be declared heir to all his territories. Dermot also engaged in his service Robert Fitz-Stephens, constable of Abertivi, and Maurice Fitz-Gerald, and obtained their promise of invading Ire- land ; he himself privately returned to his own state, con- cealed himself in a monastery which he had founded, and prepared every thing for the reception of his English aUies. S2 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. The troops of Fitz-Stephens were first ready. That gentleman landed in Ireland with thirty knights, sixty es- quires, and three hundred archers. The conjunction of Maurice de Pendergast, who about the same time brought over ten knights and sixty archers, enabled Fitz-Stephens to attempt the siege of Wexford, a town inhabited by the Danes ; and after gaining an advantage, he made himself master of the place. Soon after, Fitz-Gerald arrived with ten knights, thirty esquires, and a hundred archers ; and being joined by the former adventurers, composed a force which nothing in Ireland was able to withstand. Roderic, the chief monarch of the island, was foiled in different ac- tions ; the prince of Ossoiy was obliged to submit, and give hostages for his peaceable behaviour; and Demiot, not content with being restored to his kingdom of Leinster, projected the dethroning of Roderic, and aspired to the sole dominion of Ireland. In prosecution of these views, he sent over a messenger to the earl of Strigul, challenging the performance of his promise, and displaying the mighty advantages which might now be reaped by a reinforcement of warlike troops from England. Strongbow first sent over Raymond, one of his retinue, with ten knights, and seventy archers ; and as Richard himself, who brought over two hundred horse and a body of archers, joined them a few days after, the English made themselves masters of Waterford, and pro- ceeded to Dublin, which was taken by assault. Richard, marrying Eya, became soon after, by the death of Dermot, master of the kingdom of Leinster, and prepared to ex- tend his authority over all Ireland. Henry, jealous of the progress of his own subjects, sent orders to recall all the EngUsh ; and that monarch him- self landed in Ireland at the head of five hundred knights. The adventurers appeased him by offering to hold all their acquisitions in vassalage to his crown ; and the Irish, being dispiri-ted by their misfortunes, nothing more was neces- sary than to receive their submission. The whole island was formally annexed to the English crown ; and Henry, after granting to earl Strigul the commission of seneschal of Ireland, returned in triumph to England. The king had appointed Hemy, his eldest son, to be his successor in the kingdom of England, the duchy of Nor- mandy, and the counties of Anjou, Maine, and Tourainej Edwy and Elgiva. BeckeVs Death. HENKY It. 5^ Richard, liis second son, was invested in the duchy of Guienne and county of Poictou ; GeofFeiy, his third son, inherited, in right of his wife, the duchy of Brittany ; and the new conquest of Ireland was destined for the appa- nage of John, his fourth son. But this exahation of his family excited the jealousy of all his neighbours, who made those very sons, whose fortunes he had so anxiously esta- blished, the means of embittering his future life, and dis- turbing his government. Young Henry had been persuaded by Lewis of France, that by the ceremony of coronation, in the life of his father, he was entitled to sovereignty. In consequence of these extravagant ideas, he desired the king to resign to him either the crown of England, or the duchy of Nor- mandy ; and on the king refusing to grant his request, he fled to Paris. Whilst Henry was alarmed at this incident, his uneasiness was increased by the conduct of his queen, Eleanor, who was not less troublesome to her present husband by her jealousy, in regard to fair Rosamond and others, than she had been to her former by her gallantries. She communicated her discontents to her two younger sons, Geoffery and Richard; persuaded them that they were also entitled to the present possession of the territo- ries which had been assigned them, and induced them to flee secretly to the court of France. Thus Europe saw with astonishment three boys, scarcely arrived at puberty, pretend to dethrone their father, a monarch in the full vigour of his age, and plenitude of his power. The king of England was obliged to seek for auxiliaries in the tribes of banditti, who, under the name of Braban- 90ns, or Cottereaux, proffered their swords to the most liberal employer. At the head of twenty thousand of these hardy and lawless ruffians, and the few troops that he had brought from Ireland, he attacked and defeated the French army, and crushed the insurgents in Brittany. He con- tinued his negotiations in the midst of victory, and offered to his undutiful sons the most liberal terms; but these were rejected by the confederates, who depended on the league they had concerted with the king of Scotland, and several of the most powerful barons of England. In consequence of that league, the king of S-cotland brolce into the northern provinces with a great army of eighty thousand men ; and Henry, who had baffled all his 5* 54 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. enemies in France, and had put his frontiers in a posture of defence, now found England the seat of danger. He landed at Southampton ; and knowing the influence of superstition over the minds of the people, he hastened to Canterbury, in order to make atonement to the canonized ashes of Thomas a Becket. As soon as he came within sight of the church of Canterbury, he dismounted, walked barefoot towards it, prostrated himself before the shrine of the saint, remained in fasting and prayer during a whole day, and watched all night the holy relicks. He also assembled a chapter of the monks, disrobed himself before them, put a scourge of discipline into the hands of each, and presented his bare shoulders to the lashes which these ecclesiastics inflicted upon him. Next day he re- ceived absolution ; and departing for London, soon after received the agreeable intelligence of a great victory which his generals had obtained over the Scots, in which William their king was taken prisoner, and which being gained, as was reported, on the very day of his absolution, was regarded as the earnest of his final reconciliation with Heaven and with Thomas h Becket. This victory was decisive in favour of Henry, and en- tirely broke the spirit of the English rebels. In a few weeks all England was restored to tranquility. Lewis, the king of France, was obliged to consent to a cessation of arms, and engaged with sincerity in a treaty of peace ; and Henry, after granting to his sons much less favourable terms than he had formerly offered, received their submis- sions. It cost the king of Scots the ancient independency of his crown, as the price of his liberty. William stipu- lated to do homage to Henry for Scotland and all his other possessions ; and the English monarch engaged the king and states of Scotland to make a perpetual cession of the fortresses of Berwick and Roxbury, and to allow the cas- tle of Edinburgh to remain in his hands for a limited time. This was the fii'st great ascendant which England had over Scotland ; and indeed the first important transaction between the kingdoms. A few years after, Henry found his eldest son again en- gaged in conspiracies, and ready to'take arms against him. But while the young prince was conducting these intrigues, he was seized with a fever at Martel, a castle near Tu- RICHARD I. 55 renne, where he died full of remorse for his undutiful be- haviour to his father. A crusade had been once more projected ; but Philip, who tilled the throne of France, and was jealous of Hen- ry's power, entered into a private confederacy with young Richard. Philip demanded that Richard should be crown- ed king of England, be immediately invested with all his father's transmarine dominions, and espouse Alice, Philip's sister, to whom he had been already affianced. Henry refused to accede to these stipulations ; but experiencing a reverse of fortune, he was at length obliged to submit to the rigorous terms which, vmder the mediation of the duke of Burgundy, were offered to him. The mortification, however, which Henry endured on this occasion, was increased by discovering that his fourth son, John, who had ever been his favourite, had secretly entered into the unnatural confederacy which Richard had formed against him. The unhappy father, already over- loaded with cares and sorrows, finding this last disappoint- ment in his domestic tenderness, broke out into expres- sions of the utmost despair, cursed the day on which he received his miserable being, and bestovt^ed on his ungrate- ful and undutiful children a malediction which he could never be prevailed on to retract. The agitation of his mind threw him into a lingering fever, of which he ex- pired at the castle of Chinon, near Saumur, in the fifty- eighth year of his age, and the thirty-fifth of his reign ; and he was buried at Fontervrault. Henry was the greatest prince of his time for wisdom and abilities, and the most powerful, in extent of domi- nion, of all that had filled the throne of England. His character, in private as well as in public life, is almost without a blemish; and he seems to have possessed every accomplishment, both of body and mind, which renders a man either estimable or amiable. He loved peace, but possessed both bravery and abilities in war ; he was pro- vident without timidity ; severe in the execution of justice without rigour ; and temperate without austerity. The remorse of Richard for his undutiful behaviour towards his father, influenced him in the choice of his' servants after his succession. Those who had t' ^' ''•""'^"red his rebellion were on all occasions treated iisregard and contempt, whilst the faithful ministers 56 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. of Henry, who had opposed the enterprises of his sonSj were continued in those offices which they had honoura- hly discharged to their former master. The love of mihtary glory impelled the king to act, from the beginning of his reign, as if the sole purpose of his government had been the relief of the Holy Land, and the recovery of Jerusalem from the Saracens. This zeal against infidels, being communicated to his subjects, broke out in London on the day of his coronation ; when some Jews, who had presumed, contrary to the orders of the king, to approach the hall in which he dined, were dragged forth, and put to death, and vengeance fell on their inno- cent brethren. Listantly, their houses were broken open, their effects plundered, and themselves slaughtered. The inhabitants of other cities followed the example of the peo- ple of London ; and in York, five hundred .lews, who had retired into the castle, finding themselves unable to defend it, murdered their own wives and children, and, setting fire to the house, perished in the flames. Richard, regardless of every other consideration than the expedition to the Holy Land, endeavoured to obtain supplies for the exigencies of so perilous a war, by every expedient which he could devise. He put to sale the reve- nues and manors of the crown, and the offices of greatest tiTJSt and power. He yielded up for ten thousand marks the vassalage of Scotland, with the fortresses of Roxbo- rough and Berwick. He even declared, that he would sell London itself, could he find a purchaser. He left the administration in the hands of Hugh, bishop of Durham, and of Longchamp, bishop of Ely; and, accompanied by all the military and fiery spirits of the kingdom, set out for the frontiers of Burgundy, where he had engaged to meet the French king. In the plains of Vezelay, Richard and Phihp reviewed their forces, and found their combined army amount to one hundred thousand men; and after repeating their vows of friendship to each other, they separated, Richard embarking at Marseilles, and Philip at Genoa. They reached Messina about the same time, and passed the winter in Sicily, where several quarrels broke out between the troops of the diflferent nations ; and these were com- municated to the two kings, who, however, waiving imme diate jealousies, proceeded to the Holy Land. R1C1IAU1> 1 The English army arrived in time to partake in th«j siege of Acre or Ptolemais, which had been attacked for more than two years by the united force of all the clins- tians in Palestine. The siege of Acre was pressed with redoubled ardour ; but the harmony of the chiefs was of short duration. The opposite views of Richard and Philip produced faction ana dissention in the christian army, and retarded all its operations. But as the length of the siege had reduced the Saracen garrison to the last extremity, they surrendered themselves prisoners ; and the gates of Acre were opened to the conquerors. On the surrender of this place, Philip, disgusted with the ascendancy acquired by Richard, declared his resolu- tion of returning to France, under the plea of a bad state of health. He left, however, to the king of England, ten thousand of his troops, under the command of the duke of Bui'gundy, and engaged by oath not to commence hostili- ties against that prince's dominions during his absence ; but he no sooner reached home, than he proceeded, though secretly, in a project which the present situation of Eng-* land rendered inviting. Immediately after Richard had left England, the two prelates, whom he had appointed guardians of the realm, broke out into animosities against each other, and threw the kingdom into confusion. Longchamp, naturally pre- sumptuous, and armed with the legatine commission, hesi- tated not to arrest his colleague, the bishop of Durham, and governed the kingdom by his sole authority. At length, he had the temerity to throw into prison Geoffrey, archbishop of York. This breach of ecclesiastical privi- leges excited such an universal ferment, that prince John summoned the guardian before a council of the nobility and prelates. Longchamp, conscious of his error, fled beyond sea, and was deprived of his offices of chancellor and chief justiciary , but his commission of legate still enabled him to disturb the government. Philip not only promoted his intrigues, but entered into a corres- pondence with John, to whom he promised his sis- ^' ij^ ter Alice in marriage, and the possession of all Richard's transmarine dominions. John was with diffi- culty deterred from this enterprise by the vigilance of his mother, and the menaces of the council. The jealousy of Philip was excited by the glory which 58 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. the actions of Richard gained him in the east. The king of England obtained a complete victory over the Saracens, of whom forty thousand are said to have perished in the field of battle ; he recovered Ascalon, and advanced within sight of Jerusalem, the object of his enterprise ; but long absence, fatigue, disease, and want, had abated the ardour of the crusaders. Every one, except the king of England, expressed a desire of returning into Europe. Richard was forced to yield to their importunities ; and he con- cluded a truce with Saladin, by which the christians were left in possession of Acre, Joppa, and other sea-port towns of Palestine, and were allowed a free pilgrimage to Jeru- salem. As Richard was acquainted with the intrigues of Philip, he ventured not to pass through France on his return, but sailed to the Adriatic ; and being shipwrecked near Aqui- leia, he put on the disguise of a pilgrim, and endeavoured to pursue his route through Germany. At Vienna he was arrested by orders of Leopold, duke of Austria, and by him he was sold to the emperor Henry VI., who affected to consider him as an enemy, on account of an alliance which he had contracted with Tancred, king of Sicily. Thus Richard, who had filled the world with his renown, was confined in a dungeon, and loaded with irons. The king of France prepared to avail himself of his misfortunes. Philip entered into negotiations with tioQ prince John, who stipulated to deliver to the king of France a great part of Normandy, and received, in return, the investiture of all Richard's transmarine do- minions. In consequence of this treaty, Philip invaded Normandy, and by the treachery of John's adherents over- ran a great part of it ; but he was repulsed from the walls of Rouen, by the gallantry of the earl of Leicester. Prince John was not more successful in his attempt in England : though he made himself master of the castles of Windsoi' and Wallingford, yet finding the barons every where averse to his cause, he was obliged to retire again to France. In the mean time, Richard, in Germany, suffered every kind of insult and indignity ; he was accused by Henry, before the diet of the empire, of making an alliance with Tancred, the usurper of Sicily ; of afi*ronting the duke ol Austria before Acre ; of obstructing the progress of the christian arms by his quarrels with the king of France ; mCHARD I» 59 and of concluding a truce with Saladin, and leaving Jeru- salem in the hands of the Saracen emperor. Richard, after deigning to apologise for his conduct, burst out into indignation at the cruel treatment which he had met with ; and the emperor, finding it impracticable to detain the king of England longer in captivity, agreed to restore him to his freedom for the sum of one hundred and fifty thou- sand marks, or about three hundred thousand pounds of our present money. The joy of the English was extreme on the appearance of their monarch, who was crowned anew at Winchester, as if to wipe off" the ignominy of captivity. As soon as Philip heard of the king's deliverance, he wrote to his confederate John in these terms : " take care of yourself — the devil is broken loose." John, however, anxious to disengage himself from an associate whose fortunes seem- ed declining, threw himself at his brother's feet, and im- plored his mercy. "I forgive you," said the king, " and hope I shall as easily forget your injuries, as you will my pardon." The Idng of France was the great object of Richard's resentment and animosity ; and during five years after the king's return, the two sovereigns were engaged in a series of faithless negotiations and desultory warfare. The car- dinal of St. Mary, the pope's legate, was employed in changing a truce into a durable peace, when the death of Richard put an end to the negotiation. Vidomer, viscount of Limoges, having found a treasui'e, it wa's claimed by Richard, as his superior lord ; and that nobleman was besieged by the king in the castle of Cha- lons. As Richard approached to survey the works, one Bertrand de Gourdon, an archer, pierced his shoulder with an arrow. The wound was not dangerous ; but the un- skilfulness of the surgeon rendered it mortal. The king, sensible that his end was approaching, sent for Gourdon, and said, " wretch, what have I ever done to you, to in- duce you to seek my hfe ?" The prisoner coolly replied, " you killed with your own hands my father and my two brothers : I am now in your power, and you may take revenge, by inflicting on me the most severe torments ; but I shall endure them with pleasure, provided I ca-.i think that I have been so happy as to rid the world from such a nuisance." The miiid of Richard was softened by CO HISTORY OF ENGLAND* tlie near approach of death, and the magnanimity of Gour- don ; he ordered him to be set at Hberty, and a simi of money to be given him ; but Marcadee, one of Richard's generals, privately seized the unhappy man, flayed him alive, and then hanged him. Thus died Richard, in the tenth year of his reign, and the forty-second of his age. The most shining parts of his character are his military talents, and his personal courage, which gained him the appellation of " Cojur de Lion," or " the Lion-hearted." He was, however, a pas- sionate lover of poetry ; and some poetical works of his composition are still extant. He left behind him no issue ; and by his last will, he declared his brother John heir to all his dominions, though by a formal deed before he em- barked for the Holy Land, he had named as his successor, his nephew Arthur, duke of Brittany, the son of Geoffrey, elder brother of John, who was now only twelve years of age. The barons of the transmarine provinces, Anjou, Maine, and Touraine, declared in favour of Arthur, and IIQQ ^Ppli^d for assistance to the French monarch. Philip, who desired only an occasion to embarrass John, and to dismember his dominions, embraced the cause of the young duke of Brittany. John, after being acknowledged in Normandy and England, returned to France, in order to conduct the war against Philip. No- thing enabled the king to bring matters to a happy issue so much as the selfish and intriguing character of the French monarch. Constantia, the mother of Arthur, was jealous that Philip intended to usurp the entire dominion of the provinces which had declared for her son. She, therefore, secretly carried off her son from Paris, put him into the hands of his uncle, restored the provinces which had adhered to him, and made him do homage for the duchy of Brittany, which was regarded as a fief of Nor- mandy. As Philip, after this incident, saw that he could not car.ry on the war with success, he entered into a treaty with John, in which the limits of their territories were ad- justed ; and, to render their union more permanent, the king of England gave his niece, Blanche of Castile, in marriage to prince Louis, Philip's eldest son, and with her the baronies of Issoudua and Gracai, and other fiefs in Berri. Thus secure, as lie imagined, on the side of France, JOHN. 61 John indulged his passion for Isabella, the daughter of the count of Angouleme, a lady with whom he joa/. had become much enamoured. Though his queen, "^ the heiress of the family of Gloucester, was still alive, and Isabella was betrothed to the count of Marche, the passion of the king overcame every obstacle ; he persuaded the count of AngouJeme to carry off his daughter from her husband ; and having procured a divorce from his wife, he espoused Isabella, regardless of the menaces of the people, and of the resentment of the injured count. John had not the art of attaching his barons either by affection or by fear. The count of Marche taking advantage of the general discontent against him, i^ai excited commotions in Poictou and Normandy, and obliged the king to have recourse to arms in order to suppress the insurrection of his vassals. He summoned together the barons of England, and required them to pass the sea under his standard, and to quell the rebels ; but he found that he possessed as little authority in that king- dom as in his transmarine provinces. The English ba- rons unanimously replied, that they would not attend him on this expedition, unless he would promise to restore and preserve their privileges ; but John, by menaces, engaged many of them to follow him into Normandy, and obliged the rest to pay the price of their exemption from service. The force which the king carried with him, and that which joined him in Normandy, rendered him greatly su- perior to the malcontents ; but, elated with his superiority, he advanced claims which gave an universal alarm to his vassals, and diffused still wider the general discontent. The king of France, to whom the complainants appealed for redress, interposed in behalf of the French barons. Whilst matters were thus circumstanced, the duke of Brittany, who was rising to man's estate, joined the king of France and the revolted nobles. Impatient of military renown, the young prince had entered Poictou with a small army, and had invested Mirabeau, in which was his grand- mother, queen Eleanor, when John attacked his camp, dis- persed his army, and took him prisoner. The king repre- sented to Arthur the folly of his pretensions, and required him to renounce the French alliance ; but the brave, though imprudent youth, maintained the justice of his cause, and asserted his claim not only to the French provinces, but to 6 02 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. the crown of England. John, sensible, from these symp- toms of spirit, that the youn^ prince might hereafter prove a dangerous rival, ordered him to be despatched ; but when he found that his commands had not been obeyed, the cruel tyrant stabbed him with his own hands, and fastening a stone to the dead body, t^^rew it into the Seine. All men were struck with horror at this inhuman deed ; and from that moment the king, who was now detested by his subjects, retained a very precarious authority over both the people and the barons in his dominions. As John had got into his power his niece Eleanor, sister to Arthur, the Bretons chose for their sovereign Alice, a younger daughter of Constantia, by a second marriage. They also solicited the assistance of Philip, who received their appli- cation with pleasure, summoned John to a trial, and on his non-appearance, declared him to have forfeited to his superior lord all his fiefs in France. The king of France perceived the opportunity favoura- ble for expelling the English, or rather the English king, and of re-annexing to the French crown so many conside- rable appendages, of which, during several ages, it had been dismembered. Philip extended his conquests along the banks of the Loire, v/hile John consumed his liours at Rouen in pastimes and amusements. " Let the French go on," said he, " I will retake in a day what it has cost them years to acquire." Yet, instead of fulfilling this vaunt, he meanly applied to the pope. Innocent III., who ordered Philip to stop the progress of his arms, and to conclude a peace with the king of England. Philip, however, instead of obeying the orders of the pope, laid siege to Chateau Gaillard, the most considerable fortress on the frontiers of Normandy, which was taken by a sud- den assault in the night. When the bulwark of Nor- mandy was once subdued, the whole province was open to the inroads of Philip. The French king proceeded to invest Ilouen, the inhabitants of which demanded thirty days to advertise their prince of their danger. Upon the expiration of that term they opened their gates ; and Philip, leading his victorious army into the western pro- vinces, soon reduced Anjou, Maine, Touraine, and part of Poictou. John made a feeble attempt to recover his transmarine dominions, by landing a considerable army at Kochelle ; but the approach of Philip threw him into a JOHN. (Ki panic, and he deserted his troops, and returned to England with shame and disgrace. The mediation of the pope procured him a trace for two years with the French monarch ; but almost all the transmarine provinces were wrested from him ; and the church, which, at that time, declined not a contest with the most powerful monarchs, took advantage of John's imbecility. Innocent the Third, a prelate of a lofty and enterpri- sing genius, attempted to convert the superiority yielded him by all the European princes into a real icjny dominion over them. A dispute respecting an election to the see of Canterbury, aiForded Innocent an opportunity of claiming a right to nominate the primate of England. Availing himself of this opportunity, he commanded the monks or canons of Christ -church, who had hitherto possessed that important privilege, to choose, on pain of excommunication, cardinal Langton, an Eng- lishman by birth, but connected by interest and attach- ment to the see of Rome. In vain the monks represented, that an election, without a previous writ from the king, would be highly irregular; and that they were merely agents for another person, whose right they could not abandon. One only persevered in this opposition ; the rest, overcome by the menaces and authority of the pope, complied with his mandate. John was inflamed with the utmost rage when he heard of this interference of the court of Rome ; and he imme- diately vented his passion on the monks of Christ-church, whom he expelled the monastery. When it was intimated to him that if he persevered in his disobedience, the sove- reign pontiff would be obliged to lay the kingdom under an interdict, the king burst out into violent invectives, and swore if the pope attempted such a measure, that he would send to him all the bishops and clergy in England, and confiscate all their estates. These sallies of passion, how- ever, were disregarded by the Roman pontiff, Avho, sensi- ble that John had lost the confidence of the people, at (ength fulminated the sentence of interdict. The execution of this sentence was calculated to strike with awe the minds of a superstitious people. The nation was of a sudden deprived of all exterior exercise of its re- ligion; the altars were despoiled of their ornaments ; the dead were not interred in consecrated ground, but were 64 IliSTORi' OF ENGLAND. thrown into ditches, or buried in common fields ; marriage was solemnized in the church-yards ; and every circum- stance carried symptoms of the most immediate appre- hension of divine vengeance. The king, that he might oppose his temporal to their spiritual terrors, confiscated the estates of all the clergy who obeyed the interdict ; and treated with the utmost rigour the adherents of the church of Rome. Though some of the clergy, from the dread of punishment, obeyed the orders of John, and celebrated divine service, yet tliey complied with the utmost reluctance, and were regarded, both by themselves and the people, as men who betrayed their principles, and sacrificed their conscience to their fears or their interests. As the interdict had not reduced the king to obedience, and the people had not risen in rebellion, the court 1*2(tQ ^^ Ronie determined to proceed to excommunica- tion. John was now alarmed at his dangerous situation. In a conference at Dover, he ofiered to ac- knowledge Langton as primate, to submit to the pope, and to restore the exiled clergy ; but Langton demanding the full reparation for the rents of their confiscated estates, the king broke oft' the conference. Innocent immediately absolved John's subjects from their oaths of fidelity and allegiance ; declared every one excommunicated who held any intercourse with him ; deposed him from his throne ; and off'ered the crown of England to the king of France. Philip was seduced by interest to accept this offer of the pontiff". He levied a great army, and collected in the ports of Normandy and Picardy a fleet of one thousand seven hundred vessels. To oppose him, John assembled at Dover an army of sixty thousand men ; a force sufficient, had they been animated with zeal ; but the minds of the common people were impressed with superstition ; the barons were all disgusted with the tyranny of the king ; and the incapacity and cowardice of John augmented his difficulties. The obstinacy of the humbled monarch at length gave way, when Pandolf, the pope's legate, repre- sented to him the certainty of his ruin, from the disaffec- tion of his subjects, and the mighty armament of France. John now agreed to all the conditions Avhich Prtndolf was pleased to impose. He passed a charter, in which he de- clared he had, for the remission of his own sins, and those JoKtCs svhmission to the Pope Death of Prince Arthur JOHN. 6!> of his family, resigned England and Ireland to God, to St. Peter and St. Paul, and to pope Innocent and his suc- cessors in the apostolic chair ; agreeing to hold those domi- nions as feudatories of the church of Rome, by the annual payment of a thousand marks. He did homage to Pan- dolf in the most abject manner : he fell on his knees oe- fore the legate, who was seated on the throne ; swore fealty to the pope ; and paid part of the money \Fhich he owed for his kingdom as the patrimony of St. Peter; whilst the legate, elated by the triumph of sacerdotal power, tram- pled on the money which was laid at his feet, as an earnest of the subjection of the kingdom. When Pandolf returned to France, he informed Philip, that John had returned to obedience under the apostolic, see, and even consented to do homage to the pope for his dominions; and that, as his kingdom now formed _a part of St. Peter's patrimony, it would be impious in any chris- tian prince to attack him. Philip was enraged on recei- ving this intelligence, and threatened to execute his enter* prise against England, notwithstanding the inhibitions and menaces of the legate ; but the English fleet, under the command of the earl of Salisbury, the king's natural bro- ther, attacked the French in their harbours, and by the destruction of the greater part of their armament, com- pelled Philip to abandon the enterprise. The introduction of the feudal system into England by William the conqueror, had infringed on the liberties en- joyed by the Anglo-Saxons, and had reduced the people to a state of vassalage, and in some respects of real slave- ry, to the king or barons. The necessity, also, of entrust- ing great power in the hands of a prince, who was to main- tain military dominion over a vanquished nation, had en- gaged the Norman barons to submit to a more severe and absolute prerogative, than that to which men of their rank were commonly subjected ; and England, during a course of an hundred and fifty years, was governed by an autho- rity unknown, in the same degree, to all the kingdo)ns founded by the northern conquerors. Henry the first, that he might allure the people to exclude his elder brother, Robert, had granted them a charter, favourable, in many particulars, to their liberties ; Stephen had renewed the grant ; Henry the second had confirmed it ; but the con- cessions of all these princes had remained a dead letter ; 6* G6 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. when John, equally odious and contemptible, both in public and private life, provoked the people to form a ge- neral confederacy, and to demand a restoration of their privileges. Nothing forwarded this confederacy so much as the coi- currence of Langton, archbishop of Canterbury ; a man whose memory, though he was obtruded on the nation by a palpable encroachment of the see of Rome, ought always to be respected by the English. This prelate formed the pkii of reforming the government, and paved the way for it, by inserting a clause in the oath Avliich he administered to the king, before he would absolve him from excommuni- cation, " that he would re-establish the good laws of his predecessors, and abolish the wicked ones, and maintain justice and right in all his dominions." Soon after he showed to some of the barons a copy of the charter oi Henry the first, which, he said, he had found in a: monas- tery, and exhoi'ted them to insist on its renewal. The ba- rons swore they would lose their lives sooner than desist from so reasonable a demand. The confederacy now spread wider ; and a more numerous meeting was summon- ed by Langton at St. Edmund's-Bury, under colour of devotion. The barons, inflamed by the eloquence of the prelate, and incited by the sense of their OAvn wrongs, took an oath before the altar, to adhere to each other, and to make endless war on the king, till he should grant their demands. They agreed that they would prefer in a body their common petition ; and that, in the mean time, they would enlist men and purchase arms, and supply their cas- tles with necessary provisions. On a day appointed, the barons appeared in London, and required the king, in consequence of his oath '\'iy?^ before the primate, as well as in deference to their just rights, to renew the charter of Heniy, and con- firm the laws of St. Edward. The king, alarmed at their zeal and unanimity, as well as their power, asked for a de- lay, which was granted. The interval was employed by John in appealing to the pope against the violence of the barons. Innocent, who foresaw that if the administration should fall into the hands of a high-spirited nobility, they would vindicate the liberty and independence of the nation, exhorted the prelates to employ their good offices in put- ting an end to civil discord, expressed his disapprobation JOHN. 67 of the conduct of the barons, and advised the king to grant such demands as should appear reasonable. Though the barons perceived that the pope was inimical to their interests, yet they had advanced too far to recede from their pretensions ; and they foresaw, that the thunders of Rome, when not seconded by the efforts of the Eng- lish ecclesiastics, would avail little against them. At the time, therefore, when they were to expect the king's an- swer to their petition, they met at Stamford, and assem- bled their forces, consistingof about two thousand knights, besides retainers and inferior persons without number. Elated with their power, they advanced in a body to Brack- ley, within twenty miles of Oxford, the place where the court then resided ; and where they received a message from the king, desiring to know what those liberties were, which they so zealously required from their sovereign. They delivered to the messenger a schedule, containing the chief articles of their demand ; which was no sooner shown to John, than he burst into a furious passion, swear- ing he would never grant such privileges as must reduce himself to slavery. The confederated nobles, informed of his answer, pro- ceeded without farther ceremony to levy war upon the king. They besieged the castle of Northampton, were admitted into that of Bedford, occupied Ware, and entered London without opposition. They laid waste the royal parks and palaces ; and all the barons, who had hitherto appeared to support the king, openly joined a cause which they had secretly favoured. So universal was the defec- tion, that the king was left at Odiham, in Hampshire, with 1 retinue of only seven knights ; and after trying several expedients, and offering to refer ail differences to the pope, he found himself at last obliged to yield without reserve. A conference between the king and the barons was held at Runnymede, between Windsor and Staines ; a place which has ever since been celebrated, * n account of that great event. After a debate of a few < ays, the king, with a facility rather suspicious, signed and sealed j ^g the famous deed called magna charta, or the ' GREAT CHARTER, which either granted or secu- 191 4 red very important liberties to the clergy, the barons, and the people. The articles of this charter con- lain such mitigations asfld explanations of the feudal law 6S HISTORY OF fiNGLAND* as ate reasonable and equitable ; and also involve all the chief outlines of a legal government, providing for the equal distribution of justice and the free enjoyment of propertj'. The barons obliged the king to agree that London should remain in their hands, and the Tower be consigned to the custody of the primate, till the execution of the charter. John also allowed the confederates to choose from their own body twenty-five members, to whose authority no limits were prescribed, either in extent or duration. All men throughout the kingdom were obliged, under the pe- nalty of confiscation, to swear obedience to the twenty-five barons ; and the freeholders of each county were to choose twelve knights, who should make reports of such evil customs as required redress, conformably to the tenor of the great charter. John apparently submitted to all these regulations, how^- ever injurious to majesty ; but he only awaited a proper opportunity for annulling his concessions. He retired to the Isle of Wight, where he meditated the most fatal ven- geance against his enemies. He secretly sent his emissa- ries to enlist foreign troops, and to invite the rapacious BrabanQons into his servdce ; and he despatched a mes- senger to Rome, to complain, before that tribunal, of tlie violence which had been imposed upon him. Innocent, considering himself as feudal lord of the kingdom, issued a bull, by which he annulled the whole charter, as unjust in itself, and derogatory to the dignity of the apostolic see. He prohibited the barons from exacting the observance of it ; he prohibited the king from paying any regard to it ; and he pronounced a general sentence of excommunica- tion against every one who should persevere in maintain- ing such iniquitous proceedings. As the foreign forces aiTived along with this bull, the king, under the sanction of the pope's decree,* threw ofi^ the mask. The barons, enticed into a fatal security, had taken no rational measures for re-assembling their armies. The king was master of the field ; his rapacious mercena- ries were let loose against the estates, the tenants, the houses, and parks of the nobility ; nothing was to be seen but the flames of villages, and castles reduced to ashes, * To the honour of Langton, the primate he refused to publish the papal mandate. JOHN. 69 the consternation and misery of the inhabitants, and the tortures exercised by the soldiers to cause them to reveal then' concealed treasures. The king, marching through the whole extent of England, from Dover to Berwick, laid the provinces waste on each side of him, and considered every part of the country, which was not his immediate pro- perty, as hostile, and the object of military execution. The barons, reduced to this desperate extremity, erij- ployed a remedy no less desperate. They applied to the court of France, and oiFered to acknovrledge ^^^A Lewis, the eldest son of Philip, as their sovereign, provided he would protect them from the violence of the tyrant. The prospect of such a prize rendered Philip re- gardless of the menaces of the court of Rome, w^hich threat- ened him with excommunication if he attacked a prince under the protection of the holy see ; but he refused to intrust his son and heir to the caprice of the English, unless they would deliver to him twenty-five of their most illustrious nobles, as hostages for their fidelity ; and having obtained this security, he sent over Lewis with a nume- rous army. In consequence of that young prince's appearance in England, John's foreign troops, being mostly levied in Flanders, and other provinces of France, refused to serve against the heir of their monarchy. Many considerable noblemen deserted John's party ; his castles fell daily into the hands of the enemy ; and Dover was the only place which resisted the progress of Lewis. But the union be- tween the English and the French was of short duration ; the preference of Lev/is to the latter soon excited the jea- lousy of the former ; and the French began to apprehend a sudden reverse of fortune. The king was assembling a considerable army, with an intention of fighting one great battle for his crown ; but passing from Lynne to Lincoln- shire, his road lay along the sea-shore, which was over- flowed at high-water, and not choosing the proper time for his journey, he lost in the inundation all his carriages, trea- sure, baggage, and regalia. The affliction for this disas- ter, and vexation from the distracted state of his afi^airs, increased an indisposition under which he then laboured ; and though he reached the castle of Newark, he soon after died, in the forty-ninth year of his age, and the eighteenth of his reign- He left two legitimate sons, Henry and 70 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Richard, the eldest of whom was only nine years old, and the other seven. The character of John is a complication of vices equal- ly mean and odious ; cowardice, levity, licentiousness, in- gi-atrtude, treachery, tyranny, and cruelty. It is hard to say whether his conduct to his father, his brother, his nephew, or his subjects, was most culpable. By his mis- conduct he lost the flourishing provinces of France, the ancient patrimony of his family; he subjected his kingdom to a shameful vassalagre under the see of Rome ; and he died when in danger of being totally expelled by a foreign power, and of either ending his life in prison, or in seek- ing shelter as a fugitive from the pursuit of his enemies. CHAP. V. The reigns of Henry III., Edward J., and Edward II. Fortunately for Henry III., as well as for the nation, the earl of Pembroke was, at the time of John's \'iy?^ death, mareschal of England, and at the head of the armies. This nobleman, who had maintained his loyalty to John, was chosen protector of the realm, during the king's minority, by a general council of the ba- rons. That he might reconcile all men to the government of his pupil, he made him grant a new charter of liberties, which, though mostly similar to that extorted from John, contained some alterations. This was followed by a charter of forests, which declared offences committed in the king's forests no longer capital, but only punishable by fine and imprisonment. These charters diffused so much satisfaction as evidently to affect the cause of Lewis. The distrust which the French prince manifested of the fidelity of the English, encouraged the general propensity towards the king. A large detachment of the French was routed near liincoln ; and their fleet suffered a considerable defeat off the coast of Kent. After these events, the malcontent barons has- tened by an early submission to prevent those attainders to which they were exposed on account of their rebeUion ; and Lewis, whose cause was now totally desperate, readily consented to conchide a peace on honourable conditions, promising to evacuate the kingdom, and only stipulating, in return, an indemnity to his adherents, and a restitution HENRY III. 71 of their honours and fortunes. Thus was happily ended a civil war, which had tiireatened the kingdom with the most fatal consequences. The earl of Pembroke did not long survive the pacifica- tion, which had been cliiefly owing to his wisdom and va- lour ; and he was succeeded in the government by Peter des Rosches, bishop of Winchester, and Hubert de Burgh, the justiciary. The counsels of the latter were chiefly followed ; and had he possessed equal influence with Pem- broke, he seemed to be every way worthy of filling the place of that virtuous nobleman. But the licentious and powerful barons, having once broken the reins of subjec- tion to their prince, could ill be restrained by laws under a minority ; and the people, ho less than the king, suffer- ed from their outrages. They retained by force the royal castles ; they usurped the king's demesnes ; they oppress- ed their vassals ; and they protected the worst kind of banditti in their robberies and extortions, in defiance of legal government. As Henry approached to man's estate, his character be- came eveiy day better known, and he was found incapable of maintaining a proper authority over , ^o-y the turbulent barons. Gentle, humane, and mer- ciful, even to a fault, he seems to have been steady in nothing else, but to have received every impression from those who surrounded him. Without activity or vigour, he was unfit to conduct war ; without policy or art, he was ill calculated to maintain peace. His resentments, though hasty and violent, were not dreaded, while he was found to drop them with such facility ; his friendships were little valued, because they were neither derived from choice, nor maintained with constancy. That able and faithful minister, Hubert de Burgh, was in a sudden fit of caprice dismissed by Henry, and exposed to the most violent persecutions. Among other frivolous crimes objected to him, he was accused of gaining the king's affections by enchantments. Hubert was expellee the kingdom, and was again received into favour, and re- covered a great share of the king's confidence ; but he never showed any inclination to reinstate himself in power or authority. Hubert was succeeded in the government of the king 73 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. and kingdom by Peter, bishop of Winchester, a ' * -.o Poictevin by birth, no less distinguished by his ar- bitraiy principles and violent conduct, than by his courage and abilities. Through his advice, Henry invited over a great number of Poictevins, and other foreigners, who, he beheved, could be more safely trusted than the English. Every office was bestowed on these strangers, who exhausted the revenues of the crown, and invaded the rights of the people. A combination of the nobles, formed against tliis odious ministry, was broken by the address of Peter ; the estates of the more obnoxious barons were con- fiscated, without a legal sentence or trial by their peers ; and when the authority of the Great Charter was objected to the king, Henry was wont to reply, " why should I ob- serve this charter, which is neglected by all my grandees, both prelates and nobility V To this it was justly answer- ed, " you ought, sir, to set them the example." So violent an administration as that of the bishop of Winchester could not be of long duration ; yet its fall pro- ceeded from the church, not from the efforts of the nobles. Edmond, the primate, attended by luany other prelates, represented to the king the pernicious measures of Peter, and required the dismission of him and his associates, un- der pain of excommunication. Henry was obliged to sub- mit ; but the English were not long free from the domi- nion of foreigners. The king, having married ^k^A Eleanor, daughter of the count of Provence, was surrounded by a great number of strangers from that country, whom he enriched by the most arbitrary ex- actions upon his subjects. The foreign enterprises of Henry were equally disgrace- ful with his domestic government. In a war with Louis IX., he was stripped of what remained to him of Poictou. His want of economy, and an ill-judged liberality, obliged him to sell all his plate and jewels. When this expedient was first proposed to him, he asked, where he should find purchasers'? It was replied, the citizens of London. *' On my word," said he, " these clowns who assume to themselves the name of barons, abound in every thing, while we are reduced to necessities." The grievances under which the English laboured from the faults of the king, were considerably increased by the usurpations and exactions of the court of Rome. About HENRY Til 73 1229, pope Honorius demanded, and obtained, the tenth of all ecclesiastical revenues. In the year 1240, Otho the legate wrested large sums from the prelates and convents, and is said to have carried more money out of the king- dom than he left in it. The king, who relied on the pop(j for the support of his tottering authority, never failed to countenance those exactions. The successful revolt of the barons from king John had rendered them more sensible of their own importance. The parliament, which seems to have had some authority in this reign, refused an aid, unless Henry would promise, at the same time, a redress of civil and ec- ^ly^', clesiastical grievances, and ratify the great charter in the most solemn manner. To this the king consented ; but, misled by his favourites, he soon resumed the same arbitrary measures of government. The conduct of Henry afforded a pretence to Simon de Montfort, earl of Leicester, for attempting to wrest the sceptre from the feeble hand which held it. ^ly^ This nobleman had espoused Eleanor, dowager to William earl of Pembroke, and sister to the king. His address gained him the affections of all orders of men ; but he lost the friendship of Henry from the usual levity and fickleness of that prince. He was banished the court, recalled, and again disgraced by the king. Being too gi'eat to preserve an entire complaisance to Heniy's hu- mours, and to act in subserviency to the minions of that prince, he found more advantage in cultivating his inte- rests with the public, and in inflaming the general discon- tents. He filled every place with complaints against the infringement of the great charter ; and a quarrel which he had with William de Valence, the king's half-brother, and chief favourite, determined him to give full scope to his ambition. He secretly called a meeting of the most con- siderable barons, particularly Humphrey de Bohun, high constable, Roger Bigod, earl mareschal, and the earls of Warwick and Gloucester. To them he exaggerated the oppressions exercised against the lower orders of the state, the violations of the barons' privileges, and the continual depredations made on the clergy ; and he appealed to the great charter which Henry had so often ratified, and which was calculated to prevent the return of those grievances. He magnified the generosity of their ancestors, who, at the 7 74 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. expense of their blood had extorted that famous concession from tlie crown ; but he lamented their own degeneracy, who allowed so important an advantage to be wrested from them by a weak prince and insolent parasites. These topics were well suited to the sentiments of the company, and the barons embraced a resolution of re- dressing the public grievances, by taking into their own hands the administration of government. Heniy having summoned a parliament, the barons appeared in the hall clad in complete armour, and with their swords by their sides. The king, struck with their unusual appearance, asked, whether they intended to make Jiim their prisoner ? Roger Bigod replied in the name of the rest, " that he was not their prisoner, but their sovereign ; but that, as he liad frequently acknowledged his past errors, and had still allowed himself to be carried in the same path, he must now yield to more strict regulations, and confer authority on those who were able and willing to redress the national grievances." Henry, partly allured by the hope of sup- ply, partly intimidated by the union and martial appear- ance of the barons, agreed to their demand, and promised to summon another parliament at Oxford, in order to di- gest the new plan of government. This parliament, which, from the confusion that at- tended its measures, was afterwards denominated the *' mad parliament," chose twelve barons, to whom were added twelve more from the king's ministers. To these twenty-four, unlimited authority was granted to reform the state ; and as Leicester was at the head of this supreme council, to which the legislative power was in reality transferred, all their measures were taken by his influence and direction. They ordered that four knights should be chosen by each county, Avho should inquire into the grie- vances of the people, and inform the assembly of the state of their particular counties ; that three sessions of parlia- ment should be regularly held every year; that a new sheriff should be annually elected by the votes of the free- holders of each county ; that no heirs should be com.mitted to the wardship of foreigners, and no castles intrusted to their custody ; and that no new warrens or forests should be created, nor the revenues of any counties or hundreds be let to farm. The earl of Leicester and his associates, having pro- HENRY III. /£> weeded so far to satisfy the nation, instead of continuing m this popular course, or granting the king those supplies which they had promised, provided for the extension of their own authority. They displaced all the chief officers of the crown ; and advanced cither themselves or their own creatures in their place. Ti*^ vrhole power of the state being thus transferred to them, they obliged every man to swear, that they would obey and execute all the regulations of the twenty-four barons ; and they chose a committee of twelve persons, who, during the intervals of the sessions, were to possess the whole authority of par- liament. But the stream of popularity rapidly turned against them. Whatever support the barons might have derived from the private power of their families, was weakened by their intestine jealousies and animosities. A violent enmity broke out between the earls of Leicester and Gloucester ; the latter, more moderate in his designs, was desirous of stopping or retarding the usurpations of the barons ; but the former, enraged at the opposition he met with in his own party, pretended to throw up all concern in English affairs, and retired into France. On the death of the earl of Gloucester, who, before his decease, had joined the royal party, Leicester en- tered into a confederacy with Llewellyn, prince of ^lyf^A Wales. Llewellyn invaded England with an army of thirty thousand men, but was repulsed, and obliged to take shelter in the north of Wales. The Welsh invasion was the signal for the malcontent barons to rise in arms. Leicester secretly passed over into England, collected all the forces of his party, and commenced an open rebellion. The power of Leicester's faction increased to such a height, that the king, unable to resist it, was obliged to seek an accommodation. He agreed to confirm the pi*ovisions of Oxford, and reinstated the barons in the sovereignty of the kingdom. The latter summoned a parliament to meet at Westminster, in order to settle the plan of government ; and, in that assembly, they produced a new list of twenty- four barons, whose authority they insisted should continue not only during the reign of the king, but also during that of prince Edward. This prince, the life and soul of the royal party, had been taken prisoner by Leicester in a parley at Windsor j 76 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. and that event had chiefly determined Henry to submit to the ignominious conditions imposed on him by the barons. Edward, however, having recovered his hberty by the treaty, employed his activity in defending the prerogatives of his family. The number of his friends, and the clamour of the people for peace, obliged the earl of Leicester to consent to a second negotiation ; and it was agreed by both sides to submit their differences to the arbitration of the king of France. This virtuous prince had never ceased to intei-pose his good offices between the English factions ; and at Amiens, ki the presence of the states of France, of the king of England, and of Peter de Montfort, Leicester's son, he brought this great cause to a trial. He annulled the pro- visions of Oxford, restored to the king the possession of his castles, and the nomination of the great offices ; but he ordered that a general amnesty should be granted for all past offences, and declared that his award was in no wise meant to derogate from the privileges and liberties which the nation enjoyed by any former charters. This equitable sentence was rejected by Leicester and his confederates, who determined to have recourse A. 1). . ■t'oaA to arms, in which they were assisted by the city of '^>: London. The king and the prince, finding a civil war iiievitable, prepared themselves for defence, and sum- moned to their standard their military vassals ; while Lei- cester, having been reinforced by a great body of Lon- doners, determined to stake the fate of the nation on a decisive engagement. Leicester conducted his marcli with so much skill and secrecy, that he had nearly sur- prised the royalists in their quarters at Lewes, in Sussex ; but the vigilance and activity of prince Edward soon re- paired this negligence. With the van he rushed upon the Londoners, who, from their ignorance of discipline, and want of experience, were ill fit^jed to resist the ardour of Edward and his martial companions : they were broken in an instant, and chased off the field for four miles. But when Edward returned from the pursuit, he was astonish- ed to find the ground covered with the dead bodies of his friends, and still more to hear that his father, and his uncle Richard, king of the Romans, had been defeated and taken prisoners. In this exigency, the gallant prince was obliged to submit to Leicester's terms, which were laconic HENRY in. 77 and severe. He stipulated, that Edward, and Heniy d'AUmaine, the son of the king of the Romans, should sur- render themselves pledges in lieu of the two kings ; that all other prisoners on both sides should be released ; and that the king of France should name six Frenchmen, who should choose two others of their own country ; and these two should appoint one Englishman, and that these three persons should be invested with full powers to make what regulations they should deem necessary for the settlement of the kingdom. The prince and young Henry accordingly delivered themselves into Leicester's hands, who sent them under a guard to Dover castle ; but he had no sooner got the wholfl royal family in his power, than he openly violated every article of the treaty, and acted as sole master, and even tyrant of the kingdom. No farther mention was made of the reference to the king of France ; and Leicester sum- moned a parliament, composed altogether of his own par- tisans, who voted the royal power should be exercised by nine persons, to be chosen and removed by the majority of three, Leicester himself, the earl of Gloucester, antl the bishop of Chichester. By this plan of government, the sceptre was really put into Leicester's hands, as he had the entire direction of the bishop of Chichester. Leices- ter, however, summoned a new parliament in London. Besides the barons of his own party, and several ecclesias- tics, he ordered returns to be made of two kniglits from each shire, and what is more remarkable, of deputies from the boroughs, an order of men which in former ages had always been regarded as too mean to enjoy a place in the national councils. This period is commonly ^kf.^ esteemed the epoch of the house of commons in England, and it is certainly the first time that historians speak of any representatives sent to parliament from the boroughs. The earl of Gloucester, becoming disgusted with the arbitrary conduct of Leicester, retired for safety to his es- tates on the borders of Wales ; Leicester followed him with an army to Hereford ; and that he might add autho- rity to his cause, he carried both the king and prince along with him. The earl of Gloucester here concerted witJi young Edward the manner of that prince's escape. He fur- nished him with a swift horse, and appointed a small party 78 f HISTORY OF ENGLAND. to receive the prince, and guard him to a place of safety. Edward pretended to take the air with some of his guards ; and making matches between their horses until he thought he had tired them, he suddenly mounted Gloucester's horse, bade them adieu, and reached his friends. The royalists, secretly prepared for this event, immedi ately flew to arms. Leicester finding himself in a remote; quarter of the kingdom, surrounded by his enemies, and barred from all communication with his friends by the Severn, whose bridges Edward had broken down, wrote to his son, Simon de Montfort, to hasten from London with an army for bis relief. Simon had advanced to Ken- ilworth with that view, where, fancying that all Edward's force and attention were directed against his father, he lay secure and unguarded ; but the prince, making a sudden and forced march, sui*prised him in his camp, dispersed his army, and took the earl of Oxford and many other no- blemen prisoners, almost without resistance, Leicester, ignorant of his son's fate, passed the Severn in boats du- ring Edward's absence, and lay at Evesham, in expecta-^ tion of being every hour joined by his friends from Lon- don ; when the prince, who availed himself of every favourable movement, appeared in the field before him. The battle immediately began, though on very unequal terms. Leicester's army, by living on the mountains oi Wales without bread, which was not then much used among the inhabitants, had been extremely weakened by sickness and desertion, and was soon broken by the victo- rious royalists ; while his Welsh allies, accustomed only to a desultory kind of war, immediately took to flight, and were pursued with great slaughter. Leicester himself, asking for quarter, was slain in the heat of the action, with his eldest son, Henry, Hugh le Despenser, and about a hundred and sixty knights, and many other gentlemen of his party. The old king had been purposely placed by the rebels in the front of the battle ; and being clad in armour, and thereby not known by his friends, he received a wound, and was in danger of his life ; but crying out, *' I am Henry of Winchester, your king," he was rescued and carried to a place of safety. The victory of Evesham, with the death of Leicester, proved decisive in favour of the royalists ; but they yrt^f used it with moderation. No sacrifices of national "* liberty were made on this occasion; the great HENRY lit. to charter remained inviolate ; and they carefully abstained from all those exertions of power, which had afforded so plausible a pretext to the rebels. The mild disposition of the king, and the prudence of the prince, tempered tlie in- solence of victory. Prince Edward finding the state of the kingdom tolera- bly composed, was impelled by his avidity for glo- ry, by the prejudices of the age, and by the earnest \'iyvr^ solicitations of the king of France, to undertake an expedition against the infidels in the Holy Land. He sailed from England with an army ; but when he arrived at Tunis, he found Lems had died from the heat of the climate and the fatigues of the enterprise. Not discoura- ged, however, by this event, he continued his voyage to the Holy Land, where he signalized himself by acts of valour, and revived the glory of the English name. In the mean time, his absence from England was pro- ductive of the most fatal consequences ; the laws were not executed; the barons oppressed the common people with impunity ; and the populace of London returned to their usual licentiousness. The old king, unequal to the burthen of public affairs, called aloud for his gallant son to return, and to assist him in swaying that sceptre whicli was ready to drop from his feeble and irresolute hands. A.t last, overcome by the cares of government, and the in- firmities of age, he visibly declined, and expired at Ed- mondsbury, in the sixty-fourth year of his age, and fifty- sixth of his reign ; the longest reign that is to be met with in the English annals, except that of our late sovereign. He left two sons, Edward, his successor, and Edmond earl of Lancaster ; and two daughters, Margaret queen of Scot- land, and Beatrix duchess of Brittany. The most obvious circumstance of Henry's character is, his incapacity for government, which rendered him as much a prisoner in the hands of his ministers and favourites, as when a captive in the hands of his enemies. From this source, rather than from insi?icerity or treacheiy, arose his negligence in ob- serving his promises. Hence, too, v^^ere derived his pro- fusion to favourites, his attachment to strangers, the va- riableness of his conduct, his hasty resentments, and the suddiui return of affection. Greater abilities, with his good dispositions, would have prevented him from fulling S^U HISTORY OF ENGLAND. into Ills faults ; or, witii worse dispositions, would have enabled him to maintain them. Edward had reached Sicily in his return from the Holy Land, where he had been wounded with a poison- 1272 ^^^ dagger, when he received intelligence of the death of his father. As he was assured of the quiet settlement of the kingdom, he was in no hmiy to take possession of the throne, but spent near a year in France, and did homage to Philip for the dominions which he held in that country. At length he arrived in England, where he was received with the most joyful acclamations, and was solemnly crowned at Westminister, by Robert, archbishop of Canterbury. The king immediately applied himself to correct those disorders which civil commotions had introduced. By a rigid execution of the laws, he gave protection to the infe- rior orders of the state, and diminished the arbitrary power of the barons. He appointed a commission to inquire into crimes of all kinds ; and the adulteration of the coin of the realm being imputed chiefly to the Jews, he let loose on them the whole rigours of his justice. In London alone, two hundred and eighty of them were hanged at once for this crime ; fifteen thousand were robbed of their effects, and banished the kingdom ; and since that period they have never been so numerous in England. Llewellyn, prince of Wales, had entered into all the conspiracies of the Montfort faction against the 127r ^^'^"^^'^ 5 ai^d refusing to do homage to the new king, Edward levied an army to reduce him to obe- dience. Llewellyn retired among the hills of Snowdon ; but Edward pierced into the heart of the country, and obliged him to submit at discretion. He did homage, and permitted his barons to swear fealty to the crown of Eng- land ; and he also relinquished the country between Che- shire and the river Conway. However, the insolence of the English, who oppressed the inhabitants of the districts ceded to them, raised the indignation of the Welsh, who again took to arms. Edward advanced into Wales with an army which could not be resisted. Llewellyn was sur- prised and slain, with two thousand of his followers ; and his brother David, after being chased from hill to hill, was at last betrayed to the enemy. Edward sent him in chains to Shrewsbury ; and bringing him to a formal trial before EDWARD I. yi all the peers of England, he ordered this sovereign prince to be hanged as a traitor, for defending the liberties of his native country. The Welsh nobility submitted to the con- queror ; and the laws of England were established through- out the principality. The king, sensible that nothing cherished military glory and valour so much as traditional poetry, collected all the Welsh bards, and barbarously ordered them ^oei to be put to death. It is said that Edward promised to give the Welsh a prince, a Welshman by birth; and that he invested in the x>rincipality his son Edward, then an infant, who had been born at Caernarvon. Thus Wales was fully annexed to the crown ; and henceforth gives p, title to the eldest son of the kings of England. Edward had contracted his son to Margaret, the heir to the Scottish throne, and by this means hoped to unite the whole island into one monarchy ; but this pro- loqi ject failed of success by the sudden death of that princess ; and the vacant throne was claimed both by John Baliol and Robert Bruce. Each of the two claimants pos- sessed numerous adherents ; and in order to prevent a civil war, it was agreed on to submit the dispute to the ar- bitration of the king of England. The temptation was too strong for the virtue of Edward. He prepared to lay hold of the present opportunity to revive, if not to create, his claim of a feudal superiority over Scotland. Accompa- nied by a great army, he advanced to the frontiers, and invited the Scottish parliament and the competitors to at- tend him in the castle of Norham, on the southern bank of the Tweed. He informed them that he was come thither to determine the right of the two competitors to their crown ; that he was resolved to do strict justice to each party ; and that he was entitled to this authority, not in virtue of the reference made to him, but in quality of liege lord of the kingdom. The Scottish barons were moved with indignation at the injustice of this unexpected claim : but they found themselves betrayed into a situation, in which it was im- possible for them to make any defence for the indepen- dence of their country ; and the king interpreting their silence into consent, addressed himself to the competitors, and previously to his pronouncing sentence, required their acknowledgment of his superiority. At length, after lon^ 82 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. deliberations, Edward pronounced in favour of BalioJ, to whom, upon renewing his oath of fealty to England, all the Scottish fortresses were restored. However, he pro- ceeded in such a manner, as made it evident that he aimed at the absolute dominion of the kin*gdom. He encouraged appeals to England ; and obliged king John to appear at the bar of his parliament as a private person. Baliol, though a prince of gentle disposition, was greatly provo- ked at this usage ; he determined at all hazards to vindi- cate his liberties ; and the war which soon after broke out between France and England afforded him a favoura- ble opportunity. A petty quarrel between a Norman and English sailor had been speedily inflamed into a national enmity. ^2Qo Barbarities were committed on the crews of Nor- man and English vessels ; the sea became a scene of piracy between the two nations ; and so numerous were the fleets engaged, that fifteen thousand Frenchmen are reported to have perished in one action. Philip sent an en- voy to demand reparation ; but not obtaining sufiicient sa- tisfaction, he summoned Edward, as his vassal, to appear in his court at Paris, and answer for these offences ; and on his refusal, Guienne, by a formal decree, was decla- red forfeited, and annexed to the crown of France. Some impression was made on Guienne by an English army, which Edward raised by emptying the jails, but which was soon after defeated with great slaughter ; and England was at the same time menaced with an invasion from France and from Scotland, whose kings had entered into a secret alliance. The expenses attending these wars obliged Edward to have frequent recourse to parliamentary supplies, and to introduce into the public councils the lower loqr orders of the state. He issued writs to the sheriffs, enjoining them to send to parliament, along with two knights of the shire, two deputies from each borough ;* * The charges of the deputies were borne by the borough which sent them. They set apart from the barons and knights, who dis- dained to mix with such mean personages. After they had given their consent to the taxes required of tliem, they separated, even though the parliament continued to sit. However, the union of the representatives from the boroughs gave gradually more weight to the whole order ; and it became customary for them, in return for EDWARD I. 63 " as it is a most equitable rule," says he, " that what con(?erns all should be approved of by all, and common daii2;ers be repelled by united efforts." This noble prin- ciple seems to indicate a liberal mind in the king, and to liave laid the foundation of a free and equitable govern- ment ; and from this period may be dated the regular es- tablishment of the different branches composing the house of commons, the precedent of Leicester in the former reign being rather an act of violence than of authority. Edward employed the supplies granted him by his people, in making preparations against the hos- ioq/J tilities of his northern neighbours. He summoned John to appear before him as his vassal ; and on his refu- sal, he marched with thirty thousand foot and four thou- sand horse to chastise his contumacy. Some of the most considerable of the Scottish nobles endeavoured to ingra- tiate themselves with Edward by an early submission ; and the king crossed the Tweed without opposition, took Bei-wick by assault, and detached the earl of Warrenne with twelve thousand men to besiege Dunbar. The Scots, who advanced against Warrenne with their main army, were defeated with the loss of twenty thousand men, Dunbar surrendered ; and, after a feeble resistance, the castle of Edinburgh and Stirling opened their gates to the English. All the southern parts were immediately subdu- the supplies which they granted, to prefer petitions to the crown for the redress of any particular grievance ; and the king, by adding to the petitions the sanction of his authority, bestowed vahdity upon them. But it was soon discovered, that no laws could be fixed for one order of men, without affecting the whole ; and the house of peers, therefore, with reason, expected that their assent should be expressly granted to all public ordinances. With the most frequent partition of property, the kniglits and les- ser barons sunk into a rank still more inferior to the great nobility ; while the growth of commerce augmented the private wealth and consideration of the burgesses ; and as they resembled the knights of shires in representing particular bodies of men, it no longer ap- peared unsuitable to uniH) them together in the same house, and to confo-ind their rights and privileges. This event took place in the 16th of Edward III., or forty-eight years from the time when burgesses were first summoned to parliament. Thus the third estate, that of the commons, reached at length its present form ; it gradually increased in importance ; and in its progress made arts and commerce, the necesssary attendants of liberty and equal rights, flourish in the kingdom. 84 nisTORir of England. ed. The spirit of the nation was broken by misfortunes ; and the feeble and timid Baliol hastened to make his sub- mission, and solemnly resigned his crown into the hands of Edward. That sovereign marched to Aberdeen and Elgin without opposition , and having reduced the whole kingdom to an apparent state of tranquility, he returned to the south. Earl Warrenne was left governor of Scot- land. Baliol was carried to London, and lay two years in the tower, and then submitted to a voluntary banishment to France, where he died in a private station. Edward was not equally successful in his attempt to recover Guienne ; and, at length, he and Philip agreed to submit their differences to the arbitration of Pope Boni- face. This was the last of the sovereign pontifl's 1 QQo that exercised any authority ovei' the temporal juris- ■^ diction of princes ; and these exorbitant preten- sions, which he had been tempted to assume from the suc- cessful example of his predecessors, but of which the sea- son was now passed, involved him in so' many calamities, and were attended with so unfortunate a catastrophe, that they have been secretly abandoned, though never openly i'elinquished, by his successors in the apostolic chair. Edward and Philip, equally jealous of papal claims, took care to insert in their reference, that Boniface was made judge of their differences by their consent, as a private person, not by any right of his pontificate ; and the pope, v/ithout seeming to be offended at this mortifying clause, proceeded to give a sentence between them, in which they both acquiesced. He brought them to agree that their union should be cemented by a double marriage ; that of Edward himself, who now was a widower, with IMargaret, Philip's sister ; and that of the prince of Wales with Isa- bella, daughter of that monarch. Philip was likewise willing to restore Guienne to the English ; and Edward agreed to abandon his ally the earl of Flanders, on con- dition that Philip should treat in like manner his ally, the king of Scots. The prospect of conquering these two countries, whose situation made them so commoJious an acquisition to the respective kingdoms, prevailed over all other considerations ; and though they were both finally disappointed in their hopes, their conduct was very recon- cilable to the principles of an interested policy. Warrenne retiring into England, on account of his bad EDWARD r. 85 state of health, left the administration of Scotland entirely in the hands of Ormsbj the justiciary, and Cressingham tlie treasurer. The former distinguished himself by his severity ; the latter had no other object than the amassing of money by rapine and injustice. They treated the Scots as a conquered people ; and, in consequence, the bravest and most generous spirits of the nation were exasperated to the highest degree against the English government. Among these was William Wallace, a man descended from an ancient family, whose courage pi'ompted him to undertake, and enabled him finally to accomplish, the de- liverance of his native country. Finding himself obnoxious to the administration, he had fled into the woods, and of- fered himself as a leader to all those whom their crimes, or bad fortune, or avowed hatred lo the English, had re- duced to the same necessity. He was endowed yv'ilh gigan- tic force, with heroic courage, and patience to bear hun- ger, fatigue, and all the severities of the seasons. Begin- ning with small attempts, he gradually proceeded to more momentous enterprises ; and he discovered equal prudence in securing his followers, and valour in annoying the ene- my. All who thirsted after military fame, or felt the flame of patriotism, were desirous to partake his renown ; and he seemed to vindicate the nation from the ignominy into which it had fallen by its tame submission to the English. Wallace resolved to strike a decisive blow against tlie Enghsh government, and concerted the plan of attacking Ormsby at Scone; but the justiciary, apprised of his in- tentions, fled hastily into England, and all the other ofli- cers of Edward followed his example. Their terror added courage to the Scots, who took up arms in every quarter. Warrenne collected an army of forty thousand men in the north of England, advanced to Stirling, and found Wallace encamped on the opposite banks of the Forth. He pre- pared to attack the Scots in that position, and ordered his army to cross a brid^ which lay over the Forth. Wal- lace, allowing a nunmer of the English to pass, attacked them before they could be formed, and pushed them into the river, or destroyed them with the sword. Warrenne was obliged to retire into England; and Wallace, after receiving from his followers the title of guardian, or re- gent, broke into the northern counties of England, and extended his ravages to tlie bishopric of Durham 8 86 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. Edward, who received in Flanders intelligence of these events, hastened his return ; and having collected the whole military force of England, Wales, and Ireland, he marched with an army of nearly a hundred thousand men to the northern frontiers. The Scots were distracted by faction and animosity. The elevation of Wallace was the object of envy to the nobility ; and that hero, sensible of their jealousy, and dreading the ruin of his country from these intestine discords, voluntarily resigned his authority, and retained only the command over that body of follow- ers, who, being accustomed to victory under his standard, refused to follow into the field any other leader. The chief power devolved on the steward of Scotland, and Cummin of Badenach, men of eminent birth, who fixed their station at Falkirk, where they purposed to abide the assault of the English. The English archers, who began about this time to sur- pass those of other nations, first chased the Scottish bow- men off the field, afterwards threw the pikemen into disor- der, and thus rendered the assault of the English lancers and cavalry more easy and successful. The whole Scot- tish army was broken and driven off the field with prodi- gious slaughter. In this general rout Wallace kept his troops entire ; and retiring behind the Carron, he marched leisurely along the banks of that river. Young Robert Bruce, the grandson and heir of him who had been com- petitor for the throne, who, in the seiTice of England, had already given many proofs of his aspiring genius, appear- ed on the opposite banks ; and distinguishing the Scottish chief, he called to him, and desired a short conference. He represented to Wallace the fruitless and ruinous enter- prise in which he was engaged, and the unequal contest between a weak state, deprived of its head and agitated by intestine discord, and a mighty nation conducted by the ablest and most martial monarch of the age. If the love of his country was a motive for perseverance, his obstinacy tended only to prolong hei^iisery ; if he carried his views to private grandeur and ambition, he ought to reflect, that so many haughty nobles, proud of the pre-emi- nence of their families, would never submit to personal merit. To these exhortations Wallace replied, that, if lie had hitherto acted alone as the champion of his country, it was because no leader had yet appeared to place him- EDWARD I. bf self in that honourable station ; that the blame lay entirely with the nobility, and chiefly with Bruce himself, who uni- ting personal merit to dignity of family, had deserted the post which both nature and fortune invited him to assume ; that the Scots, possessed of such a leader, might hope successfully to oppose all the powers and abilities of Ed- ward ; and that, as for himself, he was desirous that his own life, as well as the existence of the nation, might ter- minate when they could not otherwise be preserved, than by receiving the chains of a haughty victor. The gallan- try of these sentiments was felt by the generous mind of Bruce ; and he secretly determined to seize the first oppor- tunity of embracing the cause of his oppressed country. The battle of Falkirk had not completed the subjection of the Scots. They chose for their regent John Cummin, who surprised the English army, and i^qq routed them after an obstinate conflict ; and it be- came necessary for Edward to begin anew the conquest of the kingdom. The king prepared himself for the enterprise with his usual vigour and abilities. He marched victorious from one extremity of Scotland to the other, and compelled even Cummin himself to submit to his authority. To render his acquisition durable, he abrogated all the laws and customs of Scotland, endeavoured to substitute those of England in their place, entirely razed or destroyed all the monuments of antiquity, and hastened wholly to abo- lish the Scottish name. Wallace himself was at length betrayed into Edward's hands, by his friend Sir John Monteith ; and the king, whose natural bravery and magnanimity ion J should have induced him to respect similar quali- ties in an enemy, resolved to overawe the Scots by an ex- ample of severity. He ordered the hero to be carried in chains to London"; to be tried as a rebel and a traitor, though he had never sworn fealty to England ; and to be executed on Tower-hill. Such was the unworthy fate of Wallace, who, through the course of several years, with signal conduct, intrepidity, and perseverance, defended, against a public and oppressive enemy, the liberties of his native country. The barbarous policy of Edward failed of the object to 88 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. which it was directed. The Scots were enraged at I l^r.A the injustice and cruelty exercised on their gallant chief; and it was not long ere a more fortunate leader presented himself to conduct them to victory and to vengeance. Robert Bruce, whose conference with Wallace on the banks of the Carron has been already no- ticed, determined to revive the pretensions of his family, and to aspire to the vacant throne. Edward, being appri- zed of his intentions, ordered all his motions to be strictly watched. An intimate friend of Bruce, not daring, amidst so many jealous eyes, to hold any conversation with him, sent him by his servant a pair of gilt spurs, and a purse of gold, which he pretended to have borrowed from him; and left it to his sagacity to discover the meaning. Bruce im- mediately contrived to escape, and in a few days arrived at Dumfries, the chief seat of his family interest, where he found a great number of the Scottish nobility assembled, and among the rest John Cummin, with whom he had for- merly lived in strict intimacy. The noblemen were astonished at the appearance of Bruce among them ; and still more when he told them, that he was come to live or die with them in defence of t^e liberties of his country. These generous sentiments, assisted by the graces of his youth and manly deportment, impressed the minds of his audience ; and they resolved to use their utmost efforts in delivering their country from bondage. Cummin alone, who had secretly taken his measures with the king, opposed this general determina- tion ; and Bruce, already apprized of his treachery, fol- lowed Cummin on the dissolution of the assembly, and attacking him in the cloisters of the Gray Friars, ran him through the body. The murder of Cummin sealed the conspiracy of the Scottish nobles. The genius of the nation roused itself; and Bruce was solemnly crowned at Scone by the bishop of St. Andrews. The English were again expelled the kingdom ; and Edwara found, that the Scots, twice con- quered in his reign, must yet be afresh subdued. To ef- fect this, he assembled a great army, and was pre- |ojyy paring to enter the frontiers, when he unexpectedly sickened and died near Carhsle, in the sixty-ninth year of his age, and the thirty-fifth of his reign. , With his Murder of Edward Second, JSdicard Second surrenderinsc his Crown, EDVfARD II. 89 last breath he enjoined his son and his successor to prose- cute the enterprise, and never to desist till he had finally subdued the kingdom of Scotland. Edward II. was in the twenty-third year of his age when he ascended the throne. He was of an agreeable figure, and of a mild and gentle disposition; but the first act of his reign blasted the hopes which the English had entertained of him. Equally incapable of, and averse to business, he entered Scotland only to retreat ; he dis- banded his army, without attacking Bruce ; and by this conduct, he convinced the barons that the authority of the crown was no longer to be dreaded, and that they were at liberty to practise eveiy insolence with impunity. Piers Gaveston, the son of a Gascon knight, by his in- sinuating address, his elegance of form, and his lively wit, had gained an entire ascendant over the young Edward ; and the late king, apprehensive of the consequences, had banished him the kingdom, and made his son promise never to recall him. No sooner, however, did the young Edward ascend the throne, than he recalled Gaveston, gave him the whole earldom of Cornwall, married him to his own niece, and seemed to enjoy no pleasure in his royal dignity, but as it enabled him to exalt this object of his fond affec- tions. The haughty barons were offended at the superi- ority of a minion, whose birth they despised, and who eclipsed them in pomp and splendour. In a journey to France, to espouse the princess Isabella, Edward left Gaveston guardian of the realm ; but on his return with the young queen, Isabella, who was of an imperious and intriguing disposition, finding her husband's capacity re- quired to be governed, thought herself best entitled to perform the office, and was well pleased to see a combina- tion of the nobility formed against the favourite. Thomas, earl of Lancaster, cousin-german to the king, was at the head of the party among the barons. That nobleman, entering the parliament with his ^oqq adherents in arms, required the banishment of Ga- veston ; and Edward was obhged to submit ; but instead of sending him to his own countiy, he appointed him lord- lieutenant of Ireland. The king, unhappy in the absence of his minion, em- ployed every expedient to soften the opposition of the ba- rons to his return ; and deeming matters sufficiently pre- 90 ^ HISTORY OF ENGLAND. pared for his purpose, he ventured to recall Gaveston, and went to Chester to receive him on his first landing from Ireland. However, in defiance of the laws and the king's prohibition, the barons, with a numerous retinue of armed followers, compelled Edward to devolve on a chosen junto the whole authority, both of the crown and the parliament ; and among other regulations sanctioned by this committee, Gaveston was forever banislied the king's dominions. As soon, however, as Edward, by removing to York, had freed himself from the barons' power, he recalled Ga- veston from Flanders ; and the barons, highly provoked at this measure, flew to arms, with the earl of Lancaster at their head. Edward left his favourite in the castle of Scarborough, which v/as obliged to surrender to the earl of Pembroke. From thence Gaveston was conducted to the castle of Dedington, near Banbury, where, being left with a small guard, he was surprised by the earl of War- wick; and without any regard to the laws, the head of the unhappy favourite was struck off by the hands of the executioner. When the king; was informed of Ga- AD ,oiq veston's murder, he threatened vengeance on all those who had been active in that bloody scene ; but beinsr less constant in his enmities than in his friend- ships, he listened to terms of accommodation, and granted the barons a pardon of all offences. Immediately after Edward's retreat from Scotland, Ro- bert Bruce left his fastnesses ; and, in a short time, nearly the whole kingdom acknowledged his authority. The castle of Stirling, the only fortress in Scotland which re- mained in the hands of the English, was closely pressed ; and to j^lieve this place, Edward summoned his forces from all quarters, and marched with an army of a hun- dred thousand men. At Bannockburn, about two miles from Stirling, Bruce, with thirty thousand hardy warriors, inured to all the varieties of fortune, and inflamed with the love of independence, awaited the charge of the enemy. A hill covered his right flank, and a morass his left ; and along the banks of a rivulet in his front he dug deep pits ; planted them with stakes, and covered the whole with turf. The English, confident in their superior numbers, mshed to the attack without precaution. Their cavalry entangled in the pits, were thrown into disorder ; and the Scottish horse, allowing them no time to rally, attacked EDWARD II. 91 them, and drove them off the field with considerable loss. While the Enghsh forces were alarmed at this unfortunate event, an army appeared on the heights towards the left, marching to surround them. This was composed of wa- goners and sumpter-boys, whom Robert had supphed with nnlitary standards. The stratagem took efiect ; a panic seized the Enghsh, who threw down their arms, and fled, and were pursued to the gates of Berwick. Besides an inestimable booty, the Scots took many persons of quality prisoners, and above four hundred gentlemen, whose ran- som was a new accession of strength to the victors. This great and decisive battle secured the independence of Scotland, and fixed the throne of Bruce ; whilst it shook that of Edward, whose defeat encouraged ^\-. 1 the nobility to insist on the renewal of their ordi- nances. After the death of Gaveston, the king's chief favourite was Hugh le Despenser, or Spenser, a young man of high rank, and noble family. He possessed all the exterior accomplishments of person and address, but was not endowed either with moderation or prudence. His father, who was of the same name, was a nobleman venerable from his years, and qualified, by his talents and experience, to have supplied the defects both of the king and liis minion ; but Edward's attachment rendered the name of Spenser odious ; and the turbulent Lancaster, and most of the great barons, formed plans for his destruction. The claim of Spenser to an estate, which had been set- tled on the illustrious family of Mowbray, was the signal for civil war. The earls of Lancaster and Hereford flew to arms ; and by menaces and violence they extorted from the king an act of attainder against the Spenseil|" and of indemnity for themselves. This being eflTected, they dis- banded their army, and separated, in security, as they ima- gined, to their respective castles. Edward, however, hav- ing assembled an army, dropped the mask, and recalled the Spensers, whose sentence he declared to be illegal and unjust. Lancaster, who had hastily collected thirty thou- sand men, fled with his forces towards the north ; but be- ing intercepted at Boroughbridge, after a shght action, he was taken prisoner, and brought to the king. Edward, though gentle by nature, remembered on this occasion the fate of Gaveston ; and Lancaster, mounted upon a lean horse, and exposed to the derision of the people, was co?i 93 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. ducted to an eminence near Pomfret, one of his own cas- tles, where he suffered decapitation. Edward, after another fruitless attempt on Scotland, concluded a truce for thirteen years with Bruce, whose title to the crown was thus virtually, though not tacitly, acknowledged. lie was, however, still embarrassed by the demands of his brother-in-law, Charles the Fair, who required him to appear and do homage for the fees which he held in France. The queen had been permitted to go to Paris, and endeavour to adjust in an amicable manner the differences with her brother. On her arrival in France, Isabella was surrounded by a number of English fugitives, the remains of the Lancastrian faction. Among these was young Roger Mortimer, a potent baron in the Welsh marches, who, by the graces of his person and address, quickly advanced in the affections of the queen, and at last triumphed over her honour. The king, informed ol ^hese circumstances, required her speedily to return with the young prince Edward, Avho was then with his mother in Paris ; but instead of obeying his orders, she publicly declared that she would never set foot in England till Spenser was removed from his presence and councils. This declaration procured Isabella great popularity in England, and threw a veil over her treasonable en i'^o« terprises ; and having affianced young Edward with Philippa, daughter of the count of Holland and Hainault, she enlisted three thousand men, sailed from the harbour of Dort, and landed, without opposition, on the coast of Norfolk. She was immediately joined by several of the most powerful barons ; and to render her cause jAulai'j she renewed her declaration, that her sole purpose was to free the king and kingdom from the tyran- ny of the Spensers. •^ The king, after trying in vain to rouse the citizens of London to a sense of duty, departed for the west, and was hotly pursued to Bristol by his own brother, the earl of Kent, and the foreign forces under John de Hainault. Disappointed in the loyalty of those parts, he passed over into Wales, leaving the elder Spenser governor of the cas- tle of Bristol; but the garrison mutinied against him, and he was delivered into tlie hands of his enemies. This ve- nerable noble, who had nearly reached his ninetieth year, was without trial condemned to death by the rebellious EDWARD II. 1)3 barons. He was lianged on rf gibbet ; his body was cut in pieces and thrown to the dogs ; and his head was sent to Winchester, where it was set upon a pole, and exposed to the insuhs of the populace. Edward himself attempted to escape to Ireland ; but being driven back by contrary winds, he was discovered, and committed to the custody of the earl of Leicester, in the castle of Kenilworth. The young Spenser, his favourite, who also fell into the hands of his enemies, was executed like his father, without any appearance of a legal trial. The diabolical Isabella, in order to avail herself of the prevailing delusion, summoned in the king's name a parliament at Westminster. A charge was drawn , o^)^ up against Edward, in which, though framed by his inveterate enemies, nothing but his want of capacity, or his misfortunes, could be objected against him. The de- position of the king, however, was voted by parliament ; and the prince his son was placed on the throne. But it was impossible that the character and conduct of Isabella could long be mistaken. The gross violation of every duty and every tie soon estranged from her the minds of men ; the proofs which daily broke out of her criminal commerce with Mortimer, increased the general abhor- rence against her; and her hypocrisy in publicly bewailing the king's unhappy fate, was not able to deceive even the most stupid and most prejudiced of her adherents. h\ proportion as the queen became the object of public ha- tred, the dethroned monarch, who had been the victim of her crimes and her ambition, was regarded with pity and veneration ; and men became sensible, that all his miscon- duct, which faction had so much exaggerated, hdlft becH- owing to the natural imbecility, not to any voluntary de- pravity, of his character. The earl of Leicester, now earl of Lancaster, to whose custody he had been committed, was soon touched with those generous sentiments ; and besides treating his prisoner with gentleness and humanity, he was suspected to have entertained still more honourable intentions in his favour. The king, therefore, was t \ken from his hands, and delivered over to lord Berkeley and Mautravers and Gournay, who ^vere entrusted alternately, each for a month, with the charge of guarding him. While he was in the custody of Berkeley, he was stili trep+ed with the gentleness due to his rank and his misfor- 94 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. tunes ; but when the turn of Mautravers and Gournay came, every species of indignity was practised against him, as if their intention had been to break entirely the prince's spirit, and to employ his sorrows and afflictions, instead of more violent and more dangerous expedients, for the in- struments of his murder. But as this method of destruc- tion appeared too slow to the impatient Mortimer, he se- cretly sent orders to the two keepers, who were at his de- votion, instantly to despatch him. Taking advantage of Berkeley's sickness, in whose custody he then was, -jog^ and who was thereby incapacitated from attending his charge, they came to Berkeley castle, and put- ting themselves in possession of the king's person, they threw him on a bed, and holding him down with a table, thrust into his fundament a red hot iron, which they in- serted throuo^h a horn, that no external marks of violence might be seen on his person. The dreadful deed, howe- ver, was discovered to all the guards and attendants by the screams with which the agonizing king filled the castle, while his bowels were consuming. Thus died Edward If., than whom it is not easy to ima- gine a more innocent and inoffensive man, nor a prince less capable of governing a fierce and turbulent people. Obliged to devolve on others the weight of which he had neither ability nor inclination to bear, he wanted penetra- tion to choose ministers and favourites qualified for the tiTist- CHAP. IV. The reign of Edward III. ThiI!* party which had deposed the unfortunate monarch, deemed it requisite for their security, to obtain an indem- nity from parliament for all their proceedings. All the attainders, also, which had passed against the earl of Lan- caster and his adherents, were easily reversed during the triumph of their party. A council of regency was like- wise appointed by parliament, consisting of five prelates and seven lay lords ; and the earl of Lancaster was nomi- nated guardian of the young king, Edward III. Mortimer, though not included in the regency, rendered that council entirely useless, by usurping to himself the whole sovereign authority. He never consulted either the princes of the blood or the nobility on any pubUc EDWARD Hi 95 -^neasure ; and he affected a state and dignity equal or su- perior to those of royalty. Edward, who had attained his eighteenth year, repined at the fetters in which he was held by this insolent minister; but so much was he sur- tounded by the emissaries of Mortimer, that he was obliged CO conduct the project for subverting him with the greatest secrecy and precaution. The queen-dowager and Mor- timer lodged in the castle of Nottingham ; the king also was admitted, though with a few only of his attendants ; and as the castle was strictly guarded, it became necessary to communicate the design to Sir Williarn Eland, the governor, who zealously took part in it. By his direction, the kino's associates were admitted through a subterra- neous passage ; and Mortimer,'^without having- it in his power to make resistance, was suddenly seized in an apartment adjoining to the queen's. A parliament was immediately summoned for his condemnation ; and such was the notoriety of his infamous conduct, that without trial, or examining a witness, he was sentenced to be hung on a gibbet at the Elms, in the neighbourhood of London. The queen was confined to her own house at Risings; and though the king, during the remainder of her life, paid her a visit once or twice a year, she never regained any credit or influence. Edward, having now assumed the reins of government, applied himself to redress all those grievances 1 '^Qo whicl^ had proceeded from the late abuse of autho- rity. The severity with which he caused justice to be administered, soon restored the kingdom to internal tranquility; and in proportion as the government acquired stability at home, it became formidable to its neighbours. Edward made a successful irruption into Scotland, for the purpose of reinstating Edward Baliol in possession of the crown of that kingdom ; and in an engagement at Halidown-hill, a little north of Benvick, the Scots were defeated, with the loss of nearly thirty thousand men. It had long been a prevailing opinion, that the crown of France could never descend to a female, and j^g^ this maxim was supposed to be confirmed by a clause in the Salic code ; but the king of England, at an early age, embraced a notion that he was entitled, in right of his mother, to the succession of the kingdom, and +^ the claim of the nephew was preferable to that 96 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. of Philip de Valois, the cousin-german, who had been uiiammously placed on the throne of Frajicc. His own claim, however, was so unreasonable, and so thorou.>hJs' disavowed by the whole French nation, that it is probable Edward would never have prosecuted it, had not some jealousies and misunderstanding arisen between the two monarchs. Determined to engage in this chimerical attempt, the king began with opening his intentions to the count of Hainauh, his father-in-law ; and having engaged him in his interests, he employed the good offices and counsels of that prince in drawing into his alliance the other sove- reigns of that neighbourhood. The duke of Brabant was induced, by his mediation, and by large remittances of money from England, to promise his concurrence ; the archbishop of Cologne, the duke of Gueldres, the mar- quis of Juliers, the count of Namur, the lords of Fauque- mont and Baquen, were engaged by like motives to em- brace the English alliance. These sovereign princes could supply either from their own states, or from the bordering countries, great numbers of warlike troops ; and nothing was wanting to make the force on that quarter very formi- dable, but the accession of Flanders, which Edward pro- cured by means rather extraordinary and unusual. After consulting his parhament, and obtaining its con- sent, Edward, accompanied by a body of English forces, and by several of his nobility, passed over to Flanders. The Flemings, as vassals of France, pretending some scruples with regard to the invasion of their liege lord, Edward assumed the title of king of France ; but he did not venture on this step without hesitation and reluctance, and a presage of the calamities which he was about to in- flict and entail on both countries. The first attempts of the king were unsuccessful ; but he was a prince of too much spirit to be discouraged by the difficulties of an undertaking. By confirming the ancient charters and the privileges of boroughs, he obtained from the parliament a considerable supply ; and with a fleet of two hundred and forty sail, he again embarked for the continent. Off Sluise he was encountered by a French fleet, consisting of four hundred vessels. The inferiority of the English in number, was compensated by their nau- tical skill, and the presence of their monarch. The en- PDWARD HI. . 97 gagement was fierce and bloody; and the Flemings, near whose coast the action took place, issued from their har- bours, and reinforced the English. Two hundred and^ thirty French ships were taken; and thirty thousand of their men perished. Numbers now flocked to the standard of Edward ; and with an army of above a hundred thou- sand men, he investe I Tournay. That place had been provided with a garrison of fourteen thousand men ; but after the siege had continued ten weeks, the city was re- duced to distress ; and Philip advanced towards the English camp, at the head of a mighty host, with the intention of avoiding a decisive action, but of throwing succours into the place. Both armies continued in sight of each other without engaging; and, whilst in this situation, Jane, countess dowager of Hainault, interposed her good offices in order to prevent the effusion of blood. This princess was mother-in-law to Edward, and sister to Philip ; and her pious efforts prevailed on them both, though they could not lay aside, at least to suspend their animosities, by sub- scribing a truce for twelve months. Edward returned to England, deeply chagrined at the unfortunate issue of his military operations ; and he vent- ed his ill humour on the officers of the revenue and col- lectors of taxes. In order to obtain a new supply from the parliament, the king had been obliged to subscribe to nearly the same restrictions as had been imposed on Henry III. and Edward II. No sooner, however was he possessed of the necessary supply, than he revoked and annulled his concessions; and he afterwards obtained from his parlia- ^lent a legal repeal of the obnoxious statute, which im- posed those restrictions. Edward had experienced so many mortifications in his war with France, that he would probably have dropped his claim, had not a revolution in Brittany opened to him more promising views. John III., duke of Brittany, having no issue, was solici- tous to prevent those disorders to which, on the event of his demise, a disputed succession might expose his subjects. For that purpose, he bestowed his niece, whom he deemed his heir, in marriage on Charles of Blois, nephew of the king of France ; and all his vassals, and among the rest the count of Montfort, his brother by a second marriage, swore fealty to Charles and to his consort as to their fu- ture sovereigns. But on the death of the aged duke, the 9 93 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. count of Montfort made a voyage to England ; and offer ing to do homage to Edward, as king of France, for the duchy of Brittany, he proposed a strict aUiance for the support of their mutual pretensions. Edward immediate- ly saw the advantages attending this treaty ; and it re- quired a very short negotiation to conclude an alliance be- tween two men, who, though their pleas with regard to the preference of male or female succession were directly oppo- site, were intimately connected by their immediate interests. Soon after, however, Montfort fell into the hands of his enemies, was conducted as a prisoner to Paris, and 134^ shut up in the Louvre. This event seemed to put an end to his pretensions; but his consort assembled the inhabitants of Rennes, deplored to them the calamity of their sovereign, and entreated them to resist a visurper, who had been imposed on them by the arms of France. Inspired by the noble conduct of the princess, the states of Brittany vowed to live and die with her in defending the rights of her family. The coun- tess shut herself up in Hennebonne, which was invested ]jy Charles of Blois, who, after several reiterated attacks, was compelled to abandon the siege on the arrival of suc- cours from England. After the death of Robert of Artois, whom the king of England had despatched to Brittany with a considerable reinforcement, Edward undertook in person the defence of the countess of Montfort. The king landed at Mor- bian, near Vannes, with an army of twelve thousand men, and commenced the three important sieges of Vannes, of Rennes, and of Nantz; but by undertaking too much, he failed of success in all his enterprises. The duke of Nor- mandy, eldest son of Philip king of France, appeared in Brittany at the head of an army of thirty thousand in- fantry and four thousand cavalry. Edward was obliged to concentrate his forces, and to entrench himself before Vannes, where the duke of Normandy soon after arrived, and in a manner invested the besiegers. The English drew all their subsistence from England, exposed to the hazards of the sea, and sometimes to those which arose from the fleet of the enemy ; and, in this dangerous situ- ation, Edward willingly accepted the mediation of the pope's legates, and concluded a truce for three years. By this tmce all prisoners were to be released, the places in EDWARD 111. 09 Brittany to remain with their present possessors, and Van- iies to be sequestered into the hands of the legates, to be afterwards disposed of according to their pleasure. The truce, however, was of a very short dura- tion ; and each monarch endeavoured to inculpate • o^j the other for its infraction. The parliament, whom Edward affected to consult on all occasions, advised the king not to be amused by a fraudulent truce, and granted supplies for the renewal of the war. The earl of Derby, with an English army, was sent into Guienne ; but Edward, informed of the great danger to which that ^'^^q province was exposed from the duke of Normandy, prepared a force for its relief. He embarked at South- ampton, with his son the prince of Wales, and the flower of his nobility ; but the winds proving contrary, he was prevailed on to change the destination of his enterprise ; and ordering his fleet to sail to Normandy, he safely dis- embarked his forces at La Hogue. Edward spread his army over the whole country, defeated a body of troops that had been collected for the defence of Caen, and took and plundered that rich city. He moved next towards Rouen ; but he found the bridge over the Seine broken down, and the king of France encamped on the opposite bank with an army of one hundred thousand men. Edward perceived that the French intended to inclose him in their country ; and therefore, by a secret and rapid movement, he gained Poissy, passed the Seine, and ad- vanced by quick marches towards Flanders. But as he approached the Somme, he found himself in the same dif- ficulty as before ; all the bridges on that river were either broken down or strongly guarded ; and an army was sta- tioned on the opposite banks. The promise of a reward induced a peasant to betray the interests of his country, and to inform Edward of a ford below Abbeville. The king threw himself into the river at the head of his troops, drove the enemy from their station, and pursued them to a distance on the plain. As the rear guard of the EngHsh passed, the French army under Philip arrived at the ford ; and Edward, sensible that an engagement was unavoida- ble, adopted a prudent resolution. He chose his ground with advantage, near the village of Crecy,* drew up his **= The battle of Crecy, which was fought August 26, began at three o'clock in the afternoon, and lasted till dark. 100 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. army on a gentle ascent, and divided them into three lines : the first was commanded by the prince of Wales, and un- der him, by the earls of Warwick and Oxford, and other noblemen ; the second, by the earls of Armidel and North- ampton ; and the third, by the king himself. His flanks were secm'ed by trenches ; and according to some histo- rians, several pieces of artillery were placed in his front. The French army, imperfectly formed, and already fa- tigued and disordered, arrived in presence of the enemy. The first line, consisting of fifteen thousand Genoese cross- bow men, was commanded by Anthony Doria and Charles Grimaldi ; the second was led by the count of Alen^on, brother to the king ; and at the head of the third was Philip himself, accompanied by the kings of Bohemia, of the Romans, and of Majorca, with all the nobility and great v^assals of the crown of France. The battle became, for some time, hot and dangerous ; and the earl of War- wick, apprehei^sive of the event from the superior num- bers of the French, despatched a messenger to the king, and entreated him to send succours to the relief of the prince of Wales. Edward had chosen his station on the top of the hill ; and he surveyed in tranquility the scene of action. When the messenger accosted him, his first question was, whether the prince was slain or wounded ? On receiving an answer in the negative, " return," said he, " to my son, and tell him that I reserve the honour of the day to him : I am confident that he will show himself worthy of the honour of knighthood which I so lately con ferred upon him : he will be able, without my assistance, to repel the enemy." This speech being reported to the prince and his attendants, inspired them with fresh cou- rage : they made an attack mth redoubled vigour on the French, in which the count of Alencon was slain. In vain the king of France advanced with the rear to sustain the line commanded by his brother. The whole French army took to flight, and was followed and put to the sword, without mercy, by the enemy, till the darkness of the night put an end to the pursuit. The king, on his return to the camp, flew into the arms of the prince of Wales, and ex- claimed, "my brave son! persevere in your hononrable cause : you are my son ; for valiantly have you acquitted yourself to-day : you have shown yourself worthy of em pire." EDWARD III. 101 III this battle there fell, by a moderate computation, twelve hundred French loiights, fourteen hundred gentle- men, four thousand men at arms, besides about thirty thousand of inferior rank : many of the principal nobility of France, the dukes of Lorraine and Bourbon, the earls of Flanders, Blois, Vaudemont, and Aumale, were left on the field of battle. The kings also of Bohemia and Majorca were slain. The former was blind from age ; but being resolved to hazard his person, and set an example to others, he ordered the reins of his bridle to be tied on each side to the horses of two gentlemen of his train ; and his dead body, and those of his attendants, were afterwards found among the slain, with their horses standing by them in that situation. His crest was three ostrich feathers ; and his motto these German words, Ich dien, I serve : which the prince of Wales and his successors adopted in memo- rial of this great victory. The great prudence of Edward appeared not only in obtaining this memorable victory, but in the measures which he pursued after it. Not elated by his present pros- perity, so far as to expect the total conquest of France, or even that of any considerable provinces, he limited his ambition to the conquest of Calais ; and after the interval of a i^ew days, which he employed in interring the slain, he marched with his victorious army, and presented him self before that place. John Vienne, a valiant knight of Burgundy, was gover- nor of Calais, and being supplied with every thing neces- sary for defence, he encouraged the townsmen to perform to the utmost their duty to their king and country. Ed- ward, therefore, sensible from the beginning that it w^as in vain to attempt the place by force, purposed only to reduce it by famine. This siege employed him nearly twelve months ; and during this interval, there passed in difterent places many other events, all of which redounded to the honour of the English arms. In vain Philip attempted to relieve Calais at the head of two hundred thousand men. That fortress was now reduced to the last extremity by famine and the fatigue of the inhabitants ; but Ed- ward insisted that six of the most considerable citi- ^niZ zens should atone for the obstinacy of the rest, by submitting their lives to his disposal, and by presenting, with ropes about their necks, the keys of the city. This 9* 102 HISTOKY OP ENGLAND. intelligence struck the inhabitants with new consternation. At length, Eustace de St. Pierre, whose name deserves to be recorded, declared himself willing to encounter death for the safety of his friends and compan'ons : the generous flame was communicated to others ; and the whole num- ber was soon completed. They appeared before Edward in the guise of malefactors ; but at the intercession of the queen Philippa, these excellent citizens were dismissed with presents. To secure the possession of Calais, Edward ordered ail the inhabitants to quit the town, and peopled it anew wjch English ; a policy which probably secured that important fortress so long to his successors. Through the mediation of the pope's legates, he soon after concluded a tnice with France ; and on his return to England, he instituted the order of the Garter. The number received into this order consisted of twenty-five persons, besides the sovereign. A vulgar story prevails, but is not supported by authority, that, at a court-ball, the king's mistress, the countess of Salisbury, dropped her garter ; and Edward taking it up, observed some of the courtiers to smile, upon which he called out, honi soit qui mally pcnse^ " evil to him that evil thinks ;" and in memorial of this event, he instituted the order of the garter, with these words for its motto. During the truce between France and England, Philip de Valois died, and was succeeded in the throne by ^o-^ his son John, who was distinguished by many vir- tues, but was destitute of that masterly pmdence which the situation of the kingdom required. The chief source of the intestine calamities of France was Charles, king of Navarre, who received the epithet of " wicked," and whose conduct fully entitled him to that appellation, though he possessed talents of the very first order, if they had been honourably directed. This prince did not con- ceal his pretensions, in right of his mother, to the throne of France, and increased the number of his partisans throughout the kingdom. He even seduced, by his ad- dress, Charles, the eldest son of John, who was the first that bore the name of dauphin. But Charles was made sensible of the folly and danger of the connection ; and in concert with his father, he invited the king of Navarre, and other noblemen of the party, to an entertainment at Rouen, where they were betrayed into the hands of John EDWARD in. 103 Some of tlie latter were immediately led to execution , and the king of Navarre was thrown into prison. Philip, tJie brother of the king of Navarre, flew to arms, and implored the protection of England ; and as the truce was expired, Edward was at liberty to support the French malcontents. Whilst the king himself ravaged Picardy, the Scots, taking advantage of his absence, collected an ai'my for an incur- sion against England. Edward, therefore, returned to defend that kingdom against the threatened invasion; and after burning and destroying the whole country from Ber- wick to Edinburgh, he induced Baliol to resign the crown of Scotland into his hands, in consideration of an annual pension of two thousand pounds. In the mean time, young Edward, accompanied by the earls of Warwick and Salisbury, had arrived in the y)r^ Garonne, with three hundred sail. Being joined by the vassals of Gascony, he reduced all the villa- ges and several towns of Languedoc, to ashes. In a se- cond campaign, at the head of twelve thousand men, he penetrated into the heart of France ; when he was inform- ed that the French king was approaching with an army of sixty thousand men. Near Poictiers, prince Edward prepared for battle with equal courage and prudence ; but the most splendid mili- tary qualities could not have extricated him, if the French had availed themselves of tfieir superior numbers, and con- tented themselves with intercepting his provisions. So sensible, indeed, was the prince of his desperate condition, that he offered to purchase his retreat by ceding all his conquests, and by stipulating not to serve against France for seven years ; but John required that he should surren- der himself prisoner with one hundred of his attendants. The prince rejected this proposal with disdain, and decla- red that England should never be obliged to pay the price of his ransom. All hopes of accommodation being at an end. the prince of Wales strengthened by new entrenchments the post which he had before so judiciously chosen ; and contrived an ambush of three hundred men at arms, and as many archers, whom he put under the command of the Captal de Buche, and ordered to make a circuit, that they might fall on the flank or rear of the French army during the engagement. The van of his army was commanded bv 104 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. the earl of Warwick, the rear by the earls of Sahsbtirr and Suffolk, the mam body by the prince himself. John also arranged his forces in three divisions ; the first was commanded by the duke of Orleans, the king's Vrother; the second by the dauphin, attended by his two younger brothers ; the third by the king himself, who had by his side Philip, his fourth and favourite son, then about fourteen years of age. There was no reaching the English army but through a narrow lane, covered on each side by hedges ; and in order to open this passage, the mareschals Andrehen and Clermont were ordered to advance with a separate detachment of men at arms. While they marched along the lane, a body of English archers, who lined the hedges, plied them on each side with their aiTOws ; and being very near them, yet placed in perfect safety, they coolly took their aim against the enemy, and slaughtered tliem with impunity. The French detachment, much dis- couraged by the unequal combat, and diminished in their number, arrived at the end of the lane, where they met, on the open ground, the prince of Wales himself, at the head of a chosen body, ready for their reception. They were discomfited and overthrown ; one of the mareschals was slain, the other taken prisoner, and the remainder of the detachment, who were still in the lane, and exposed to the shot of the enemy, without being able to make resist- ance, recoiled upon their own army, and put every thing into disorder. In the critical moment, the Captal de Buche imexpectedly appeared, and attacked in flank the dauphin's line, which fell into some confusion. Landas, Bodenai, and St. Venant, to whom the care of that young prince and his brothers had been committed, too anxious for their charge, or for their own safety, carried them off" the field, and set the example of flight, which was followed by that whole division. The duke of Orleans, seized with a like panic, and imagining all was lost, thought no longer of fighting, but carried off" his division by a retreat, which soon turned into a flight. The division under king John was more numerous than the whole English army ; and the only resistance made that day was by his line of battle. The prince of Wales fell with impetuosity on some German cavalry placed in the front ; a fierce battle ensued, but at length that body of cavalry gave way, and left the king himself exposed to the whole fury of the enemy. The EDWARD III. 105 ranks were every moment thinned around him ; the nobles fell by his side one after another ; his son, scarcely four- teen years of age, received a wound whilst fighting va- liantly in defence of his father. The king himself, speut with fatigue, and overwhelmed by numbers, might easily have been slain; but every English gentleman, ambitious of taking alive the royal prisoner, spared him in the ac- tion, exhorted him to surrender, and offered him quarter. Several who attempted to seize him suffered for their teme- rity. He still cried out, " Where is my cousin, the prince of Wales r' and seemed unwilling to become prisoner to any person of inferior rank ; but being told that the prince was at a distance, he threw down his guantlet, and yielded himself, together with his son, to Dennis de Morbec, a knight of Arras. The moderation displayed by Edward on this occasion, has forever stamped his character. At a repast prepared in his tent for his prisoner, he served at the royal captive's table as if he had been one of his retinue ; he stood behind the king's chair, and refused to be seated. All his father's pretensions to the crown of France were buried in oblivion ; and John received, when a captive, those honours which had been denied him when on a throne. The prince of Wales concluded a truce of two years with France, that he might conduct the captive king with safety into England. He landed at Southwark, ^ or-C and was met by a great concourse of people of all ranks. The prisoner was clad in royal apparel, and mounted on a white steed, distinguished by its size and beauty, and by the richness of its furniture. The conque- ror rode by his side in a meaner attire, on a black palfry. In this situation he passed through the streets of London, and presented the king of France to his father, who advan- ced to meet him, and received him with the same courtesy as if he had voluntarily paid him a visit. The captivity of John produced in France the most horrible anarchy. Every man was thrown loose and in- dependent of his fellows ; and licentiousness reigned with- out control. At length, in a conference between the Eng- glish and French commissioners at Bretigni, a peace be- tween the two nations was concluded on the following conditions. It was stipulated that king John should be restored to his liberty, and should pay as his ransom thi*ee 106 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. millions of crowns of gold;* that the king of England should forever renounce all claim to the crown of France, and to the provinces of Normandy, Maine, Touraine, and Anjou, possessed by his ancestors, and should receive in exchange the provinces of Poictou, Xaintogne, I'Angenois, Perigort, the Limousin, Quercy, Rovergne, I'Angoumois, and other districts in that quarter, together with Calais, Guisnes, Montreuil, and the county of Ponthieu, on the other side of France ; that Edward should renounce his confederacy with the Flemings, and John his connec- tions with the Scots ; and that forty hostages should be sent to England as a security for the execution of these conditions. John no sooner regained his liberty, than he prepared to execute the terms with that fidelity and honour 1360 ^-T ^^i^^ h® ^^s characterized. However, not- withstanding his endeavours, many difficulties oc- cm'red in fulfilling his purposes ; and, therefore, in order to adjust some disputes, he formed a resolution of coming over to England. His council endeavoured to dissuade him from his design ; but he replied, " that though good faith were banished from the rest of the earth, she ought still to retain her habitation in the breast of princes." John therefore came to London, and was lodged in the Savoy, where he fell sick and died. John was succeeded in the throne by Charles the dau- phin, who immediately directed his attention to the 1 o/- i internal disorders which afflicted his kingdom. His chief obstacle proceeded from large bands of mili- tary adventurers, who had followed the standard of Ed- ward, but who, on the conclusion of peace, refused to lay down their arms, persevered in a life of rapine, and asso- ciating themselves under the name of" companions," were a terror to the country. At length, they enlisted under the standard of Du Guesclin, who led them against Peter the Cruel, king of Castile. Peter fled from his dominions, sought refuge in Guienne, and craved the protection of the prince of Wales, whom his father had invested with the sovereignty of these conquered countries, by the title of the principality of Aquitane. That prince promised his assistance to the dethroned monarch, and recalled the * About a million and a half sterling of our present money EDWARD III. 107 companions from the service of Henry of Transtamare, whom they had placed on the throne of Castile. Henry encountered the English prince at Najara, and was defeat- ed with the loss of more than twenty thousand men. Pe- ter was restored to the throne ; but the ungrateful tyrant refused the stipulated pay to the English forces ; and Ed- ward returned to Guienne, with a diminished army, and his constitution fatally impaired by the climate. The barbarities exercised by Peter over his subjects, revived all the animosity of the Castilians ; and the tyrant was again dethroned and put to death. Prince Edward, by this rash expedition, had involved himself in so much debt, that he found it necessary, on his return, to impose on Aquitaine a new tax on hearths. The people, disgusted by this measure, carried their com- plaints to Charles, their ancient sovereign, as to their lord paramount, against these oppressions of the English go- vernment. By the treaty of Bertigne, the king of France had renounced all claims to the homage and fealty due for Guienne, and the other provinces ceded to the English ; but, on this occasion, Charles affected to consider himself as superior lord of those provinces, and summoned Ed- ward to appear at his court at Paris, and justify his con- duct to his vassals. The prince briefly replied, that he would come to Paris, but that it should be at the head of sixty thousand men. Charles fell upon Ponthieu, while his brothers, the dukes of Berri and Anjou, invaded the southern provinces. In one action, Chandos, the constable of Guienne, was slain ; and in another, the Captal de Buche was taken prisoner. The state of the prince of Wales's health rendered him unable to mount on horseback, or exert his usual activity; and his increasing infirmities compelled him to resign the command of the army, and return to his native country. Edward, from the necessity of his affairs, was obliged to conclude a truce, after seeing almost all his ancient possessions in France ravished from , q^rj him, except Bordeaux and Bayonne, and all his conquests, except Calais. The decline of the king's power corresponded not with the preceding parts of it. Besides the loss of hig foreign dominions, he felt the decay of his authority at home. During the vigour of age, he had been chiefly 108 HSTORY OF ENGLAND. occupied by war and ambition ; but, in his latter years, he began to indulge himself in pleasure. After a lingering illness, the prince of Wales died, in the forty-sixth yetir oi his age, leaving a character illustrious for every eminent virtue, and unstained by any blemish. His valour and military talents formed the smallest part of his merit ; his generosity, humanity, affability, and moderation, gained him the affections of all men; and he was qualified to throw a lustre not only on the rude age in which he lived, but on the most shining period either of ancient or modern history. The king survived about a year this melancholy incident: he expired in the sixty-fifth year of his age, and the fifty-first of his reign ; and the people were then sen- sible, though too late, of the irreparable loss which they had sustained. The English are apt to consider with peculiar fondness the history of Edward the Third, and to esteem his reign, as it was one of the longest,* the most glorious also in the annals of their nation. The ascendancy which they then began to acquire over France, their rival and natural ene- my, makes them cast their eyes on this period with great complacency, and sanctifies every measure which Edward embraced for that end. But the domestic government of this prince is really more admirable than his foreign victories ; and England enjoyed by the prudence and vigour of his government, a longer interval of domestic peace and tranquility than she had been blest with in any former period, or than she experienced for many ages after. He gained the affections of the great, yet curbed their licentiousness: his affable and obliging behaviour, his munificence and generosity, induced them to submit with pleasure to his dominion ; and his valour and con- duct rendered them successful in most of their enterprises. His foreign wars were neither founded in justice, nor directed to any salutary purpose; but the glory of a conqueror is so dazzling to the vulgar, the animosity of nations is so violent, that the fruitless desolation of so fine a part of Europe as France, is totally disregarded by us, and is never considered as a blemish in the character or conduct of this prince. * It is the longest reign in English history, excepting that of George the Third. RICHARD II. 109 Edward had a numerous posterity by his queen, Phihp- pa of Hainault. His eldest son was the heroic Edward, usually denominated the Black Prince, from the colour of his armour. This prince espoused his cousin Joan, com- monly called the " Fair Maid of Kent," daughter and heir of his uncle, the earl of Kent, who was beheaded in the beginning of this reign. By her, the prince of Wales had a son, Richard, who succeeded his grandfather. The second son of king Edward was Lionel, duke of Clarence, who, dying while still young, left only one daughter, married to Edward Mortimer, earl of Marche. Of all the family, he resembled most his father and elder brother in his noble qualities. Edward's third son was John of Gaunt, so called fi-om the place of his birth : he was created duke of Lancaster ; and from him sprang that branch which afterwards pos- sessed the crown. The fourth son of this royal family was Edmund, created duke of York ; and the fifth was Thomas, who received the title of duke of Gloucester. By his queen, Edward had also four daughters, Isabella, Joan, Mary, and Margaret, all of whom arrived at years of maturity, and married. During the reign of Edward, the parliament rose to greater consideration than it had experienced in any for- mer time; and even the house of commons, which, during turbulent and factious periods, was naturally depressed by the greater power of the crown and barons, began to as- sume its rank in the constitution. One of the most popular laws enacted by any prince, was the statute which passed in the twenty-fifth year of king Edward's reign, and which limited the cases of high treason to three principal heads : conspiring the death of the king, levying war against him, and adhering to his enemies. CHAP. vn. The reigns of Richard II., Henry IV., and Henry V. Richard II., the son of Edward the Black Prince, was only eleven years of age when his grandfather died ; and as the late king had taken no care to ^ ^77 establish a plan of government during the mino- rity of his grandson, it behooved the parliament to supply the defect. On this occasion, the commons took the lead ; 10 110 \, , HISTORY OF ENGLAND. and at their requisition, the house of lords appointed a council of nine, to whom they gave authority for a year to direct the public business, and to inspect the education of . the young prince. The government was conducted en- tirely in the king's name ; no regency was expressly ap- pointed ; and the whole system was for some years kept together by the secret authority of the king's uncles, espe- cially of the duke of Lancaster. Edward had left his grandson involved in many dange- rous wars. The pretensions of the duke of Lancaster t<7 the crown of Castile made that kingdoi»n persevere in hos- tilities against England. Scotland maintained such close connections with France, that war with one crown almost inevitably produced hostilities with the other. Charles the Fifth, indeed, was dead, and his son Charles the Sixth was a minor. The duke of Lancaster conducted an army into Brittany ; and the duke of Gloucester, with only two thousand cavalry, and eight thousand infantry, penetrated into the heart of France ; but, though the French wer« overawed by the former successes of the English, these enterprises proved in the issue unsuccessful. The expenses of these armaments greatly exhausted the English treasury ; and the parliament imposed a tax of three groats on every person above fifteen years of age. This impost produced a most serious revolt. A spirit of independence had been excited among the people, who had this distich frequently in their mouths : " When Adam delv'd and Eve span, " Where was then the gentleman ?" At this time the tax-gatherers demanded of a black- sinith of Essex, payment for his daughter, whom he as- serted to be under the age assigned by the statute. One of the collectors offered to produce a very mdecent proof to the contrary, and laid hold of the maid ; which the fa- ther resenting, immediately knocked out the ruffian's brains with his hammer. The spectators applauded the action, and exclaimed that it was time to take vengeance on their tyrants, and to vindicate their liber4:y. The peo- ple flew to arms ; and the sedition spread from the county of Essex into that of Kent, of Hertford, Suny, Sussex, Suifolk, Norfolk, Cambridge, and Lincoln. The leaders, assuming the feigned names of Wat Tyler, Jack Straw, Hob Carter, and Tom Miller, committed the most outra- RICHARD II. \ 111 geous violence on the gentry and nobility that had the misfortune to fall into their Iiands. The mutinous popu- lace, amounting to one hundred thousand men, assembled on Blackheath, under their leaders, Tyler and Straw, broke into the city, and required of the king the abolition of slavery, freedom of commerce in market-towns without toll or impost, and a fixed rent of lands, instead of the services of villanage. These requisitions were complied with ; and charters to that purpose were granted to them, A party of the insur- gents, however, broke into the tower, murdered several persons of distinction, and continued their ravages in the city. The king, passing along Smithfield, very slenderly guarded, met with Wat Tyler, at the head of the mob, and entered into a conference with him. Tyler having order- ed his companions to retire till he should give them a sig- nal, when they were to murder all the company, except the king himself, whom they were to detain prisoner, fear- lessly came into the midst of the royal retinue. He there behaved himself in such a manner, that Walworth, the mayor of London, unable to bear his insolence, drew his sword, and struck him to the ground, where he was in- stantly despatched by others of the king's attendants. The mutineers, seeing their leader fall, prepared them- selves for revenge ; and this whole company, with the king himself, had undoubtedly perished on the spot, had it not been for the extraordinary presence of mind which Richard displayed on the occasion. Ordering his compa- ny to stop, he advanced alone against the enraged muM- tude ; and accosting them with an aftable and intrepid countenance, he asked them, " what is the meaning of this disorder, my good people 1 Are ye angry that ye have lost your leader ? I am your king : I will be your leader V The populace, overawed by his presence, implicitly fol- lowed him : he led them into the fields to prevent any disorder which might have arisen by their continuing in the city, and peaceably dismissed them with the same charter which had been granted to their fellows. Soon after, the nobility and gentry, hearing of the king's dan^-er, in which they were all involved, flocked to London with their adherents and retainers ; and Richard took the field at the head of an army forty thousand strong. The rebels were obliged to submit ; the charters of enfranchisement 112 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. and pardon were revoked by parliament ; and several of the ringleaders were severely punished. The subjection in which Richard was held by his un cles, particularly by the duke of Gloucester, a prince of genius and ambition, was extremely disagreeable to his disposition ; and he soon attempted to shake off the yoke. Gloucester and his associates, however, framed a commis- sion which was ratified by parliament, and hj which the sovereign power was transferred to a council of fourteen persons for a twelve month. The king, who had now reached the twenty-first year of his age, was in reality dethroned ; and though the term of the commission was limited, it was easy to perceive that it Avas the intention of the party to render it perpetual. However, in less than a twelve month, Richard, who was in his twenty-third year, declared in council, that, as he had now attained iQQQ ^^® ^"11 ^S^ which entitled him to govern the king- dom by his own authority, he was resolved to exer- cise his right of sovereignty. By what means the king regained his authority is unknown ; but he exercised it witli moderation, and appeared reconciled to his uncles. However, the personal conduct of Richard brought hira into contempt, even whilst his government seemed, in a great measure, unexceptionable. Indolent, profuse, and addicted to low pleasures, he spent his time in feasting, and dissipated in idle show, or in bounties to worthless favourites, the revenue which should have been employed in enterprises directed to public honour and advantage. J^ forgot his rank, and admitted all men to his familia- rity. The little regard which the people felt for his per- son, disposed them to murmur against his government, and to receive with readiness every complaint suggested to them by the discontented or ambitious nobles. Gloucester soon perceived the advantages afibrded him by the king's dissolute conduct ; and he determined to cultivate the favour of the nation. He inveighed with in- decent boldness against every measure pursued by lUqj the king, and particularly against the truce with France. His imprudence revived the resentment which his former violence had kindled ; the precipitate temper of Richard admitted of no deliberation ; and he ordered Gloucester to be unexpectedly arrested, and car- ried over to Calais, where alone, by reason of his nume- UICHARD II. 113 rous partisans, he could safely be detained in custody. Iq a parliament which was immediately summoned, an acca- sation was presented against the duke of Gloucester, and the earls of Arundel and Warwick, who had appeared against their sovereign, in a hostile manner, at Haringay Park. The earl of Arundel was executed, and the earl of Warwick banished, though the crime for which they we"e condemned had been obliterated by time, and by repeated pardons. A warrant was issued to the earl mareschal, governor of Calais, to bring over the duke of Gloucester, in order to his trial ; but the governor returned for answer, that the duke had died suddenly of an apoplexy ; though it afterwards apj)eared, that he had been suffocated by the order of Richard. After the destruction of the duke of Gloucester and the heads of that party, a misunderstanding arose among the noblemen who had joined in the prosecution. The duke of Hereford, son of the duke of Lancaster, accused the duke of Norfolk of having privately spoken many slande- rous words of the king. Norfolk denied the charge, and offered to prove his own innocence by duel. The chal- lenge was accepted ; but when the two champions appear- ed in the field, the king interposed, and ordered both the combatants to quit the kingdom ; assigning one countiy for the place of Norfolk's exile, which he declared per- petual, and another for that of Hereford, which he limited to ten years. Hereford conducted himself with so much submission, that the king shortened the term of his exile four years ; and he also granted him letters patent, by which he was empowered, in case any inheritance should in the interval accrue to him, to enter immediately into possession, and to postpone the doing of homage till his return. Howe- ver, the king's jealousy was awakened by being informed that Hereford had entered into a treaty of marriage with the daughter of the duke of Berry, uncle to the French king ; and on the death of the duke of Lancaster, which happened soon after, Richard revoked his letters patent, and seized the estate of Lancaster. Henry, the new duke of Lancaster, had acquired by his conduct and abilities the esteem of the public ; and he had joined to his other praises those of piety and valour. His misfortunes were lamented ; the injustice which he had suffered was com 10* 114 HISTORY OP ENGLAND* plained of; and all men turned their eyes towards hinij as the only person that could retrieve the lost honour of the nation, or redress the supposed abuses of the government. While such were the dispositions of the people, Richard had the imprudence to embark for Ireland, in order to re- venge the death of his cousin, Roger, earl of Marche, the presumptive heir of the crown, who had lately been slain in a skirmish with the natives ; and he thereby left the kingdom of England open to the attempts of his provoked and ambitious enemy. Henry, embarking at Nantz with a retinue of sixty persons, among whom were the arch- bishop of Canterbury, and the young earl of Arundel, nephew to that prelate, landed at Ravenspur in Yorkshire, and was immediately joined by the earls of Northumber- land and Westmoreland, two of the most potent barons in England. Every place was in commotion : the malcon- tents in all quarters flew to arms ; and Henry's army, in- creasing on eveiy day's march, soon amounted to the number of sixty thousand men. This army was farther increased by the accession of that assembled by the duke of York, who had been left guardian of the realm ; and the duke of Lancaster, thus reinforced, was now entirely ^master of the kingdom. The king, receiving information of this invasion and insurrection, hastened over from Ireland, and landed in •Milford Haven with a body of twenty thousand men ; but even this army, so much inferior to the enemy, gradually deserted him, till he found that he had not above six thou- sand men who followed his standard. Sensible of his danger, he privately fled to the isle of Anglesea, where the earl of Northumberland, by treachery and false oaths, made himself master of the king's person, and carried him to his enemy at Flint castle. Richard was conducted to London by the duke of Lancaster, who was there received by the acclamations of the mutinous populace. The duke first extorted a resignation from Richard ; but as he knew the result of this deed would appear the result of force, he also procured him to be deposed in parliament for his pre- tended tyranny and misconduct. ^^ The throne being now declared vacant, the duke of Lancaster stepped forth, and having made the sign of the cross, pronounced these words, which we shall give in the original idiom, because of their singularity : " in the name of the Fadher, Son, and Holy HENRY IV. 115 Ghost, I Henry of Lancaster challenge this rewme of Ynglande, and the croun, with all the membres, and the appurtenances : als I that am descendit by right line of the blode coming fro the gude king Henry therde, and throge that right that God of his grace hath sent me, with helpe of kyn, and of my frendeSj to recover it ; the which rewme was in poynt to be ondone by default of gover-* nance^ and ondoying of the gude laws." The earl of Northumberland made a motion in the house of peers with regard to the unhappy prince whom they had deposed. He asked them what advice they would give the king for the future treatment of him, since Henry was resolved to spare his life. They unanimously replied, that he should be imprisoned under a secure guard, in some secret place, and should be deprived of all com- merce with his friends and partisans. It was easy to fore- see, that he would not long remain alive in the hands of his barbarous and sanguinary enemies. Historians differ with regard to the manner in which he was murdered. It was long the prevailing opinion, that Sir Piers Exton, and others of his guards, fell upon him in the castle of Pomfret, where he was confined, and despatched him , with their halberts. But it is more probable, that he was starved to death in prison, since his body was exposed in public, and no marks of violence were observed upon it. He died in the thirty-fourth year of his age, and the twenty-third of his reign ; and left no posterity, either le- gitimate or illegitimate. Richard appears to have been incapacitated for govern- ment, less for want of natural parts, than of solid judg- ment and good education. He was violent in his temper ; profuse in his expense ; fond of idle show and magnifi- cence ; devoted to favourites ; and addicted to pleasure. If he had possessed the talents of gaining, or of overawing his great barons, he might have escaped all the misfor- tunes of his reign ; but when the nobles were tempted, by his want of prudence or of vigour, to resist his authority, he was naturally led to seek an opportunity of retaliation. Henry the Fourth, in his very first parliament, had rea- son to see the danger attending that station which he had assumed, and the obstacles which he would |q(Ji meet with in governing an unruly aristocracy, al- ways divided by faction, and at present inflamed with the 16 HISTORY OB ENGLAND. resentments consequent on such recent convulsions^ The peers, on then* assembhng, broke out into violent animosi- ties against each other ; forty gauntlets, the pledges oi furious battle, were thrown on the floor of the house, by ^noblemen who gave mutual challenges ; and liar and trai- ^tor resounded from all quarters. The king had so much 'authority with these doughty champions, as to prevent all the combats which they threatened ; but he was not able )to bring them to a proper composure, or to an amicable disposition towards each other. The utmost prudence of Henry could not shield him from those numerous inquietudes which assailed him from every quarter. The connection of Richard with the royal family of France, made that court exert its activity to re- cover his authority, or revenge his death ; but the confu sions which the French experienced at home, obliged them to accommodate matters, and to conclude a truce between the two kingdoms. The revolution in England proved also the occasion ol an insurrection in Wales. Owen Glendour, descended from the ancient princes of that country, had become ob- noxious on account of his attachment to Richard, in con- sequence of which Reginald, lord Grey of Ruthyn, who was connected with the new king, had seized his estate. Glendour recovered possession by the sword ; the Welsh armed on his side ; and a long and troublesome war was kindled. As Glendour committed devastations on the estate of the earl of Marche, Sir Edward Mortimer, uncle to that nobleman, led out the retainers of the family, and gave battle to the Welsh chieftain. Mortimer's troops were routed ; and the earl himself, still in his minority, was made prisoner ; and Henry, though he owed his crown to the Piercies, to whom the young nobleman was nearly related, refused to the earl of Northumberland permission, to treat for his ransom with Glendour. The critical situation of Henry had induced the Scots to make incursions into England ; and Henry, desirous of taking revenge, conducted his followers to Edinburgh : but finding the Scots would neither submit nor give him battle, he returned in three weeks, and disbanded his ar- my. In the following year, Archibald, earl of Douglas, at the head of twelve thousand men, and attended by many of the principal nobility of Scotland, made an irruption HENRY IV 1 17 into England, and committed devastations on the nortliern counties. On his return home, he was overtaken by the Piercies at Homeldon, on the borders of England, and a fierce battle ensued, in which the Scots were totally routed. Douglas himself was taken prisoner, as was Mordack, earl of Fife, son of the duke of Albany, with many others of the gentry and nobility. The obligations which Henry had owed to Northumber- land were of a kind the most likely to produce ingratitude on one side and discontent on the other. The sovereign naturally became jealous of that power which had advanced him to the throne ; and the subject was not easily satisfied in the returns which he thouglit so great a favour had me- rited. Though Henry, on his accession, had bestowed the office of constable on Northumberland for life, and con- ferred other gifts on that family, yet these favours were considered as their due : the refusal of any other request was deemed an injury. The impatient spirit of Harry Piercy, and the factious disposition of the earl of Worces- ter, younger brother of Northumberland, inflamed the dis- contents of that nobleman; and the precarious title of Henry tempted him to seek revenge, by overturninir that throne which he had at first established. He entered into a correspondence with Glendour ; he gave liberty to the earl of Douglas, and made an alliance with that martial chief; he roused up all his partisans to arms ; and such unlimited authority at that time belonged to the great fami- lies, that the same men, whom a few years before he had conducted against Richard, now follow^ed his standard in opposition to Henry. When hostilities were ready to com- mence, Northumberland was seized with a sudden illness at Berwick ; and young Piercy, taking the command of the troops, marched towards Shrewsbury, in order to join his forces with those of Glendour. The king had fortu- nately a small army on foot. He approached Piercy near Shrewsbury, before that nobleman was joined by Glen '^.our ; and the policy of one leader, and impatience of the other, made them hasten to a general engagement. We shall scarcely find any battle in those ages where the shock was more terrible and more con- t\J'^A stant. Henry exposed his person in the thickest of the fight; his gallant son, whose military achievements were after\t^rds so renowned, and who here performed his 118 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. noviciate in arms, signalized himself in the highest degree : and even a wound which he received in the face with an arrow could not oblige him to quit the field. Piercy sup- ported that fame which he had acquired in many a bloody combat ; and Douglas, his ancient enemy, and now his friend, still appeared his rival, amidst the horror and con- fusion of the day. While the armies were contending in this furious manner, the death of Piercy, by an unknown hand, decided the victory, and the royalists prevailed. There are said to have fallen that day, on both sides, near two thousand three hundred gentlemen ; but the persons of greatest distinction that were killed, belonged to the king's party. About six thousand private men perished, of whom two thirds were of Piercy's army. The earls of Worcester and Douglas were taken prisoners : the former was beheaded at Shrewsbury ; the latter was treated with the courtesy due to his rank and valour. The earl of Northumberland, having recovered from his sickness, had levied a fresh army, and was on his march to join his son ; but being opposed by the earl of Westmore- land, and hearing of the defeat at Shrewsbury, he dismiss- ed his forces, and came with a small retinue to the king at York. He pretended that his sole object in arming was to mediate between the parties : Henry thought proper to accept of the apology, and even granted him a pardon for his offence. Most of the other insurgents were treated witli equal lenity. Northumberland, however, having formed a new conspiracy against the king, was killed in an engage- ment at Bramham, in Yorkshire. This success, joined to the death of Glendour, which happened soon after, freed Henry from all his domestic enemies : and this prince, who had mounted the throne by such unjustifiable means and held it by such an acceptable title, by his valour, pru- dence, and address, had obtained a great ascendancy over his subjects. Though Henry entertained a well-grounded jealousy of the family of Mortimer, yet he allowed not their name to be once mentioned in parliament ; and as none of the re- bels had ventured to declare the earl of Marche king, he never attempted to procure an express declaration against the claim of that nobleman. However, with a design of weakening the pretensions of the earl of Marche, he pro- cured a settlement of the crown on himself and his heirs HENRY IV. 119 male ; but the long contests with France had displayed the injustice of the Salic law ; and the parliament, ap- prehensive that* they had destroyed the foundations of the Enghsh government, applied with such earnestness for a new settlement of the crown, that Henry yielded to their request, and agreed to the succession of the princes of his family. But though the commons, during this reign, showed a laudable zeal for liberty in their transactions with the crown, their efforts against the church were still more ex- traordinary. In the sixth of Henry, being required to grant supplies, they proposed in plain terms to the king, that he should seize all the temporalities of the church, and employ them as a perpetual fund to serve the exigencies of the state. The king, however, discouraged the appli- cation of the commons; and the lords rejected the bill which the lower house had framed for stripping the church of her revenues. The commons were not discouraged by this repulse: in the eleventh of the king, they returned to the charge with more zeal than before : they made a calculation of all the ecclesiastical revenues, which, by their account, amounted to four hundred and eighty-five thousand marks a year, and contained eighteen thousand ploughs of land. They proposed to divide this property among fifteen new earls, fifteen hundred knights, six thou- sand esquires, and one hundred hospitals; besides twen- ty thousand pounds a year, which the king might take for his own use ; an-d they insisted, that the clerical func- tions would be better performed than at present, by fifteen thousand parish priests, paid after the rate of seven marks a-piece of yearly stipend. This application was accom- panied with an address for mitigating the statutes enacted against the Lollards, which shows from what source the address came. To this unjust and chimerical proposal, the king gave the commons a severe reply. The king was so much employed in defending his crown, that he had little leisure to look abroad. His health de- | clined some months before his death ; and though he was f in the flower of his age, his end was visibly approaching, t He expired at Westminster, (20th March,) in the forty-sixth year of his age, and the thirteenth of ^\?o his reign. The prudence, vigilance, and foresight of Henry IV. in maintaining his power, were admirable ; liK) HISTORY OP ENGLAND. his ^ommand of temper was remarkable; liis courage both mihtary and political, without blemish; and he pos- sessed man}?: quahties which fitted him for his high station and which rendered his usurpation, though pernicious in after- times, rather salutary, during his own reign, to the English nation. He left four sons, Heniy his successor Thomas duke of Clarence, John duke of Bedford, and Humphrey duke of Gloucester; and two daughters. Blanche and Philippa, the former married to the duke ot Bavaria, the latter to the king of Denmark. The jealousies to which the deceased monarch's situa- tion naturally exposed him, had so infected his temper, that he regarded with distrust even his eldest son, whom, during the latter years of his life, he had excluded from public business. The active spirit of young Henry, re- strained from its proper exercise, broke out into extrava- gancies of every kind. There remains a tradition, that, when heated with liquor and jollity, he scrupled not to accompany his riotous associates in attacking and plun- dering the passengers in the streets and highways. This extreme dissoluteness was not more agreeable to the father, than would have been his application to business; and Henry fancied he saw, in his son's behaviour, the same neglect of decency, which had degraded the character of Richard. But the nation regarded the young prince with more indulgence : they observed in him the seeds of gene- rosity, spirit and magnanimity ; and an accident which happened, afforded occasion for favourable reflections. A riotous companion of the prince's had been indicted before Gascoigne, the chief justice, for some disorders ; and Henry was not ashamed to appear at the bar with the cri- minal, in order to give him countenance and protection. Finding that his presence did not overawe the chief justice, he proceeded to insult that magistrate on his tri- bunal ; but Gascoigne, mindful of his own character, and the majesty of the sovereign and of the laws, which he sustained, ordered the prince to be carried to prison for his rude behaviour; and th€ spectators were agreeably disappointed when they saw the heir of the crown submit peaceably to this sentence, and make reparation of his error by acknowledging it. The memory of this incident, and many others of a like nature, rendered the prospect of the futiu-e reign no- HENRY V. 121 wise disagreeable to tlie nation ; and the first steps taken by tlie young prince, confirmed all those prepossessions entertained in his favour. He called together his former companions, acquainted them with his intended reforma- tion, exhorted them to imitate his example, but strictly inhibited them, till they had given proofs of their sincerity in this particular, from appearing any more in his pre- sence ; and he thus dismissed them with liberal presents. The wise ministers of his father, who had checked his riots, were received with all the marks of favour and con- fidence ; and the chief justice himself, who trembled to approach the royal presence, met with praises instead of reproaches for his past conduct, and was exhorted to per- severe in the same rigorous and impartial execution of the laws. The surprise of those who expected an opposite behaviour, augmented their satisfaction ; and the charac- ter of the young king appeared brighter than if it had never been shaded by any errors. At this time, the Lollards were every day increasing in the kingdom. The head of this sect was sir John Old- castle, lord Cobham, a nobleman who had distinguished himself by his valour and military talents, and had acqui- red the esteem both of the late and of the present king. His high character and zeal for the new sect pointed him out to Arundel, archbishop of Canterbury, as the proper victim of ecclesiastical severity. The archbishop applied to Henry for permission to indict lord Cobham ; but the prince, averse to sanguinary methods of conversion, en- deavoured, by a conversation with Cobham, to reconcile him to the Catholic faith. But he found that nobleman firm in his opinions ; and Henry's principles of toleration could carry him no farther. The primate indicted Cobham, and, with the assistance of his suffragans, condemned him to the flames for his erroneous opinions. Cobham escaped from the tower; and his daring spirit, provoked by per- secution and stimulated by zeal, prompted him to attempt the most criminal enterprises. He appointed a general rendezvous of his party, in order to seize the person of the king, and put their religious enemies to the sword ; but Henry, apprised of their intentions, apprehended such of the conspirators as appeared, and rendered the design in- effectual. It appeared that a few only were in the secret of the conspiracy : of these, some were executed ; and 11 ^^^ I ^ 2 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. |Cobham himself, who had fled, was not brought to justice ' till four years after, when he was hanged as a traitor, and his body burnt upon the gibbet. Charles the Sixth, king of France, after assuming the reins of government, had discovered symptoms of genius and spirit ; but the unhappy prince being seized with an epileptic disorder, his judgment was gradually but sen- sibly impaired ; and the administration of affairs was dis- puted between his brother, Lewis, duke of Orleans, and his cousin-german, John, duke of Burgundy. The latter pro- cured his rival to be assassinated in the streets of Paris. The princes of the blood, combining with the young duke of Orleans and his brothers, with all the violence of party rage, made war on the duke of Burgundy ; and the un- happy king, seized sometimes by one party, sometimes by the other, transferred alternately to each of them the ap- pearance of legal authority. These circumstances concurred to favour an enterprise of the English against France. Henry, therefore, assem- bled a great fleet and army at Southampton ; and relying on the aid of the duke of Burgundy, he put to sea, and landed near Harfleur, with six thousand men at arms, and tvv^enty-four thousand foot. He obliged that city to fcapi- tulate after a gallant defence. The fatigues of this siege, and the usual heat of the season, had so wasted the English army, that Henry could enter on no other enter- prise; ajid as he had dismissed his transports, he was under the necessity of marching by land to Calais, before he could reach a place of safety. By this time a numerous French army, of fourteen thousand men at arms, and forty thousand foot, was assembled in Normandy, under the constable d'Albert. Henry, therefore, offered to purchase a safe retreat at the expense of his new conquest of Har- fleur ; but his proposals being rejected, he marched slowly and deliberately to the Somme, which he purposed to pass at the same ford that had proved so auspicious to his pre- decessor Edward. The ford, however, was rendered im- passable, by the precaution of the French ; but he was so fortunate as to surprise a passage near St. Quentin, over which he safely carried his force. After passing the small river of Ternois at Blangi, he observed the whole French army drawn up in the plains of Agincourt, and so posted tliat an engagement was inevitable. The enemy was four HENRY V. >Z? 123 times more numerous than the English, and was headed by the dauphin, and all the princes of the blood. Henrj's situation was exactly similar to that of Edward it Crecy, and of the Black Prince at Poictiers. The king Jrew up his army on a narrow ground between two woods, which guarded his flank, and patiently awaited the attack of the enemy. The French archers on horseback, and their men at arms, crowded in their ranks, advanced against the English archers, who had fixed palisadoes in their front to break the impression of the enemy, and who, from behind that defence, safely plied them with a shower of arrows which nothing could resist. The heavy ground hindered the force of the French cavalry ; the whole army was a scene of confusion, terror, and dismay ; and the English fell with then* battle-axes upon the French, who, being unable to flee or defend themselves, were slaughtered without resistance. Among the slain were the constctble himself, the count of Nevers, and the duke of Brabant, both brothers to the duke of Burgundy, the count of Vau- demont, the dukes of Alen^on and Barre, and the count of Marie ; and among the prisoners were the dukes of Orleans and Bourbon, the counts d'Eu, Vendome, and Richmont, and the mareschal of Bousicaut. The killed, on the side of the French, are computed to have amounted to ten thousand men ; and the prisoners to four- teen thousand. The person of chief note, who fell -,\^^ among the English, was the duke of York ; and their whole loss is said not to have exceeded forty men. During the interruption of hostilities which followed this engagement, France was exposed to all the furies of civil war. The count of Armagnac, created constable of France, prevailed on the king to send the queen to Tours, and confine her under a guard ; and her son, the dauphin Charles, was entirely governed by the faction of Armag- nac. In concert with her, the duke of Burgundy entered France at the head of a powerful army, and at last libera- ted the queen, who fixed her independent residence at Troyes, and openly declared against the ministers, who, she asserted, detained her royal consort in captivity. In the mean time, the partisans of Burgundy raised a com- motion in Paris. Lisle Adam, one of the duke's captains, was received into the city, and headed the insurrection ; the person of the king was seized ; the dauphin escaped with difficulty; and the count of Armagnac, the chancellor. 124 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. and the principal adherents of the Orleans party, were inhumanly put to death. Henry the Fifth again landed in Normandy, at the head of twenty-five thousand men. Having subdued all the lower Normandy, he formed the seige of Rouen, of which, at length, he made himself master. The duke of Burgundy was assassinated by the treacher)'^ of the dauphin ; and his son thought himself bound to revenge the murder of his father. A league was concluded at Arras between Henry and the young duke of Burgundy, who agreed to every demand made by that monarch. By this treaty, which was concluded at Troyes, in the names of the kings of France and England, and the duke of Burgundy, it was stipulated, that Charles, during his life, i^Qn should enjoy the title and dignity of king of France ; that Henry should be declared heir of the monarchy, and immediately intrusted with the reins of government, and that kingdom should pass to his heirs general; that France and Eno^land should ever be united under one kine", but should still retain their several usages, customs, and pri- vileges ; and that Henry should join his arms to those of king Charles and the duke of Burgundy, for the purpose of subduing the adherents of Charles the dauphin. To push his present advantages, Henry, a few days after, espoused the princess Catharine, carried his father-in-law to Paris, and put himself in possession of that capital. He then turned his arms with success against the dauphin, who, as soon as he heard of the treaty of Troyes, had assumed the title of regent. That prince, chased beyond the Loire, almost entirely deserted by the northern pro- vinces, and pursued into the south by the English and Bur- gundians, prepared to meet with fortitude the destruction which seemed inevitable. To crown the prosperity of Henry, his queen Catharine was delivered of a son, who was called by his father's name, and whose birth was ce- lebrated by equal rejoicings in Paris and in London. The gloiy of Henry, however, had now reached its sum- mit. He was seized with a fistula, a complaint which the ignorance of the age rendered mortal. Sensible of his approaching end, he devoted the few remaining moments of life to the concerns of his kingdom and family, and Ko the pious duties of religion. To the duke of Bedford, his elder brother, he left the regency of France ; to the HENRY VI. 125 duke of Gloucester, his younger brother, he committed that of England ; and to the earl of Warwick he entrust- ed the care of his son's person and education. He expired in the thirty-foui'th year of his age, and i^oo the tenth of his reign. ^. '^ Henry the Fifth possessed many eminent virtues, which were unstained by any other blemish than ambition and the love of glory. His talents were equally distinguished in the field and the cabinet ; and whilst we admire the boldness of his enterprises, we cannot refuse our praise to the prudence and valour by which they were conducted. His affability attached his friends to his seiTice ; and his address and clemency vanquished his enemies. His un- ceasing attention to the administration of justice, and his maintenance of discipline in the armies, alleviated both to France and England the calamities inseparable from those wars in which his short and splendid reign was al- most entirely occupied. The exterior figure of this great prince, as well as his deportment, was engaging. His stature was somewhat above the middle size ; his coun- tenance beautiful; his limbs genteel and slender, but full of vigour ; and he excelled in all warlike and manly exercises. He left by his queen, Catharine of France, only one son, not full nine months old ; whose misfortunes, in the course of his life, surpassed all the glories and suc- cesses of his father. Catharine of France, Henry's widow, married, soon after his death, a Welsh gentleman, Sir Owen Tudor, said to be descended from the ancient princes of that country : she bore him two sons, Edmund and Jasper, of whom the eldest was created earl of Richmond ; the second, earl of Pem- broke. The family of Tudor, first raised to distinction by this alliance, mounted afterwards the throne of England. CHAP. vin. The reigns of Henry F/., Edward IV., and Edward V. During the reign of the princes of the house of Lancas- ter, the authority of parliament had been more confirmed, arid the privileges of the people more regarded, than in any former period. Without attending to the strict letter of the deceased monarch's recommendation, the lords and commons appointed the duke of Bedford ©ro^ec^or or s^uar 11* ^'^^^ \ 2 l^ HISTORY OF ENGLAND. dian of the kingdom ; they invested the duke of Gloucester with the same dignity during the absence of his elder bro- ther ; and, in order to hmit the power of both these princes, they appointed a council, without whose advice and appro- bation no measure of importance could be determined. The person and education of the infant prince were com- mitted to Henry Beaufort, bishop of Winchester, his great uncle, who, as his family could never have any pretensions to the crown, might safely, they thought, be intrusted with that important charge. The conquest of France was the first object of the new government ; and, on a supei-ficial view of the state of af- fairs, every advantage seemed to be on the side of the English. Though Henry was an infant, the duke of Bed- ford was the most accomplished prince of his age ; and the whole power of England was at his command. He was at the head of armies accustomed to victory ; he was seconded by the most renowned generals of the age ; and besides Guienne, the ancient inheritance of England, he was master of Paris, and of almost all the northern provinces. But Charles, notwithstanding his present inferiority, possessed some advantages which promised him success. Fie was the true and undoubted heir of the monarchy ; and all Frenchmen, who knew the interest, or desired the inde- pendence of their country, turned their eyes towards him as their sole resource. Though only in his twentieth year, he was of the most friendly and benign disposition, of easy and familiar manners, and of a just, though not a very vigorous understanding. The love of pleasure often seduced him into indolence ; but, amidst all his irregulari- ties, the goodness of his heart still shone forth ; and by exerting at intervals his courage and activity, he proved that his remissness did not proceed from the want of am- bition or personal valour. The resentment of the duke of Burgundy against Charles, still continued ; and the duke of Bedford, that he might corroborate national connections by private ties, concluded his own marriage with the princess of Burgimdy, which had been stipulated by the treaty of Arras. But the duke of Bedford was not so much employed in negotiations, as to neglect the operations of war. A con- siderable advantage was gained over the French, in the battle of Crevant, by the united forces of England and HENRY Vt. , I2t Burgundy. In the mean time, the duke of Bedford was engaged in the siege of Yvri in Normandy ; and the go- vernor, finding his resources exhausted, agreed to surren- der the town, if not Veheved by a certain day. Charles, informed of these conditions, determined to make an at- tempt for saving the place ; and collecting an army of fourteen thousand men, of whom one half were Scots, he entrusted it to the earl of Buchan, constable of France. When the constable arrived within a few leagues of Yvri, he found that the place had already surrendered ; but he immediately invested Verneuil, which he carried without difficulty. On the approach of the duke of Bedford, Bu- chan called a council of war, in order to deliberate on the conduct necessary to be pursued. The wiser part of the council declared for a retreat ; but a vain point of honour determined the assembly to await the arrival of the duke of Bedford. In this action, the numbers of the contending armies were nearly equal ; and the battle was fierce and well dis- puted. At length, the duke of Bedford, at the head of the men at arms, broke the ranks of the French, chased them off the field, and rendered the victory complete and deci- sive. Verneuil was surrendered next day by capitulation. The fortunes of Charles now appeared almost desperate, when an incident happened which lost the English an op- portunity of completing their conquests. Jaqueline, coun- tess of Hainault and Holland, and heiress of these pro- vinces, had espoused John, duke of Brabant, cousin-gfer- man to the duke of Burgundy. The marriage had been dictated by motives of policy ; but the duke of Brabant's weakness, both of body and mind, inspired the countess with contempt, v/hich soon proceeded to antipathy. Im- patient of effecting her purpose, she escaped into England, and solicited the protection of the duke of Gloucester. The impetuous passions of that prince, and the prospect of inheriting her rich inheritance, induced him to ojfer him- self to her as a husband ; and he entered into a contract of marriage with Jaqueline, and immediately attempted to render himself master of her dominions. The duke of Burgundy resented the injury offered to the duke of Bra- bant, his near relation, and marched troops to his support; the quan-el, which was at first political, soon became per- sonal ; and the protector, instead of improving the victoiy 128 \ HISTORY OF ENGLAND. gained at Verneuilj found himself obliged to return to Eng- land, that he might try, by his councils and authority, to moderate the measures of the duke of Gloucester. The pope annulled Jaqueline's contract with the duke of Gloucester ; and Humphrey, despairing of success, mar- ried another lady, who had lived some time with him as his mistress. The duke of Brabant died ; and his widow, before she could recover possession of her dominions, was obliged to declare the duke of Burgiaidy her heir, in case she should die without issue, and to promise never to marry without his consent. This affair, however, left an unfa- vourable impression on the mind of Philip, and excited an extreme jealousy of the English. About the same time, the duke of Brittany withdrew himself from the alliance with England ; his defection was followed by that of his brother, the count of Richemont ; and both these princes joined the standard of their legitimate sovereign, Charles the Seventh. Indignant at the conduct of the duke of Brittany, the duke of Bedford, on his arrival in France, secretly assem- bled a considerable army, and suddenly invading the pro- vince of Brittany, compelled its sovereign to renounce his alliance with France, and to yield homage to Henry for his duchy. Being thus freed from a dangerous enemy, the English prince resolved to invest the city of ^19^ ^I'leans, which v/as so situated between the pro- vinces commanded by Henry, and tbose possessed by Charles, as to afford an easy entrance into either. He committed the conduct of the enterprise to the earl of Sa- lisbury, who had greatly distinguished himself by his mili- tary talents during the present war. On the other hand, the French king reinforced the garrison, and replenished the magazines, and appointed as governor the lord of (Jaucur, a brave and experienced officer. The earl of Salisbury approached the place with an ar- my of ten thousand men, and was killed by a cannon shot in a successful attack on the fortifications. The earl ot Suffolk succeeded to the command ; and being reinforced by large bodies of EngUsh and Burgundians, he com pletely invested Orleans. The inclemency of the season and the rigour of the winter, could not overcome the per- severance of the besiegers, who seemed daily advancing to the completion of their enterprise. In order to distress HENRY VI. 129 the enemy, the French had ravaged and exhausted the whole surrounding country ; and the English were com- pelled to draw their subsistence from a considerable dis- tance. A convoy of provisions was escorted by Sir John Falstoffe, with a detachment of two thousand five hundred men. Falstofte, being attacked by a body of four thou- sand French, under the command of the counts of Cler- mont and Dunois, drew up his men behind the wagons ; when the French were defeated by their own impetuosity, and five hundred of them perished on the field. Charles had now only one expedient left for preserving that city. The duke of Orleans, still a prisoner in Eng- land, had prevailed on the duke of Gloucester and his council to consent to a neutrality in his demesnes, which should be sequestered during the war into the hands of the duke of Burgundy ; but this proposal was rejected by the duke of Bedford, who replied, that " he was not in a humour to beat the bushes, whilst others ran away with the game." This answer disgusted the duke of Burgun- dy, who separated his forces from those of the English ; but the latter pressed the siege with increased ardour ; and scarcity was already experienced by the garrison and inhabitants. Charles, almost reduced to despair, entertained thoughts of retiring with the remains of his army into Dauphine and Languedoc ; but he was diverted from his purpose by the intreaties of his queen, Mary of Anjou, a princess of prudence and spirit, and by the remonstrances of his beau- tiful mistress, the celebrated Agnes Sorele. In the village of Domremi, near Vaucouleurs, on the borders of Lorraine, lived a country girl, called Joan d'Arc, who was a servant in a small inn, and who, having been accustomed to ride the horses of her master's guests to water, had acquired a degree of hardihood, which enabled her to endure the fatigiies of war. The present situation of France was the common topic of conversation. Joan, inflamed by the general sentiment, fancied that she was destined by heaven to re-establish the throne of her sove ■ reign ; and the intrepiditj^of her mind led her to despise the dangers which would naturally attend such an attempt. She procured admission to Baudricourt, the governor of Vaucouleurs ; and declared to him, that she had been ex- horted by visions and voices to achieve the deliverance of 130 ^ HISTORY OF ENGLAND. her countiy. Baudricourt, either equally credulous him self, or sufficiently penetrating to foresee the effect such an enthusiast might have on the minds of the vulgar, gave her an escort to the French court, which at that time resided at Chinon. On her arrival, she is said to have distmguished Charles, though he purposely remained in the crowd of his cour- tiers, and had divested himself of every ensign of royalty ; to have offered him to raise the siege of Orleans, and to conduct him to Rheims, there to be crowned and anointed ; and to have demanded, as the instrument of her future victories, a sword which was kept in the church of St. Catharine, of Firebois, and which, though she had never seen it, she described by its particular marks. Charles and his ministers pretended to examine her claims with scrupulous exactness ; and her mission was pronounced authentic and supernatural by an assemblage of doctors and theologians, and by the parliament of France, then residing at Foictiers. To essay the power of Joan, she was sent to Blois, where a convoy was already provided for the relief of Or- leans, and an army of ten thousand men were assembled to escort it. The holy maid marched at the head of the troops, and displayed in her hand a consecrated banner, on which was represented the Supreme Being holding the globe of the earth. The English affected to deride the maid and her heavenly commission ; but the common soldiers were insensibly impressed with horror, and waited .with anxious dread the issue of these extraordinary pre- parations. In this state of the public mind, the earl of Suffolk durst not venture an attack ; and the French army returned to Blois without interruption. The maid enter- ed the city of Orleans, arrayed in her military garb, and displaying her consecrated standard, and was received by the inhabitants as a celestial deliverer. A second convoy approached the city, on the side of Bausse ; and the wa- gons and troops passed without interruption between the redoubts of the English, who, formerly elated with victory, and impatient for action, beh#d the enterprises of their enemies in silent astonishment and religious awe. The maid seized the critical moment, and exhorting the garri- son to attack the enemy in their entrenchments, the Eng- lish were successively chased from their posts with the HENRY VI. Ifi 131 lo«s of above six thousand men. In vain did the English gen.erals oppose the prevailing opinion of supernatural inriuence ; the English had lost their wonted courage and contidence, and were seized with amazement and despair. Unable to remain longer in the presence of a victorious enemy, the earl of Suffolk raised the siege, and retired to Jergeau, which was attacked by the French, under the command of Joan. On this occasion, the maid displayed her usual intrepidity, and led the attack. The place was obstinately defended ; but the English were at length over- powered, and Suffolk was obliged to yield himself prisoner. The remainder of the English army, commanded by Fal- stoffe, Scales, and Talbot, were pressed by the constable Richemont. They were overtaken at the village of Fatay ; and oppressed by their fears, they immediately fled. Two thousand of the English were slaughtered ; and both Scales and Talbot were made prisoners. The maid had fulfilled one part of her promise ; and she now strongly insisted that the king should be crowned at Rheims. The city itself lay in a distant part of the kingdom, and was in the hands of the English ; and the whole road whicb led to it was occupied by their garri- sons. However, Charles resolved to follow the exhorta- tions of his warlike prophetess ; and he set out for Rheims, at the head of twelve thousand men. Troys and Chalons opened their gates to him ; and he was admitted intQ Rheims, where the ceremony of his coronation was per- formed. From this act, as from a heavenly commission, Charles seemed to derive an additional title to the crown, and many towns in the neighbourhood immediately sub- mitted to his authority. The abilities of the duke of Bedford were never dis- played to more advantage than on this occasion. He put all the English garrisons in a posture of I'to-^ defence ; he retained the Parisians in obedience by alternately employing caresses and menaces ; and he had the address to renew, in this dangerous crisis, his alliance with the duke of Burgundy, who had begun to waver in his fidelity. The French army, which consisted chiefly of volunteers, soon after disbanded ; and Charles, after having possessed himself of Laval, Lagni, and St. Denys, retired to Bourges. Be Iford caused Henry the Sixth to be crowned and anointe.. at Paris, and exacted an oath 132 (5X HISTORY OF ENGLAND. of allegiance from all who lived m the provinces still pos • sessed by England. After the coronation of Charles at Rheims, the maid oi Orleans declared that her mission was now fulfilled ; but the count of Dunois exhorted her to persevere till the English should be finally expelled. Overcome by his im- portunities, she had thrown herself into the town of Com- peigne, which was at that time besieged by the duke of Bedford, assisted by the earls of Arundel and Suftolk. In a sally, she was deserted by her friends, probably out of envy ; and being surrounded by the enemy, she was taken prisoner. The duke of Bedford purchased the captive from John of Luxemburgh, into whose hands she had fal- len, and commenced a prosecution against her, which, whether undertaken from policy or revenge, was equally barbarous and dishonourable. She was tried for sorcery, impiety, idolatry, and magic ; and though harassed by in- terrogatories for the space of four hours, she betrayed no weakness or womanish submission, but answered with firmness and intrepidity. However, she was convicted of all the crimes of which she had been accused, aggravated by heresy ; her revelations were declared to be the inven- tions of the devil to delude the people ; and she was sen- tenced to be burnt in the market place of Rouen. The inhuman sentence was accordingly executed ; and the un- happy victim eypiated by her death the signal services which she had rendered to her prince and her country. The affairs of the English, instead of being advanced by this inhuman act, became every day more ruinous ; and the abilities of Bedford were unable to prevent the French from returning under the obedience of their legitimate sovereign. The duke of Burgundy determined to unite liimself to the royal family of France, from which his own had descended ; and a congress was appointed at ^o^- Arras, in which were adjusted the mutual preten- sions of Charles and Philip. Soon after this trans- action, the duke of Bedford expired, a prince of great abilities and many virtues, and whose memory is chiefly tarnished by the execution of the maid of Orlelns. After his death, the court of Henry was distracted by the rival j parties of the duke of Gloucester and the cardinal of I Winchester ; and it was seven months before the duke of I York, son to the earl of Cambridge, who had been execu- liEJS'UY Vli 133 ted in the beginning of the last reign, was appointed sue cessor to the duke of Bedford. On his arrival in France, the new governor found the capital already lost. The Pa- risians were attached to the house of Burgundy ; and after the conclusion of the treaty of Arras, they returned to their allegiance under their native sovereign. Lord Wii- loughby, with an English garrison of fifteen hundred men, retired into the Bastile ; but his valour and skill only served to procure him a capitulation, by which he was allowed with his troops a safe retreat into Normandy. The cardinal of Winchester had always encouraged every proposal of accommodation with France, and had represented the utter impossibility of pushing farther the conquest in that kingdom ; but the duke of Gloucester, high-spirited and haughty, and educated in the lofty pre- tensions which the first success of his two brothers had rendered familiar to him, could not be induced to relin- quish all hopes of subduing France. However, the earl of Suffolk, who adhered to the cardinal's party, was des- patched to Tours to negotiate with the French mi- nisters. As it was found impossible to adjust the , \ ,,{ terms of a lasting peace, a truce for twenty- two months was concluded ; and Suffolk proceeded to the ex- ecution of another business, which seems to have been rather implied than expressed in the powers granted to him. As Henry advanced in years, his character became fully known* He was found to be of the most harmless, simple manners, but of the most slender capacity ; and hence it was easy to foresee that his reign would prove a perpetual minority. As he had now, however, reached the twenty- third year of his age, it was natural to think of choosing him a queen. The duke of Gloucester proposed a daugh- ter of the count of Armagnac, but the cardinal and his friends cast their eyes on Margaret of Anjou, daughter of Regnier, titular king of Sicily, Naples, and Jerusalem : a princess accomplished both in person and mind, of a mas- culine spirit, and an enterprising temper, which she had not been able to conceal even in the privacy of her father's family, the earl of Suffolk, in concert with his associates of the English council, made proposals of marriage to Margaret, which were accepted. Though Margaret brought no dowry with her, this nobleman ventured of himself, without any direct authority from the council 12 134 ;; ti HISToriY or EXtil.AI^D. but probably with the approbation of the cardinal and the ruling members, to enga*i;e, by a secret article, that the province of Maine, which was at that time in the hands of the English, should be ceded to Charles of Anjou. her uncle, who was prime minister and favourite of the French king, and who had already received from his master the grant of that province as his appanage. The treaty of marriage was ratified in England : Suffolk obtained first the title of marquis, then that of duke ; and even received the thanlcs of parliament for his services in concluding it. The princess immediately fell into close connexions with the cardinal and his party, who, fortified by her powerful patronage, resolved on the final ruin of the duke of Gloucester. The generous prince, ill-suited to court intrigues, but possessing in a high degree the favour of the public, had received from his rivals a cruel mortification, which he had hitherto borne without violating the public peace, but which it was impossible that a person of his spirit and hu- manity could ever forgive. His duchess, the daughter of ileginal lord Cobham, had been accused of the crime of witchcraft ; and it was pretended that there was found in her possession a waxen figure of the king, which she and her associates, sir Roger Bolingbroke, a priest, and one Marjery Jordan of Eye, melted in a magical manner be- fore a slow fire, with an intention of making Heniy's force and vigour waste away, by like insensible degrees. TJie accusation was well calculated to affect the weak and credulous mind of tlie king, and to gain belief in an igno- rant age ; and the duchess was brought to trial with her confederates. A charge of this ridiculous nature seems always to exempt the accusers from observing the rules of common sense in their evidence : the prisoners were pro- nounced guilty; the duchess was condemned to do public penance, and to suffer pei^petual imprisonment ; and the others were executed. As these violent proceedings weie ascribed solely to the malice of the duke's enemies, the people, contrary to their usual practice in such trials, ac- quitted the unhappy sufferers, and increased tlwir esteem and affection towards a prince who was thus exposed to mortal injuries. The sentiments of the public made the cardinal and his party sensible that it was necessary to destroy a man whom HENRY VI. 135 they had so deeply injured. In order to effect their pur- pose, a parHament was summoned to meet, not at Lon- don, which was supposed to be too well affected to the duke, but at St. Edmondsbury. As soon as Gloucestei appeared, he was accused of treason, and, thrown into prison : he was soon after found dead in his -. ',^1 bed ; and though it was pretended that his death was natural, and his body bore no marks of outward vio- lence, no one doubted but he had fallen a victim to the vengeance of his enemies. The cardinal of Winchester died six weeks after his nephew, whose murder was universally ascribed to him as well as to the duke of Suffolk, and which, it is said, g'ave him more remorse in his last moments, than could be naturally expected from a man hardened, during the course of a long life, in falsehood and in politics. What share the queen had in this guilt is uncertain : her usual activity and spirit made the people conclude, with some reason, that the duke's enemies durst not have ventured on such a deed without her privity. But there happened, soon after, an event of which she and her favourite, the duke of Suffolk, bore incontestibly the whole odium. , ^ The article of the marriage treaty, by which the pro- vince of Maine was to be ceded to Charles of Anjou, the queen's uncle, had been hitherto kept secret ; but as the court of France strenuously insisted on its performance, orders were now despatched, under Henry's hand, to Sir Francis Surienne, governor of Mans, to surrender that place. Surienne, questioning the authenticity of the order, refused to comply ; but a French army, under the count of Dunois, obliged him to surrender not only Mans, but all the other fortresses in that province. Surienne, at the head of his garrisons, retired into Normandy : but the duke of Somerset, who was governor of that province, refused to admit him ; and this adventurer marched into Brittany, and subsisted his troops by the ravages which he exercised. The duke of Brittany complained of this violence to the king of France, his liege lord ; and Charles remonstrated with Somerset, who replied, that the injury was done without his privity, and that he had no authority over Surienne. Charles refused to admit of this apology, and insisted that reparation should be made to the duke of Brittany for all the damages which he had sustained ; and, in order to render an accommodation absolutely imprac- 136 HISTORir OF ENGLAND. ticable, he estimated the loss at no less a sum than one million six hundred thousand crowns. Sen-sible of the superiority which the present state of his affairs gave him over England, he was determined to take advantage of it; and, accordingly, Normandy was at once invaded by four powerful armies : the first 1 44Q commanded by the king of France himself ; the second, by the duke of Brittany ; the third, by the duke of Alen^on ; and the fourth, by the count of Dunois. The conquest of Normandy was speedily finished by Charles. A like rapid success attended the French arms in Guienne ; and the English were expelled from a pro- vince which they had held for three centuries. "^ The palpable weakness of Henry the Sixth had encou- raged a pretender to the crown of England ; and the English were doomed to pay, though late, the penalty of their turbulence under Richard the Second, and of their levity in violating, without any necessity, the lineal succes- sion of their monarchs. All the males of the house of Mortimer were extinct ; but Anne, the sister of the last earl of Marche, having espoused the earl of Cambridge, beheaded in the reign of Henry V., had transmitted her latent, but not yet forgotten, claim to her son, Richard, duke of York. This prince, thus descended by his mother from Fhilippa, only daughter of the duke of Clarence, second son of Edward III., stood plainly in the order of succession before the king, who derived his descent from the duke of Lancaster, third son of that monarch ; and that claim could not, in many respects, have fallen into more dangerous hands than those of the duke of York. Richard was a man of valour and abilities, of a prudent conduct and mild disposition ; he had enjoyed an oppor- tunity of displaying these virtues in his government of France ; and though recalled by the intrigues and superior interest of the duke of Somerset, he had been sent to sup- press a rebellion in Ireland ; and had even been able to attach to his person and family the whole Irish nation, whom he was sent to subdue. In the right of his fatlier, he bore the rank of first prince of the blood ; and by this station he gave a lustre to his title derived from the family of Mortimer, which, however, had been eclipsed by the royal descent of the house of Lancaster. He possessed an immense fortune from the union of so manv succes- HENRY VI. 137 sions, those of Cambridge and York on the one hand, with those of Mortimer on the other ; which last inheri- tance had been before augmented by a union of the estates of Clarence and Ulster, with the patrimonial pos- sessions of the family of Marche. The alliance too of Richard, by his marrying the daughter of Ralph Nevil, earl of Westmoreland, had widely extended his interest among the nobility, and had procured him many connec- tions in that formidable ordor. Among the rest, he was nearly allied to the earl of Warwick, commonly known from the subsequent events by the appellation of the King- maker. This nobleman had distinguished himself by his gallantry in the field, by the hospitality of his table, by the magnificence, and still more by the generosity of his expense, and by the spirited and bold manner which at- tended him in all his actions. The undesigning frankness and openness of his character rendered his conquest over men*s affections the more certain. No less than thirty thousand persons are said to have daily lived at his ex- pense in the difibrent manors and castles which he pos- sessed ; and he was the greatest, as well as the last, of those mighty barons, who formerly overawed the crown. The humours of the people, set afloat by a parliamen- tary impeachment, and by the fall of the duke of Suflblk, broke out in various commotions, which were soon sup- pressed ; but an insurrection in Kent was attended with more dangerous consequences. One John Cade, a native of Ireland, a man of low condition, who had been obliged to fly into France for crimes, observed, on his return to England, the discontents of the people, and assumed the name of John Mortimer. On the first mention of that popular name, the common people of Kent, to the num- ber of twenty thousand, flocked to Cade's standard ; and he inflamed their zeal by publishing complaints against the numerous abuses in government, and demanding a re- dress of grievances. Cade advanced with his follov/ers towards London, and encamped on Blackheath ; and transmitting to the court a plausible list of grievances, he promised that when these should be redressed, and lord Say the treasurer, and Cromer sheriff of Kent, should be punished for their malversations, he would immediately lay down his arms. The council, perceiving the reluc- tance of the people to fight against men so reasonable u. 12* 138 t HISTORY OF ENGLAND. their pretensions, carried the king, for present safety, lo Kenilwonh ; and the city immediately opened its gates to Cade, who maintained, during some time, great order and discipUne among his followers. But being obliged, in order to gratify their malevolence against Say and Cro- mer, to put these men to death without a legal trial, he found that after the commission of this crime, he was no longer able to control their riotous disposition, and that all his orders were disobeyed. Proceeding to acts of plun- der and violence, the citizens became alarmed, and shut their gates against them ; and, being seconded by a de* tachment of soldiers sent them by lord Scales, governor of tlie tower, they repulsed the rebels with great slaughter. The Kentishmen were so discouraged by the blow, that upon receiving a general pardon from the primate, then chancellor, they retreated towards Rochester, and there dispersed. The pardon, however, was soon after annulled, as extorted by violence ; a price was set on Cade's head, who was killed by one Iden, a gentleman of Sussex ; and many of his followers w^ere punished with death. The court suspected that the duke of York had secretly instigated Cade to this attempt, to sound the dispositions of the people towards his title and family ; and fearing that he intended to return from Ireland with an armed force, the ruling party issued orders debarring him en- trance into England. The duke refuted his enemies by coming attended with only his ordinary retinue ; but find- ing himself an object of jealousy, he saw the impossibility of remaining a quiet subject, and the necessity of pro- ceeding forward in support of his claim. His partisans, therefore, were instructed to maintain his right by succes- sion, and by the established constitution of the kingdom ; and the arguments adduced by his adherents and those of the reigning family, divided and distracted the people. The noblemen of greatest influence espoused the part of the duke of York ; but the earl of Northumberland adher- ed to the present government ; and the earl of Westmore- land, though head of the family of Nevil, was prevailed on to support the cause of Henry. The public discontents were increased by the loss of the province of Gascony, which was subdued by the French ; and though the English might deem themselves happy in being freed from all continental possessionfi, HENRY vr. 139 ihey expressed great dissatisfaction on the occasion, and threw all the blame on the ministry. While they were in this disposition, the queen's delivery of a son, who re- ceived the name of Edward, had a tendency to inflame the public mind, as it removed all hopes of the peaceable successio]! of the duke of York, who was otherwise, in the right of his fathei^ and by the laws enacted since the accession of the house of Lancaster, next heir to the crown. The duke, however, was incapable of violent councils ; and even when no visible obstacles lay between him and the throne, he was prevented by his own scruples from mounting it. Henry, always unfit to exercise the govern- ment, fell about this time into a distemper, which so far increased his natural imbecility, that it rendered him inca- pable of maintaining even the appearance of royalty. The queen and the council, destitute of this support, and finding themselves unable to resist the York party, were obhged to yield to the torrent. They sent to the tower the duke of Somerset, who had succeeded to Suffolk's influence in the ministry, and who had soon become equally the object of public animosity and hatred ; and they appointed Richard lieutenant of the kingdom, with powers to open and hold a session of parliament. That assembly also, taking into consideration the state of the kingdom, created him protector during pleasure. Yet the duke, in- stead of pushing them to make farther concessions, ap- peared somewhat timid and irresolute, even in receiving the power which was tendered to him. This moderation of Richard was certainly very unusual and very amiable ; yet it was attended with bad consequences in the present juncture, and, by giving time to the animosities of faction to rise and ferment, it proved the source of all those furi- ous wars and commotions which ensued. The enemies of the duke of York soon found it in their power to take advantage of his excessive caution. Hen- ry, being so far recovered from his distemper as to carry the appearance of exercising the royal power, was moved to resume his authority, to annul the protectorship of the duke, to release Somerset from the tower, and to commit the administration into the hands of that nobleman. Ri- chard, sensible of the dangers to which he might be ex- posed, if he submitted to the annulling of the parliamen- tary commission, levied an army ; but still without advan- 140 HISTORY OP ENGLAND, cing any pretensions to the crown. He complained onlj of the king's ministers, and demanded a reformation of the government. A battle was fou2;ht at St. Al- ^'akk ban's, in which the Yorkists, without suffering- any material loss, slew about five thousand of their enemies. The king himself fell into the hands of the duke of York, who treated him with great respect and tender- ness ; and he was only obliged, w^hich he regarded as no hardship, to commit the whole authority of the crown into the hands of his rival. This was the first blood spilt in that fatal quarrel between the houses of York and Lancas- ter, which lasted for thirty years, and which is computed to have cost the lives of eighty princes of the blood, and almost entirely annihilated the ancient nobility of England. An outward reconciliation was effected, by means of the archbishop of Canterbury, between the two parties ; but it was evident, that the contest for a crown could not thus be peaceably accommodated. One of the king's retinue insulted one of the earl of Warwick's, and their compa- nions on both sides took part in the quarrel ; a fierce com- bat ensued ; the earl, apprehending his life to be aimed at, fled to his government of Calais, w^hich gave him the com- mand of the only regular force maintained by England ; and both parties, in every county, openly made prepara- tions for deciding the contest by arms. The earl of Salisbury, marching to join the duke of York, was overtaken at Blore-heath, on the borders of Staffordshire, by lord Audley, who commanded much superior forces. A small rivulet ran between the two armies ; and when the van of the royal army had passed the brook, Sahsbury suddenly attacked them, and put them to the rout ; and obtaining a complete victory, he reached the general rendezvous of the Yorkists at Ludlow, To the same place, the earl of Warwick brought a choice body of veterans from Calais, on whom it was thought the fortune of the war would much depend ; but when the royal army approached, and a general action was every hour expected, sir Andrew Trollop, who commanded the veterans, deserted to the king in the night time, and the Yorkists were so dismayed at this instance of treachery, which made every man suspicious of his fellow, that they separated next day, without striking a stroke. The duke fled to Ireland ; the earl of Warwick, attended by many UENRY VI. ",41 of the other leaders, escaped to Calais, where his great popularity among all orders of men soon drew to him par- tisans ; and the friends of the house of York, in England, kept themselves every where in readiness to rise on the first summons. _„^ After meeting with some success at sea, Warvvick land- i ed in Kent, with the earl of Salisbury, and the earl of i Marche, eldest son of the duke of York ; and being met i by the primate, by lord Cobham, and other persons of dis^ t tinction, he marched, amidst the acclamations of the peo- ple, to London. A battle was fought at Northampton, and was soon decided against the royalists, of whom the duke of Buckingham, the earl of Shrewsbury, the lords Beaumont and Egremont, and sir William Lucie, with many other persons of quality, were killed in the action or pursuit. Henry himself was again taken prisoner ; and, as the innocence and simplicity of his manners had pro- cured him the tender regard of the people, he was treated with abundant respect. A parliament was summoned in the king's name at Westminster, where the duke of York soon after appeared from Ireland. This prince stated to the house of peers his own claim to the crown, and exhorted them to do justice to the lineal successor. The lords remained in some sus- pense, but at length declared in favour of the duke of York. They determined, however, that Heniy should possess the dignity during the remainder of his life ; that the adminis- tration of the government should in the mean while remain with Richard ; and that he should be acknowledged the true and lawful heir of the monarchy. But Margaret, whose high spirit spurned at the com- pact, was not remiss in defending the rights of her family. After the battle of Northampton, she had fled with her in- fant son to the north, where her affability, insinuatioiif, and address, among the northern barons, raised her an army twenty thousand strong, with a celerity which was neither expected by her friends, nor apprehended by her enemies. The duke of York, informed of her appearance in the north, hastened thither with a body of five thousand men ; but on his arrival at Wakefield, finding himself so much outnumbered by the enemy, he threw himself into Sandal castle ; and was advised by the earl of Salisbury and other prudent counsellors, to remain in that fortress, till his son 143 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. the earl of Marche, who was levying forces in the borders of Wales, could advance to his assistance. But the duke, who possessed personal bravery in an eminent degree, thought that he should be for ever disgraced, if, by taking shelter behind walls, he should for a moment resign the victory to a woman. He therefore descended into the plain, and offered battle to the enemy, which was instantly accepted. The great inequality of numbers was alone sufficient to decide the victory ; but the queen, by sending a detachment, who fell on the back of the duke's army, rendered her advantage still more certain and undisputed. The duke himself was killed in the action; and his head, by Margaret's orders, was fixed on the gates of York, with a paper crown, in derision of his pretended title. There fell near three thousand Yorkists in this battle : the duke himself was greatly and justly lamented by his own party. He perished in the fiftieth year of his age, and left three sons, Edward, George, and Richard, with three daugliters, Anne, Elizabeth, and Margaret. The queen, after this important victory, divided her ar- my. She sent the smaller division, under Jasper Tudor, earl of Pembroke, half brother to the king, against Ed- ward, the new duke of York. She herself marched with the larger division towards London, where the earl of Warwick had been left with the command of the Yorkists. Pembroke was defeated by Edward at Mortimer's Cross, in Herefordshire, with the loss of near four thousand men ; but Margaret compensated this defeat by a victoiy which she obtained over the earl of Warwick at St. Albans ; and the person of the king fell again into the hands of his own party. The queen, however, reaped no great advantage from this victory. Young Edward advanced upon her from the other side ; and collecting the remains of Wai-wick's army, he was soon in a condition of giving her battle with a superior force. Sensible of her danger, she found it necessary to retreat with her army to the north ; and Ed- ward entered the capital amidst the acclamations of the citizens. Instead of confining himself to the narrow limits to which his father had submitted, he determined to avail himself of his popularity, and to assume the name and dignity of king. His army was ordered to assemble in Si John's Fields; great numbers of people surrounde/ /-, 153 m his views, he no longer hesitated in removing the other obstructions which lay between him and the throne. The death of the earl of Rivers, and of the otl|pr prisoners de- tained in Pomfret, was first determined ; and he easily obtained the consent of the duke of Buckingham, as well as of lord Hastings, to this violent and sangainary mea- sure, which was promptly executed. The protector then assailed the fidelity of Buckingham, by specious arguments, and offers of great private advan- tages, and obtained from him a promise of supporting him in all his enterprises. Knowing the importance of gain- ing lord Hastings, he sounded him at a distance ; but finding him impregnable in his allegiance and fidelity to the children of Edward, he determined on his destruction. Having summoned a council in the tower, whither that nobleman, suspecting no design against him, repaired without hesitation, the protector asked them, what pun- ishment those deserved that had plotted against his life, who was so nearly related to the king, and was entrusted with the administration of government 1 Hastings replied, that they merited the punishment of traitors. " TJiese traitors," cried the protector, " are the sorcerers, my bro- ther's wife, and Jane Shore, his mistress, with others, their associates : see to what a condition they have redu- ced me, by their incantations and witchcraft;" upon which he laid bare his arm, all shrivelled and decayed. The counsellors, who knew that this infirmity had attended him from his birth, looked on each other with amazement ; and above all, lord Hastings, who, as he had since Ed-, ward's death engaged in an intrigue with Jane Shore, was naturally anxious concerning the issue of these extra- ordinary proceedings. J^ Certainly, my lord," said he, " if they be guilty of these crimes, they deserve the severest punishment." " And do you reply to me," exclaimed the protector, " with your ifs and your ands ? You are the chief abettor of that witch Shore ; you are yourself a trai- tor ; and I swear by St. Paul, that I will not dine before your head be brought me." He struck the table with his hand : armed men rushed in at the signal : the counsellors were thrown into the utmost consternation; and Hastings being seized, was hurried away, and instantly beheaded on a timber log, which lay in the court of the tower. After the murder of Hastings, the protector no longei 154 \ tr HISTORY OP ENGLAND. made a- secret of his intention to usurp the crown. A report was industriously circulated, that Edward, before espousing the lady Elizabeth Grey, had been privately married to the lady Eleanor Talbot, and that consequently the offspring of the last marriage were illegitimate. In an assembly of the citizens, convoked for the purpose, the duke of Buckingham harangued the people on the protec- tor's title to the crown ; when, after several useless efforts, some of the meanest apprentices raised a feeble cry of " God save king Richard !" This was deemed sufficient ; and the crown was formally tendered to Richard, who pre- tended to refuse it, but was at length prevailed on to ac- cept the offer. This ridiculous farce was soon after fol- lowed by a scene truly tragical : the murder of the two young princes, who were smothered by hired ruffians in the tower, and whose bodies were buried at the foot of the stairs, deep in the ground, under a heap of stones.* CHAP. IX. The reigiis of Richard III. and Henry VII. The first acts of Richard were to bestow rewards on those who had assisted him in usurping the crown ; but the persin who, from the greatness of his services, was best entitled to favours under the new government, was the duke of Buckingham ; and Richard seemed deter- mined to spare no pains or bounty in securing him to his interests. That nobleman was invested with the office of constable, and received a grant of the forfeited estate of Bohun, earl of Hereford. It was, however, impossible that friendship could long remain inviolate between two men of such corrupt minds as Richard and the duke of Buckingham. Certain it is, that the duke, soon after Richard's accession, began to form a conspiracy against the government. By the exhortations of Morton, bishop of Ely, a zealous Lancastrian, the duke cast his eye toward the young earl of Richmond, as the only person capable of opposing an * In the reign of Charles II. the bones of two persons were found in the place above mentioned, which exactly corresponded by their bize to the ages of Edward V. and his brother ; and being considered as the undoubted remains of these princes, they were deposited in Westminster Abbey, under a marble tomb. RICHARD III. ) ; 155 usurper, whose murder of the young princes had rendered him the object of general detestation. Henry, earl of Richmond, was at this time detained in a kind of honour- able custody by the duke of Brittany ; and his descent, which seemed to give him some pretensions to the crown, had been for some time a great object of jealousy. He was descended from John of Gaunt, and was nearly allied to Henry VI. As all the descendants of the house of York were now either women or minors, it was suggested by Morton, that the only means of overturning the present usurpation was to unite the opposite factions, by contracting a marriage between the earl of Richmond and the princess Elizabeth, eldest daughter of Edward IV. ; and the queen dowager, finding in this pre posal the probable means of revenge for the murder of her brother and her three sons, gave her approbation to the project. But this conspiracy could not escape the jealous and vigilant eye of Richard ; he imme- diately levied troops, and summoning Buckingham to ap- pear at court, that nobleman replied only by taking arms in Wales. At that very time, however, there happened to fall such heavy rains, so incessant and continued, as ex- ceeded any known in the memoiy of man ; and the Severn, with the other rivers in that neighbourhood, swelled to a height which rendered them impassable, and prevented Buckingham from marching into the heart of England to join his associates. The Welshmen, partly moved by su- perstition at this extraordinary event, partly distressed by famine in their camp, fell off from him ; and Buckino- ham, finding himself deserted by his followers, put on a disguise, and took shelter in the house of Bannister, an old servant of his family. But being detected in his re- treat, he was brought to the king at Salisbury, and was instantly executed. The king, fortified by this unsuccessful attempt to de- throne him, ventured at last to* summon a parlia- ment, in which his right to the crown was acknow- ^'aqI ledged ; and his only son Edward, then a youth of ^^^^ twelve years of age, was created prince of Wales. To gain the confidence of the Yorkists, he paid court to the queen dowager, who ventured to leave her sanctuary, and to put herself and her daughters into the hands of the ty- rant. But he soon carried farther his views for the estab 15C HISTORY OP ENGLAND. lishment of his throne. He had married Anne, the second daughter of the earl of Warwick, and widow of Edward, prince of Wales, whom Richard himself had murdered ; but this princess having borne him but one son, who died about this time, he considered her as an invincible obsta- cle to the settlement of his fortune, and he was believed to have carried her off by poison ; a crime which the usual tenor of his conduct made it reasonable to suspect. He now thought it in his power to remove the chief perils which threatened his government. The earl of Richmond, he knew, could never be formidable but from his projected marriage with the princess Elizabeth, the true heir of the crown ; and he therefore intended, by means of a papal dispensation, to espouse, himself, this princess, and thus to unite in his own family their contending titles. The queen dowager, eager to recover her lost authority, neither scrupled this alliance, nor felt any honor at marrying her daughter to the murderer of her three sons and of hei brother. She even joined so far her interests with those of the usurper, that she wrote to all her partisans, and among the rest, to her son the marquis of Dorset, desiring them to withdraw from the earl of Richmond ; an injury which the earl could never afterwards forgive. The court of Rome was applied to for a dispensation ; and Richard thought that he could easily defend himself during the* interval till it arrived, when he had the prospect of a full and secure settlement. But the crimes of Richard were so shocking to huma- nity, that every person of probity and honour was earnest to prevent the sceptre from being any longer polluted by his bloody and faithless hand. All the exiles flocked to the earl of Richmond, in Brittany, who, dreading treache- ry, made his escape to the court of France. The minis- ters of Charles VIII. gave him assistance and protection ; and he sailed from Harfleur, in Normandy, with a small army of about two thousand*men, and landed without op- position at Milford-haven, in Wales. But the danger to which Richard was chiefly exposed, proceeded not so much from the zeal of his open enemies, as from the infidelity of his pretended friends. Except the duke of Norfolk, scarcely any nobleman was attached to his cause ; but the persons of whom he entertained the greatest suspicion, were lord Stanley* and his brother, sir RICHARD lit. 157 William. When he employed lord Stanley to levy rorces, he still retained his eldest son, lord Strange, as a pledge for his fidelity ; and that nobleman was, on this account, obliged to employ great caution and reserve in his proceed- ings. He raised a powerful body of his friends and re- tainers in Cheshire and Lancashire, but without openly declaring himself; and though Henry had received secret assurances of his friendly intentions, the armies on both sides knew not what to infer from his equivocal behaviour. The two rivals at last approached each other at Bos- worth, near Leicester ; Henry, at the head of six thousand men, Richard with an army of above double that number. Stanley, who commanded above seven thousand men, took care to post himself at Atherstone, not far from the hostile camps ; and he made such a disposition as enabled him on occasion to join either party. Soon after the battle began, lord Stanley, whose conduct in this whole affair discovers great precaution and abilities, appeared in the field, and de- clared for the earl of Richmond. The intrepid tyrant, sensible of his desperate situation, cast his eye around the field, and descrying his rival at no great distance, he drove against him with fury, in hopes that either Henry's death or his own would decide the victory between them. He killed with his own hands sir William Bradon, standard- bearer to the earl ; he dismounted sir John Cheyney ; he was now within reach of Richmond^, himself, who declined not the combat ; when sir William Stanley, break- ing in with his troops, surrounded Richard, who t\^^ fighting bravely, to the last moment, was over- whelmed by numbers, and perished by a fate too mild and honourable for his multiplied and detestable enormities. His men every where sought for safety by flight. There fell in this battle about four thousand of the van- quished ; and among these the duke of Norfolk, lord Fer- rars of Chartley, and several other persons of high rank. The loss was inconsiderable on the side of the victors. The body of Richard was found in the field covered with dead enemies, and all besmeared with blood ; it was thrown carelessly across a horse, carried to Leicester amidst the shouts of the insulting spectators, and interred in the Grey-Friars church of that place. All historians agree, that Richard was ready to commit the moet horrid crimes which appeared necessary for his purposes ; and it is cer- 14 158 1 (y^ t ItlSTORY OF ENGLAND. tain, that all his courage and capacity j qualities in which he really seems not to have been deficient, would never have made compensation to the people for the danger of the precedent, and for the contagious example of vice and murder, exalted upon the throne. This prince was of a small stature, hump^-backed, and had a harsh, disagreeable countenance ; so that his body was in every particuhar no less deformed than his mind. The victory at Bosworth was entirely decisive ; and the earl of Richmond was immediately saluted with acclama- tions of " Long live Henry the Seventh !" He accepted the title without hesitation : and asserting his claim to the throne as heir to the house of Lancaster, he determined never to allow it to be discussed. Though bound by honour as well as by interest to complete his alliance with the princess Elizabeth, yet he resolved to postpone the nuptials till after the ceremony of his coronation, lest a preceding marriage with the princess should imply a participation of sovereignty in her, and raise doubts of his own title by the house of Lancaster. In order to heighten the splendour of the coronation, he bestowed tlie rank of knight-banneret on twelve persons ; and he con- ferred peerage on three. Jasper, earl of Pembroke, his uncle, was created duke of Bedford ; Thomas, lord Stanley, his father-in-law, earl of Derby ; and Edward Courtney, earl of Devonshire. At the coronation, likewise, there appeared a new institution, which the king had established for security as well as pomp, a band of fifty archers, who were termed yeomen of the guard. But lest the people should take umbrage at this unusual symptom of jealous;^ in the prince, as if it implied a personal diffidence of his subjects, he declared the institution to be perpetual. The parliament assembled at Westminster, and proceeded to settle the entail of the crown. No mention was made of the princess Elizabeth : it v^as voted, " that the inheritance of the crown should rest, r^lbin, and abide in the king;'* and " tliat the succession should be secured to the heirs of his body ;" but Henry pretended not, in case of their failure, to exclude the house of York, or give the prefe- rence to that of Lancaster. The parliament had petitioned to the king to espouse the princess Elizabeth, under the pretence of their desire to have heirs of his body ; and he now thought in earnest HENRY VII. 159 of satisfying the minds of his people in that particular. His marriage was celebrated at London, and that with greater appearance of universal joy than either his first entry or his coronation. Henry remarked with much dis- pleasure this general favour borne to the house of York. The suspicions which arose from it not only disturbed his tranquility during his whole reign, but bred disgust to- wards his consort herself, and poisoned all his domestic enjoyments. Though virtuous, amiable, and obsequious to the last degree, she never met with a proper return of affection, or even of complaisance, from her husband ; and the malignant ideas of faction still in his sullen mind, prevailed over all the sentiments of conjugal endearment. The king now resolved to make a progress into the north, where the friends of the house of York, and even the partisans of Richard, were numerous, in hopes of curing by his presence and conversation the prejudices of the malcontents. When he arrived at Nottingham, he heard that viscount Lovel, with sir Humphrey Stafford, and Thomas, his brother, had secretly withdrawn them- selves from their sanctuary at Colchester ; but this news appeared not to him of such importance as to stop his jour- ney ; and he proceeded forward to York. He there heard that the Staffords had levied an army, and were marching to besiege the city of Worcester ; and that Lovel, at the head of three or four thousand men, was approaching tc attack him in York. Henry was not dismayed with this intelligence. His active courage, full of resources, imme- diately prompted him to find the proper remedy. Though surrounded with enemies in these disafi*ected counties, he assembled a small body of troops in whom he could confide ; and having joined to them all his own attendants, he put them under the command of the duke of Bedford, who published a general promise of pardon to the rebels. This had a greater effect on their J^ader than on his followers. Lovel, who had undertaken an enterprise that exceeded his courage and capacity, was so terrified with the fear of desertion among his troops, that he suddenly withdrew himself, and after lurking some time in Lancashire, he made his escape into Flanders, where he was protected by the duchess of Burgundy. His army submitted to the king's clemency; and the other rebels, hearing of this success, raised the siege of Worcester, and dispersed them- 160 - ■•% HISTORY OP ENGLAND. selves. The StafFords took sanctuary in the church of Colnham, near Abingdon ; but being taken thence, the elder was executed at Tyburn, and the younger obtained a pardon. Henry's joy for this success was followed, some time after, by the birth of a prince, to whom he gave the name of Arthur, in memory of the famous British king of that name, from whom it was pretended the family of Tudor derived its descent. But his government had become in general unpopular; and the source of public discontent arose chiefly from his prejudices against the house of York. There lived in Oxford one Richard Simon, a priest of a subtle and enterprising genius. This man had enter- tained the design of disturbing Henry's govern- 1 '.qA ment, by raising a pretender to his crown ; and for that purpose he cast his eyes on Lambert Simnel, a youth of fifteen years of age, the son of a baker, who was endowed with understanding above his years, and ad- dress above his condition. Him, Simon instructed to per- sonate the earl of Warwick, son of the duke of Clarence, who had been confined in the tower since the commence- ment of this reign ; and the queen dowager, finding her- self fallen into absolute insignificance, and her daughter treated vi^ith severity, was suspected of countenancing the imposture. In Ireland the scene of it first was opened. No sooner did Simnel present himself to Kildare, the deputy, and claim his protection as the unfortunate Warwick, than that credulous nobleman acknowledged him ; the people of Dublin tendered their allegiance to him, as to the true Plantagenet ; and the whole island followed the example of the capital. Henry, perplexed by the news of this revolt, first seized the queen dowager, whom he confined in the nunnery of Bermondsey, where she end|d her life in poverty and soli- tude. He next exposed Warwick through the streets of London ; but though this measure had its effect in Eng- land, the people of Ireland retorted on the king the re- proach of having shown a counterfeit personage. Henry had soon reason to apprehend that the design against him was not laid on slight foundations. John, earl of Lincoln, son of the duke of Suffolk, and of Eliza- beth, eldest sister of Edward IV., was engaged to take part in the conspiracy ; and having estabhshed a secret correspondence in Lancashire, he retired to Flanders, where Lovei had arrived a httle before him ; and he hved in the court of his aunt, the duchess of Burgundy. That princess, the widow of Charles the Bold, after consulting with Lincoln and Lovel, hired a body of two thousand veteran Germans, under the command of Martin Swart, a brave and experienced officer; and sent them over, together with these two noblemen, to join Simnel in Ireland. The countenance given by persons of such high rank, and the accession of this military force, much raised the courage of the Irish, and made them entertain the re- solution of invading England, as well from the hopes of plunder as of revenge. Being informed that Simnel was landed at Foudrey, in Lancashire, Henry drew together his forces, and advanced towards the enemy as far as Coventry. The rebels had entertained hopes that the disaffected counties in the north would rise in their favour ; but the people in general, averse to join Irish and German invaders, convinced of Lambert's imposture, and kept in awe by the king's repu- tation for success and conduct, either remained in tran- quility, or gave assistance to the royal army. The hostile armies met at Stoke, in the county of Nottingham, and fought a battle, which was bloody and obstinately dis- puted. The king's victory was purchased with loss, but was entirely decisive. Lincoln, Broughton, and Swart, perished in the field of battle, with four thousand of their followers ; and as Lovel was never more , \r.^ heard of, he was believed to have undergone the same fate.* Simnel, with his tutor Simon, was taken * Doctor Mavor, in his History of England, gives the following' probable account of the death of this distinguished nobleman, on the authority of the late Mr. Thomas Warton, who received his infor- mation, as well as could be recollected, from Dr. Dennison, a wit- ness of what is related : — " The walls of this nobleman's once magni- ficent seat at Minster Lovel, Oxfordshire, of which some ruins still remain, being pulled down for the sake of the materials, early in the last century, a secret chamber was discovered with a trap-door, and in it a skeleton of a person in complete armour was found. From hence "t was supposed, and on probable grounds, that this was the body of lord Lovel, who, after escaping from the battle of Stoke, took refuge in this place, and from some cause, not now to be ac- counted for, was left to perish in his concealment." 14* ^X^wViH-^t-'^'^- /ifi.\yWM 162 \ . . HISTORY OF ENGLAND. 5 prisoner. Simon, being a priest, was only committe* U close custody ; and Simnel, being too contemptible t b an object either of apprehension or resentment, was i^ai doned, and made a scuUion in tjie king's kitchen ; whenc>. he was afterwards advanced to the rank of a falconer. The duchess of Burgundy, full of resentment for the oppression of her family, and riither irritated than discou- raged by the ill success of her past enterprise, propagatea a report that her nephew, Richard Plantagenet, duke of York, had escaped from the tower, and was still alive ; and finding this rumour greedily received by the people, she sought for some young man proper to personate thai unfortunate prince. Warbeck, a renegado Jew of Tournay, who had visited London in the reign of Edward IV., had there a son born to him. Having had opportunities of being known to the king, and obtaining his favour, he prevailed with that prince, Avhose manners were very affable, to stand god- father to his son, to whom he gave the name of Peter, corrupted, after the Flemish manner, into Peterkin, or Perkin. It was by some believed that Edward, among his amorous adventures, had a secret commerce with War- beck's wife ; and people thence accounted for that resem- blance which was aftenvards remarked between young Perkin and that monarch. Some years after the birth of this child, Warbeck returned to Tournay, whence Perkin his son, by different accidents, was carried from place to place, and his birth and fortunes became thereby unknown, and difficult to be traced. The variety of his adventures had happily favoured the natural versatility and sagacity of his genius ; and he seemed to be a youth perfectly fitted to act any part, or assume any character. In this light he had been represented to the duchess of Burgundy, who found him to exceed her most sanguine expectations ; so comely did he appear in his person, so graceful in his air, so courtly in his address, so full of docility and good sense in his behaviour and conversation. The lessons neces- sary to be taught him, in order to his personating the duke of York, were soon learned by a youth of such quick ap- prehension ; and Margaret, in order the better to conceal him, sent him, under the care of lady Brampton, into Por- tuo-al, where he remained a year, unknown to all the world. The war, which was then ready to break out between HENRY vn. \ ^ ,v 163 France and England, seemed to aiford a proper opportu- nity for this impostor to try his success; and I) eland, which still retained its attachment to the house of York, was chosen as the proper place for his first appearance. He landed at Cork ; and immediately assuming the name of Richard Plantagenet, drew to him partisans among that credulous people. The news soon reached France ; and Charles, prompted by the secret solicitations of the duchess of Burgundy, sent Perkin an invitation to repair to him at Paris. He received him with all the marks of regard due to the duke of York. The French courtiers readily em- braced a fiction which their sovereign thought it his inte- rest to adopt ; and Perkin, both by his deportment and personal qualities, supported the prepossession which was spread abroad of his royal pedigree. From France, tlie admiration and credulity diffused themselves into England : sir George Nevil, sir John Taylor, and above a hundred f>-entlemen more, came to Paris, in order to oft'er their services to the supposed duke of York, and to share his fortunes ; and the impostor had novr the appearance of a court attending him, and began to entertain hopes of final success. When peace was concluded between France and Eng- land, Charles consented to dismiss Perkin, who retired to the duchess of Burgimdy. That princess put on the ap- pearance of distrust ; and it was not till after a long and severe scrutiny, that she pretended to burst out into joy and admiration, and embraced Perkin as the true image of Edward, and the sole heir of the Plantagenets. Not the populace alone of England gave credit to | *|qo Perkin's pretensions ; men of the highest birth and ^ quality turned their eyes towards the new claimant; and sir Robert Clifford and William Barley made him a tender of their services. The king, informed of these particulars, proceeded deli- berately, though steadily, in counter- working the projects of his enemies. His first object was to ascertain the death of the real duke of York, and to confirm the opinion that had always prevailed with regard to that catastrophe ; but as only two of the persons employed by Richard, in the murder of his nephews, were now alive, and as the bodies were supposed to have been removed by Richard's orders, from the place where they were first interred, and could 1G4 ■ HISTORY OF ENGLAND. not now be found, it was not in Henry's power to establish the fact beyond all doubt and controversy. He was, how- ever, more successful in detecting who this wonderful per- son was, who thus advanced pretensions to his crown. He engaged CliiFord, by the hope of rewards and pardon, to betray the secrets entrusted to him ; and such was the diligence of his spies, that in the issue the whole plan of the conspiracy was clearly laid before him, with the pedi- gree, adventures, life, and conversation, of the pretended duke of York ; and this latter part of the story was imme diately published for the satisfaction of the nation. Several of the conspirators were immediately arrested. Some of inferior rank were rapidly arraigned, convicted, and condemned for high treason ; but more solemnity was deemed necessary in the trial of sir William Stanley, one of the most opulent subjects in the kingdom. After six weeks' delay, which was interposed to show that the king was restrained by doubts and scruples, the prisoner was brought to his trial, condemned, and presently after be- headed. Historians, however, are not agreed as to the precise nature of the crime for which he suffered. The fate of Stanley struck the adherents of Perkin with the greatest dismay ; and as the impostor found that his pretensions Avere becoming obsolete, he resolved to attempt something which might revive the hopes and expectations of his partisans. Having collected a band of outlaws, pirates, robbers, and necessitous persons of all nations, to the number of six hundred men, he put to sea, with a reso- lution of making a descent in England. Information be- ing brought him that the king had made a progress to the north, he cast anchor on the coast of Kent, and sent some of his retainers ashore, who invited the country to join him. The gentlemen of Kent assembled some troops to oppose him ; but they purposed to do more essential ser- vice than by repelling the invasion ; they carried the sem- blance of friendship to Perkin, and invited him to come himself ashore, in order to take the command over them. But the wary youth, obsei-ving that they had more order and regularity in their movements than could be supposed in new levied forces who had taken arms against the es- tablished authority, refused to entrust himself into their hands; and the Kentish troops, despairing of success in their strata _^em, fell upon such of his retainers as were HENRY VII. 165 already landed ; and killing some, they took a hundred and fit'ty prisoners, who were tried and condemned, and executed by orders from the king. This year a parliament was summoned in England, and another in Ireland ; and some remarkable laws were passed in both countries. The English par- , \^^ iiament passed an act, empowering the king to levy, by course of law, all the sums which any person had agreed to pay by way of benevolence ; a statute by which that arbitrary method of taxation was indirectly authorized and justified. The king's authority appeared equally prevalent and uncontrolled in Ireland. Sir Edward Poynings, who had been sent over to that country, with an intention of quel- ling the partisans of the house of York, and of reducing the natives to subjection, summoned a parliament at Dub- lin, and obtained the passing of that memorable statute, which still bears his name, and which, during three cen- turies, estabhshed the paramount authority of the English government in Ireland. By this statute, all the former laws of England were made to be in force in Ireland ; and no bill could be introduced into the Irish parliament, un- less it had previously received the sanction of the council of England.* After being repulsed from the coast of Kent, Perkin retired to Ireland ; but tired of the wandering life he was compelled to lead in that country, he passed over into Scotland, where he was favourably received by James IV., who gave him in marriage the lady Catharine Gordon, daughter of the earl of Huntley. The jealousy which subsisted between England and Scotland, induced James to espouse the cause of the impostor, and to make an in- road into England ; but Perkin's pretensions were now become stale, even in the eyes of the populace ; and James perceiving that while Perkin remained in Scotland, he should never enjoy a sohd peace with Henry, privately desired him to depart. After quitting Scotland, Perkin concealed himself in the wilds and fastnesses of Ireland. Impatient, however, of a retreat which was both disagreeable and dangerous, * By the act of union between Great Britain and Ireland, these, regulations, which had long been the object of jealousy and con- tention, were happily rendered obsolete. 166 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. he held consultations with his followers, Heme, Skelton, and Astlej, three broken tradesmen ; and by their advice, he resolved to try the aftections of the Cornish, whose mutinous disposition had been lately manifested, in resist- ing the levy of a tax imposed for the purpose of repelling the inroad of the Scots. No sooner did he appear at Bodmin, in Cornwall, than the populace, to the numbei of three thousand, flocked to his standard; and Perkin, elated with this appearance of success, took on him, foi the first time, the appellation of Richard the Fourth, king of England. Not to suffer the expectations of his fol- lowers to languish, he presented himself before Exeter ; and finding that the inhabitants shut their gates against him, he laid siege to the place ; but being unprovided with artillery, ammunition, and every thing requisite for the attempt, he made no progress in his undertaking. When Heniy was informed that Perkin had landed in England, he expressed great joy at his being so near, and prepared himself with alacrity to attack him. The lords Daubeny and Broke, with sir Rice ap Thomas, hastened forward with a small body of troops to the relief of Exe- ter, and the king himself prepared to follow with a con- siderable army. Perkin, informed of these great preparations, immedi- ately raised the siege of Exeter, and retired to Taunton. Though his followers seemed still resolute to maintain his cause, he himself despaired of success, and secretly with- drew to the sanctuary of Beaulieu in the new forests. The Cornish rebels submitted to the king's mercy. Ex- cept a few persons of desperate fortunes who were exe- cuted, and some others who were severely fined, all the rest were dismissed with impunity. Lady Catharine Gor- don, wife to Perkin, fell into the hands of the victor, and was treated with a generosity which does him honour. He soothed her mind with many marks of regard, placed her in a reputable station about the queen, and assigned her a pension, which she enjoyed even under his successor. Perkin being persuaded, under promise of pardon, to deliver himself into the king's hands, was con- ^'aqq ducted, in a species of mock triumph, to London. His confession of his life and adventures was pub- lished ; but though his life was granted him, he was still detained in custody. Impatient of confinement, he broke IIENRV VII* / ^ ^ 107 from his keepers, aud fled to the sanctuary o't Shyne. He was then imprisoned in the tower, where his habits of restless intrigue and enterprise followed him. He insi- nuated himself into the intimacy of four servants of sir John Digby, lieutenant of the tower ; and, by their means, opened a correspondence with the earl of Warwick, who was confined in the same prison. This unfortunate prince, who had, from his earliest youth, been shut up from the commerce of men, and who was ignorant even of the most common affairs of life, had fallen into a fatuity, which made him susceptible of any impression. The continued dread also of the more violent effects of Henry's tyranny, joined to the natural love of liberty, engaged him to embrace a project for his escape, by the murder of the lieutenant ; and Perkin offered to conduct the whole en- terprise. The conspiracy escaped not the king's vigilance. Perkin, by this new attempt, had rendered himself totally unworthy of mercy; and he was accordingly arraigned, condemned, and soon after hanged at Tyburn, acknow- ledging his imposture to the last. It happened about that veiy time that one Wilford, a cordwainer's son, encouraged by the surprising credit given to other impostures, had undertaken to personate the earl of Warwick ; and a priest had even ventured from the pulpit to recommend his cause to the people. This incident served Henry as a pretence for his severity to- wards that prince. He was brought to trial, and accused of forming designs to disturb the government, and raise an insurrection among the people. Warwick confessed the indictment, was condemned, and the sentence was execu- ted upon him. This act of tyranny, the capital blemish of Henry's reign, occasioned great discontent ; and though he endeavoured to alleviate the odium of his guilt, by sharing it with his ally, Ferdinand of Arragon, who, he said, had scrupled to give his daughter Catherine in mar- riage to Arthur, while any male descendant of the house of York remained ; — this only increased the indignation of the people, at seeing a young prince sacrificed to the jea- lous politics of two subtle tyrants. There was a remarkable similarity of character between these two monarchs : both were full of craft, intrigue, and design ; and though a resemblance of this nature be a slender foundation for confidence and amity, such was the J()3 HISTORY OF EKGL\SD. situation of Hemy and Ferdinand, that no jealou&y over arose between them. The king completed a marriage, which had been projected and negotiated during the course of seven years, between Arthur prince of Wales, and the infanta Catherine, fourth daughter of Ferdinand and £sa- bclla ; but this marriage proved in the issue unprosperous. The young prince a few months after sickened and died^ much regretted by the nation. Henry, desirous to con- tinue his alUance with Spain, 5nd also unwilling to restore Catherine's dowry, which was two hundred thousand du- cats, obliged liis second son Heniy, whom he created prince of Wales, to be contracted to the infanta, by virtue of a dispensation from the pope. This marriage was, in the event, attended with the most important consequences. hi the same year, another marriage was celebrated, which was also in the next age productive of great events ; the marriage of Margaret, the king's eldest daughter, with James, king of Scotland. Amidst these prosperous inci- dents the queen died in child-bed ; and the infant did not long survive her. This princess was deservedly a fa- vourite of the nation ; and the general affection for her was augmented by the harsh treatment which it was thought she experienced from her consort. Uncontrolled by apprehension or opposition of any kind, Henry now gave full scope to his natural, propen- sity; and his avarice, which had ever been the ,l^o ruling passion of his mind, broke through all re- straints. He had found tv/o ministers, Empsom and Dud- ley, perfectly qualified to second his rapacious and tyran- nical inclinations. These instruments of oppression were both lawyers. By their knowledge in law these men were qualified to pervert the forms of justice to the oppression of the innocent ; and the formidable authority of the king supported them in all their iniquities. In vain did the people look for protection from the parliament ; that as- sembly was so overawed, that during the greatest rage of Henry's oppression, the commons chose Dudley their speaker, and granted him the subsidies which he demand- ed. By the arts of accumulation, this monarch so filled his coff*ers, that he is said to have po-ssessed at one time the sum of one million eight hundred thousand pounds ; a treasure almost incredible, if we consider the scarcity of money in those times. if^J(<^}vSk^ 3 former deferred the decision by the most artful delays. At length, the HENRY VIII. 183 business seemed to be drawing near to a period : and the king was every day in expectation of a sentence in his favour, when the menaces and promises of Charles proved ouccessful ; and Clement suspended the commission of the legates, and adjourned the cause to his own personal judgment at Rome. Wolsey had long foreseen the failure of this measure as the sure forerunner of his ruin. The dukes of Norfolk and Suffolk were sent to require from him the great seal, which was delivered by the king to sir Thomas More. All his furniture and plate were seized ; and the cardinal was ordered to retire to Esher, a country seat which he pos- sessed near Hampton court. Dr. Thomas Cranmer, fellow of Jesus College in Cam- bridge, a man remarkable for his learning, and still more for the candour and disinterestedness of his temper, falling one evening by accident into company with Gardiner, now secretary of state, and Fox, the king's almoner, the business of the divorce became the subject of conversation. Cranmer observed, that the readiest way, either to quiet Henry's conscience, or extort the pope's consent, would be to consult all the universities of Europe with regard to this controverted point. When the king was informed of the proposal, he was delighted with it, and immediately, in prosecution of the scheme proposed, employed his agents to collect the judgments of all the unive sities in Europe. The universities of France, of Venice, Ferrara, Padua, and Bologna, with those of Oxford and Cambridge, 1 k*^0 S^^^ their opinion in the king's favour ; and the convocations both of Canterbury and York pro- nounced Henry's marriage invalid. But Clement, who was still under the influence of the emperor, continued to summon th** king to appear, either by himself or proxy, before his tviounal at Rome. After Wolsey had remained some time at Esher, he was allowed to remove to Richmond ; but the courtiers, dread- ing still his vicinity to the king, procured an order for him to remove to his see of York. The cardinal, therefore, took up his residence at Cawood in Yorkshire ;• but he was not allowed to remain long unmolested in this retreat. The earl of Northumberland received orders, without re- gard to Wo\sey's ecclesiastical character, to arrest him for high treason, and to conduct him to London, in order to 184 , HISTORY OP ENGLAND. take his trial. The cardinal, partly from the fatigues of hi-s journey, partly from the agitation of his anxious mind, was seized with a disorder which turned into a dysentery, and he was able, with some difficulty, to reach Leicester- abbey, where he immediately took to his bed, whence he never rose more. A little before he. expired, among other expressions, he used the following words to sir William Kingston, constable of the tower, who had him in custo- dy : " Had I but sei-ved God as diligently as I have served my king, he would not have given me over in my gray hairs." Thus died this famous cardinal, whose character seems to have contained as singular a variety as the for- tune to which he was exposed. A new session of parliament was held, together with a convocation ; and from the latter a confession was An \ Vol extorted, that " the king was the protector, and the supreme head of the church and clergy of Eng' land." In the next session, an act was passed against le- vying the annates or first-fmits ; and it was also voted, that any censures which should be passed by the court of Rome, on account of that law, should be entirely disregarded. Having proceeded too far to recede, Henry privately celebrated his marriage with Anne Boleyn, whom |Voo he had previously created marchioness of Pem- broke. Anne became pregnant soon after her mar- riage ; and- this event gave great satisfaction to the king. An act was made against all appeals to Rome in causes of matrimony and divorces ; and Henry, finding the new queen's pregnancy to advance, publicly owned his mar- riage, and informed Catherine that she was hereafter to be treated only as princess-dowager of Wales. The parliament enacted laws which were totally subver- sive of the papal authority in England. But the most im- portant law passed this session, was that which regulated the succession to the crown. The marriage of the king with Catherine was declared unlawful, void, and of no effect ; and the marriage with queen Anne was established and confirmed. The crown was appointed to descend to the issue of this marriage, and failing them, to the king's heirs forever. An oath likewise was enjoined to be taken in favour of this order of succession, under the penalty of imprisonment during the king's pleasure, and forfeiture •f goods and chattels, Fisher, bishop of Rochester, and tlENHY Vlli. k.85 sir Tliomas More, were the only persons of note who scrupled the oath of succession : and the king ordered both to be indicted upon the statute, and committed pri- soners to the tower. The parliament being again assembled, conferred on the king the title of the only supreme head on earth of the church of England : and in this memorable act , Vo J they acknowledged his inherent power " to visit, and repress, redress, reform, order, correct, restrain, or amend, all errors, heresies, abuses, offences, contempts, and enormities, which fell under any spiritual authority or jurisdiction." They also declared it treason to attempt, imagine, or speak evil against the king, queen, or his heirs, or to endeavour depriving them of their dignities or titles. They gave him a right to all the annates and tithes of benefices, which had formerly been paid to the court of Rome. They attainted More and Fisher for mis- prision of treason ; and they completed the union of Eng- gland and Wales, by giving to that principality all the benefits of the English l^\rs. Though Henry had rejected the authority of the see of Rome, yet the idea of heresy still appeared detestable as well as formidable to that prince ; and for more reasons than one, he was indisposed to encourage the opinions of the reformers. Separate as he stood from the catholic church, and from the Roman pontiff, the head of it, he still valued himself on maintaining the catholic doctrine, and on guarding by fire and sword the imagiiied purity of his speculative principles. Henry's ministers and courtiers were of as motley a character as his conduct ; and seemed to waver, during this whole reign, between the ancient and the new religion. The queen, engaged by interest as well as inclination, fa- voured the cause of the reformers. Cromwell, who was created secretary of state, and who was daily advancing in the king's confidence, had embraced the same views ; and as he was a man of prudence and abilities, he was able, very effectually, though in a covert manner, to promote the late innovations. Cranmer, archbishop of Canterbury, had secretly adopted the protestant tenets : and he had gained Henry's friendship by his candour and sincerity ; virtues which he possessed in as eminent a degree as those times, equally distracted with faction and oppressed by 16* 186 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. tyranny, could easily permit. On the other hand, the duke of Norfolk adhered to the ancient faith ; and by his high rank, as well as by his talents both for peace and war, he had great authority in the king's council : Gardi-- ner, lately created bishop of Winchester, had enlisted himself in the same party; and the suppleness of his character, and dexterity of his conduct, had rendered him one of its principal supporters. In the mean time, the king, who held the balance be* tween the factions, was enabled, by the courtship paid him both by protestants and catholics, to assume an unbound- ed authority. The ambiguity of his conduct, though it kept the courtiers in awe, served in the main to encourage the protestant doctrine among his subjects. The books composed by the Lutherans were secretly imported into England, and made converts every where ; but a transla- tion of the Scriptures by Tindal, who, dreading the exer- tion of the king's authority, had fled to Antwerp, was justly deemed one of the most fatal blows to the established faith. Though Heniy neglected iiot to punish those who ad- hered to the protestant doctrine, which he deemed heresy, yet he knew that his most formidable enemies were the monks, who, having their immediate dependence on tho Roman pontiff, apprehended their own ruin to be the cer- tain consequence of abolishing his authority in England. Some of these were detected in a conspiracy ; and thr detection instigated the king to take vengeance on them. He suppressed three monasteries ; and finding that little clamour was excited by this act of power, he was more encouraged to lay his rapacious hands on the remainder. Meanwhile, he exercised punishments on individuals who were obnoxious to him. The parliament had made it treason to endeavour to deprive the king of his dignity or titles ; they had lately added to his other titles that of supreme head of the church ; it was inferred that to deny his supremacy was treason ; and many priors and ecclesi- astics lost their lives for this new species of guilt. Impel- led by his violent temper, and desirous of striking a terroi into the whole nation, Henry proceeded, by making ex- amples of Fisher and More, to consummate his tyranny. When the execution of Fisher and More was reported at Rome, Paul III., who had succeeded Clement VII. m the papal throne, excommunicated the king and his adhe HENRY Vlil* 187 rents, depl'ived him of his crown, and gave his kingdom to any invader ; but he delayed the pubhcation of this sentence till the emperor, who was at that iro.^ time had pressed by the Turks and the protestant princes in Germany, should be in a condition to carry it into execution. However, an incident happened, which seemed to open the way for a reconciliation between Hen- ry and Charles. Queen Catherine died at Kimbolton iif" the county of Huntingdon, of a lingering illness, in the fiftieth year of her age. She wrote a very tender letter to the king, a little before she expired, in which she gave him the appellation of her most dear lord, king, and husband ; and she concluded with these words : '* I make this vow, that mine eyes desire you above all things." The king wdLS touched, even to the shedding of tears, by this last tender proof of Catherine's affection ; but queen Anne is said to have expressed her joy from the death of a rival beyond what decency or humanity could permit* The emperor thought that, as the demise of his aunt had removed all foundation of a personal animosity between him and Henry, it might not be impossible to detach him from the alliance of France ; but Henry was rendered in- different to the advances made by the emperor, both by his experience of the duplicity and insincerity of that monarch, and the ill success that he met with in his inva- sion of Provence. Henry, conscious of the advantages of his situation, determined to suppress the monasteries, and to put him- self in possession of their ample revenues, and for that purpose he delegated his supremacy to Cromwell, who was then secretary of state, and who employed commis- sioners to inquire into the conduct and deportment of the friars. If we may credit the reports of the commissioners, monstrous disorders were found in many of the religious houses. Henry had recourse to his usual instrument of power, the parliament ; and in order to prepare men for the innovations projected, the report of the visiters was published, and a general horror was endeavoured to be excited in the nation against institutions, which had long been the objects of the most profound veneration. An act was, therefore, passed, by which three hundred and seven- ty-six monasteries were suppressed, and their revenues, amounting to thirty-two thousand pounds a year, were 188 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. granted to the king, together with their goods, chattels, and plate, computed at a hundred thousand pounds more. It does not appear that any opposition was made to this important law : so absolute was Henry's authority ! But while the supporters of the new religion were exult- ing in their prosperity, they met with a mortification in the fate of their patroness Anne Boleyn, who lost her life by the rage of her furious husband. She had l>een delivered of a dead son ; and Henry's extreme fondness for male issue was thereby disappointed. The king's love was transferred to Jane, daughter of sir John Seymour ; and he was determined to sacrifice every thing to the gratification of his new appetite. In a tilting at Greenwich, the queen happened to drop her handkerchief, an accident probably casual, but interpreted by the king as an instance of gal- lantry to some of her paramours. He immediately arrested several persons, in the number of whom was lord Roche- ford, the queen's brother ; and next day he ordered the queen to be carried to the tower. The queen and her brother were tried by a jury of peers ; and the chief evi- dence adduced against them was, that Rocheford had been seen to lean on her bed, before some company. Unas- sisted by counsel, the queen defended herself with great judgment and presence of mind ; and the spectators pro- nounced her entirely innocent. Judgment, however, was given against both her and Rocheford ; and when the dreadful sentence was pronounced, lifting up her hands to heaven, she exclaimed, *' O Father, O Creator, thou who art the way, the truth, and the life, thou knowest that 1 have not deserved this fate." After being beheaded, her body was thrown into a common chest of elm-tree, made to hold arrows, and was buried in the tower. The inno- cence of Anne Boleyn cannot be reasonably called in ques- tion; and the king made the most efl^ectual apology for her, by marrying Jane Seymour the day after the execution. The parliament had the meanness to declare the issue of both his former marriages illegitimate ; and the crown was settled on the king's issue by Jane Seymour, or any subsequent wife ; and in case he should die without issue, he was empowered by his will to dispose of the crown. A convocation which sat at the same time with the par- liament, dete'-mined the standard of faith to consist in the Scriptures, and the three creeds, the Apostolic, Nicene; HENRY VIII. / 189 and Athanasian ; auricular confession, and penance, m ere admitted ; but no mention was made of marriage, extreme unction, confirmation, or holy orders, as sacraments ; and in this omission the influence of the protestants appeared. The real presence, however, was asserted, conformably to the ancient doctrine ; while the terms of acceptance were established to be the merits of Chrisi, and the mercy and good pleasure of God, suitable to the new principles. These articles of belief were formed by the convocation, corrected by the king, and subscribed by every member of that society ; whilst not one, except Henry, adopted these doctrines and opinions. The expelled monks, wandering about the country, excited both the pity and compassion of men ; and as the ancient religion took hold of the popu- lace by powerful motives, suited to vulgar capacity, it was able, now that it was brought into apparent hazard, to raise the strongest zeal in its favour. The first rising was in Lincolnshire, and amounted to about twenty thousand men ; but the duke of Suffolk appearing at the head of some forces, with secret assurances of pardon, the popu- lace was dispersed, and a few of their leaders suffered. The northern rebels were more numerous and more for- midable than those of Lincolnshire. One Aske, a gentle- man, had taken the command of them, and possessed the art of governing the populace. Their enterprise they called the pilgrimage of grace ; they took an oath that their only motive proceeded from their love to God, their care of the king's person and issue, their desire of purifying the nobility, of restoring the church, and , Vo^ of suppressing heresy. The duke of Norfolk was appointed general of the king's forces against the rebels. Aske, with many other chiefs, was put to death ; and an amnesty was granted to the people. Not long after this prosperous issue, Henry's joy was crowned by the birth of a son, who was baptized by the name of Edward ; yet his happiness was not without alloy, for in two days after the queen died. The prince, not six days old, was created prince of Wales, duke of Cornwall, and earl of Chester ; sir Edward Seymour, the queen's brother, was raised to the dignity of earl of Hertford ; sir William Fitzwilliams, high admiral, was created earl of Southampton ; sir William Paulet, lord St. John ; sir John Russel, lord Russel. 190 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Henry's rapacity, the consequence of his profusion, pro- duced the most entire destruction of the monasteries ; a new vi&itation of them was appointed ; and the abbots and monks were induced, in hopes of better treatment, to make a voluntary resignation of their houses. The whole reve- nue of these establishments amounted to one hundred and sixty-one thousand one hundred pounds. Great murmurs were every where excited, on account of these violent measures ; but Henry took an effectual method of inte- resting the nobility and gentry in the success of his mea- sures ; he either made a gift of the revenues of convents to his favourites and courtiers, or sold them at low prices, or exchanged them for other lands on very disadvanta- geous terms. The court of Rome saw this sacrilegious plunder with extreme indignation ; and Henry was fre- quently reproached with his resemblance to the emperor Julian. The king was so much governed by passion, that no- thing could have delayed his opposition against Rome, but some new objects of animosity. Though he had gra- dually been changing the tenets of that theological system in which he had been educated, yet he was no less dog- matical in the few articles which remained to him, than if the Avhole fabric had been entire and unshaken. The point on which he chiefly rested his orthodoxy happened to be the real presence ; and every departure from this principle, he held to be heretical and detestable. Lambert, a schoolmaster in London, drew up objections against the corporeal presence ; and when cited by Cran- mer and Latimer, instead of recanting, he ventured to ap- peal to the king. Henry, not displeased with an oppor- tunity of exerting his supremacy, and displaying his learn- ing, accepted the appeal. Public notice was given, that he intended to enter the lists with the schoolmaster ; scaf- folds were erected in Westminster-hall for the accommo- dation of the audience ; and Henry appeared on his throne, accompanied with all the ensigns of majesty, and with the prelates and temporal peers on each side of him. The bishop of Chichester opened the conference ; and the king asked Lambert, with a stern countenance, what his opinion was of Christ's corporeal presence in the sacrament of the altar. He afterwards pressed Lambert with arguments drawn from scripture and the schoolmen. The audience HENRY VIII. 191 applauded the force of his reasoning and the extent of his erudition ; Cranmer seconded his proofs by some new topics ; Gardiner entered the lists as a support to Craj i- mer ; Tonstal took up the argument after Gardii.er ; Stokesley brought fresh aid to Tonstal ; six bishops iiiore appeared successively in the field after Stokesley ; and the disputation, if it deserves the name, was proclaimed for five hours ; till Lambert, fatigued, confounded, brow- beaten, and abashed, was at last reduced to silence. The king then proposed, as a concluding argument, this inte- resting question, whether he were resolved to live or to die 1 Lambert replied, that he cast himself wholly on his majesty's clemency ; the king told him, that he would be no protector of heretics ; and, therefore, if that were his final answer, he must expect to be committed to the flames. Cromwell, as vicegerent, pronounced the sentence against him. Lambert's executioners took care to make the suf- ferings of a man who personally opposed the king, as cruel as possible ; he was burned at a slow fire ; and when there appeared no end of his torments, some of the guards, more merciful than the rest, lifted him on their halberts, and threw him into the flames, where he was consumed. While they were employed in this friendly office, he cried aloud several times, none but Christ, none hut Christ ; and with these words he expired. Immediately after the death of Jane Seymour, Henry began to think of a new marriage ; and Cromwell proposed to him Anne of Cleves, whose father, the duke of that name, had great interest among the Lutheran princes. The marriage was at length concluded ; and Anne was sent over to England. The king, however, found her utterly destitute both of beauty and grace ; , *^^ swore that she was a great Flanders mare, and de- "^ clared that he never could possibly bear her any affection. His aversion to the queen secretly increased every day^^ and having at last broken all restraint, it prompted himflH^ once to seek the dissolution of a marriage so odious ^^^ him, and to involve his minister in ruin, who had been the innocent author of it. The fall of Cromwell was hastened by other causes. The catholics regarded him as the con- cealed enemy of their religion ; the protestants, observing his exterior concurrence with all the persecutions exercised against them, were inclined to bear him as little favour ; 192 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. and the king, who found that great clamour had on all hands arisen against the government, was not displeased to tiirow on Cromwell the load of public hatred, hoping by so easy a sacrifice to regain the affections of his sub- jects. Another more powerful cause, however, brought about an unexpected revolution in the ministry. The king had fixed his affections on Catharine Howard, niece to the duke of Norfolk; and, being determined to gratify this new passion, he could find no other expedient than a divorce from his present consort, to raise Catharine to his bed and throne. The duke, who had long been in enmity with the minister, obtained a commission from the king to arrest Cromwell at the council table, on an accusation of high treason, and to commit him to the tower. Immedi- ately after, a bill of attainder was framed against him ; and the house of peers thought proper, without trial, ex- amination or evidence, to condemn to death, on the most frivolous pretences, a man whom, a few days before, they had declared worthy to be vicar-general of the universe. The house of commons passed the bill, though not without some opposition. When brought to the place of execu- tion, Cromwell avoided all earnest protestations of his in nocence, and all complaints against the sentence pro- nounced upon him. He knew that Henry would resent on his son those symptoms of opposition to his will, and that his death alone would not terminate that monarch's vengeance. He was a man of prudence, industry, and abilities ; worthy of a better master and of a better fate Though raised to the summit of power from a low origin, yet he betrayed no insolence or contempt towards his in- feriors ; and he was careful to remember all the obliga- tions which, during his more humble fortune, he had owed to any one ; a circumstance that reflects the highest lustre on his character. -''The measures for divorcing Henry from Anne of Cleves, ■^Pi'e carried on at the same time with the bill of attainder against Cromwell. Anne had formerly been contracted, by her father, to the duke of Lorraine ; and Heniy plead- ed this pre-contract as a ground of divorce. The convo- cation was satisfied with this reason, and solemnly annul- led the marriage between the king and queen ; the parlia- ment ratified the decision of the clergy ; and Anne, bles- sed with a happy insensibility of temper, accepted of a Henry VIIL Edward VL Mary, # HENRY VIII. / 193 settlement of three thousand pounds a year, and gave her consent to the divorce. An alhance contracted by Henry with the emperor, and his marriage with Catharine Howard, which followed soon after his divorce from Anne of Cleves, were regarded as favourable incidents to the catholics ; and the subsequent events corresponded to their expectations. A fierce per- secution commenced against the protestants ; but whilst the king exerted his violence against the protestants, he spared not the catholics, who denied his supremacy ; and hence it was said by a foreigner in England, that those who were against the pope were burned, and those who were for him were hanged. Henry had thought himself very happy in his new mar- riage : the agreeable person and disposition of Catharine had entirely captivated his affections ; and he made no secret of his devoted attachment to her. But the queen's conduct very little merited this tenderness : one Lascelles brought intelligence of her dissolute life to Cranmer ; and told him that Derham and Mannod^both of them seiTants to the old duchess of Norfolk, had been admitted to her bed. Three maids of the family were admitted into her secrets, and some of them had even passed the night in bed with her and her lovers. The queen being question- ed, denied her guilt ; but when informed that a full disco- very was made, she confessed that she had been criminal before marriage ; and only insisted, that she had never been false to the king's bed. But as there was evidence that one Colepepper had passed the night with her alone since her marriage ; and as it appeared that she had taken Derham, her old paramour, into her service, she seemed to deseiTe little credit in this asseveration ; and the king, besides, was not of a humour to make any difference be- tween these degrees of guilt. Henry convoked a parliament, the usual instrument of his tyranny; and the two houses, having received the queen's confession, voted a bill of attainder for treason against the queen, and the viscountess Rocheford, who had conducted her secret amours ; and in this bill Colepepper and Derham were also comprehended. At the same time, they passed a bill of attainder for misprision of treason against the old duchess of Norfolk, Catharine's grand- mother ; her uncle, lord William Howard, and his ladr, 17 194 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. together with the countess of Bridgewater, and nine per- sons more ; because they knew the queen's vicious course of hfe before her marriage, and had concealed it. Henry himself seems to have been sensible of the cruelty of this proceeding ; for he pardoned the duchess of Norfolk, and most of the others condemned for misprision of treason. However, to secure himself for the future, as well as his successors, from this fatal accident, he engaged the par- liament to pass a law, that if the kkig married any woman who had been incontinent, taking her for a true maid, she should be guilty of treason if she did not previously reveal her guilt to hira. The people made merry with this sin- gular enactment, and said, that the king must henceforth look out for a widow ; for no reputed maid would ever be persuaded to incur the penalty of the statute. After this, the queen was beheaded on Tower-hill, together with lady Rocheford. They behaved in a manner suitable to their dissolute life ; and as lady Rocheford was known to be the chief instrument in bringing Anne Boleyn to her un- timely end, she died •ipitied. James, king of the Scots, having incurred the resent- ment of Henry, a manifesto soon paved the way to hos- tilities ; and the duke of Norfolk, at the head of twenty thousand men, passed the Tweed at Berwick, and march- ed along the banks of the river as far as Kelso ; but on the approach of James, with thirty thousand men, the English repassed the river, and retreated into their own country. The king of Scots, inflamed with a desire of military glory, and of revenge on his invaders, gave the signal for pursuing them, and carrying the war into Eng- land ; but his nobility, who were in general disaffected on account of the preference which he had given to the clergy, opposed this resolution, and refused to attend him in his projected enterprise. Enraged at this mutiny, he reproacJi- ed them with cowardice, and threatened vengeance ; but he sent ten thousand men to the western borders, who entered England at Solway Frith ; and he himself followed them at a small distance. This army, however, was ready to disband, when a small body of English appeared, not exceeding five hundred men, under the command of Da- cres and Musgrave. A panic seized the Scots, who im mediately took to flight, and were pursued by the enemy. Few were killed in this rout, but a great many were taken HENRY VIII. 195 prisoners, and some of the principal nobility, who were all sent to London. James, being naturally of a melan- cholic disposition, as well as endued with a high spirit, lost all command of his temper on this dismal occasion. Rage against his nobility, who he believed had betrayed him ; shame for a defeat by such unequal numbers ; regret for the past, fear of the future ; all these passions so wrought upon him, that he would admit of no consolation, but abandoned himself wholly to despair. His body was wasted by sympathy with his anxious mind ; and even his life began to be thought in danger. He had no issue liv- ing, and hearing that his queen was safely delivered, he asked, whether she had brought him a male or a female child. Being told the latter, he turned himself in his bed : *'. the crown came with a woman," said he, " and it will go with one ; many miseries await this poor -. V^^^ kingdom ; Henry will make it his own, cither by force of arms or by marriage." A few days after, he ex- pired, in the flower of his age. Henry was no sooner informedPof his victory, and of the death of his nephew, than he projected the scheme of uniting Scotland to his own dominions, by marrying his son Edward to the heiress of that kingdom. The Scottish nobles, who were his prisoners, readily assented to the proposal ; and after delivering hostages for their return, in case the intended nuptials should not be completed, they were all allowed to return to Scotland. A negotia- tion was commenced with sir Ralph Sadler, the English ambassador, for the marriage of the infant queen with the prince of Wales ; and equitable conditions were quickly agreed on ; but Beaton, the cardinal primate, who acted as minister to James, was able, by his intrigues, to con- found this measure. He represented the union with Eng- land as the certain ruin of the ancient religion ; and as soon as he found a war with that kingdom unavoidable, he immediately apphed to France for assistance during the present distresses of the Scottish nation. The influ- ence of the French in Scotland excited the resentment of Henry, who formed a close league with the emperor ; and war was declared against Francis by the allies. In order to obtain supplies for this projected war witli France, Henry summoned a new session of parliament, which granted hira a subsidy. About the same time, the 196 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. king married Catharine Par, widow of Nevil, lord I V^q Latimer, a wOman of virtue, and somewhat inclined to the reformed doctrines. On the other hand, the king's league with the emperor seemed a circumstance no less favourable to the catholic party ; and thus matters re- mained still nearly balanced between the factions. While the winter season restrained Henry from military operations, he summoned a new parliament, which, after declaring the prince of Wales, or any of the king's male issue, first heirs to the crown, restored the two princesses, Mary and Elizabeth, to their right of succession. Such, however, was the caprice of the king, that while he open- ed the way for these princesses to ascend the throne, he would not allow the acts to be reversed which declared them illegitimate ! Henry sent a fleet and army to invade Scotland. The troops were disembarked near Leith ; and, sifter dispers- ing a small body which opposed them, they took that tow» without resistance, and then marched to Edinburgh, thp gates of which were ^on beaten down ; and the English first pillaged, and then set fire to the city. The earl ot Arran, who was regent, and Beaton the cardinal, were not prepared to oppose so gi'eat a force ; and they fled to Stirling. The English marched eastward, laid waste the whole country, burned and destroyed Haddington and Dunbar, and then retreated into England. This incursion inflamed, without subduing the spirit of the Scots ; but Henry recalled his troops, in consequence of his treaty with the emperor, by which those two princes had agreed to invade France with above one hundred thousand men. The city of Boulogne was treacherously surrendered to Henry ; but the emperor, after taking seve- ral places, concluded a peace with Francis, at Crepy, where no mention was made of England ; and Henry, finding himself obliged to raise the siege of Montreuil, returned into England. This campaign served to the populace as matter of great triumph ; but all men of sense concluded that the king ha 1, as in all his former military enterprises, obtained, at a jreat expense an unimportant acquisition. The war with Scotland, meanwhi^ was conducted feebly, and with various success ; and the war with ^* ^' France was not distinguished by any memorable event. The great expense of these two wars main- HENRY VIII. 197 tained by Henry, obliged him to summon a new parlia- ment. The commons granted him a subsidy, payable in two years, of two shilHngs a pound on land ; the spiritua- lity voted him six shillings a pound. But the parliament, apprehensive lest more demands should be made upon them, endeavoured to save themselves by a very extraor- dinary liberality of other people's property. By one vote they bestowed on the king all the revenues of the univer- sities, as well as of the chauntries, free chapels, and hospi- tals. Henry was pleased with this concession, as it in- creased his power ; but he had no intention to rob learn- ing of all her endowments ; and he soon took care to in- form the universities that he meant not to touch their revenues. Thus these ancient and celebrated establish- ments owe their existence to the generosity of the king, not to the protection of this servile parliament. Henry employed in military preparations the money granted by parliament ; and he sent over the earl of Hertford and lord Lisle, the admiral, to Qalais, .. '^.A with a body of nine thousand men, two-thirds of which consisted of foreigners. Some skirmishes of small moment ensued with the French ; but as no hopes of any considerable progress could be entertained by either party, both came to an accommodation. Commissioners met at Campe, a small place between Ardres and Guisnes ; and it was agreed, that Henry should retain Boulogne during eight years, or till the former debt due by Francis should be paid. This debt was settled at two millions of livres, besides a claim of five hundred thousand livres, which was afterwards to be adjusted. Francis took care to compi'e- hend Scotland in the treaty. Thus all that Henry ob- tained by a war which cost him above one million three hundred and forty thousand pounds sterling, was a bad and a chargeable security for a debt which was not a third of the value. The king had now leisure to attend to domestic affairs. He was prevailed on to permit the litany to be celebrated in the vulgar tongue ; and Cranmer, taking advantage of Gardiner's absence on an embassy to the emperor, at- tempted to draw him into farther innovations ; but Gardi- ner wrote to Heniy, and retarded for some time the pro- jects of Cranmer. The catholics took hold of the king by his passion for orthodoxy ; and they represented to 17* 193 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. him, that if liis laudable zeal for enforcing the truth met with no better success, it was altogether owing to the pri- mate, whose example and encouragement were, in reality, tlie secret supports of heresy. Henry, seeing the point at which they aimed, feigned a compliance, and desired the council to make inquiry into Cranmer's conduct. Every body now considered the primate as lost ; and when ad- mitted into the council-chamber, he was told, that they had determined to send him to the tower. Cranmer said, that he appealed to the king himself; and finding his ap- peal disregarded, he produced a ring, which Henry had given him as a pledge of favour and protection. The council were confounded ; and when they came before the king, he reproved them in the severest terms ; and told them that he was well acquainted with Cranmer's merit, as well as with their malignity and envy. But though Henry's partial favour for Cranmer ren- dered fruitless all accusations against him, his pride and peevishness, Irritated by his declining state of health, in-, duced him to punish with severity every other person who differed from him in opinion. Ann Ascue, a young lady of merit as well as beauty, who was connected with the queen herself, was accused of dogmatizing on the real presence ; and, after being subjected to the torture in the most barbarous manner, she was sentenced to be burned alive, with four others condemned for the same crime. When they were all tied to the stake, they refused the pardon that was offered on condition of recantation ; and they saw with tranquility the executioner kindle the flames that w'ere to consume them. Though the secrecy and fidelity of Ann Ascue saved the queen from this peril, yet that princess soon after fell into a new danger, from which she narrowly escaped. Henry's favourite topic of conversation was theology ; and Catharine, whose good sense enabled her to discourse on any subject, was frequently engaged in the argument ; and, being secretly inclined to the principles of the refor- mers, she unwarily betrayed too much of her mind on these occasions. Henry, highly provoked that she should pre- sume to differ from him, complained of her obstinacy to Gar- diner, who gladly laid hold of the opportunity to inflame the quarrel ; and the king, hurried on by his own impetuous temper, and encom*aged by his bigoted counsellors, went HENliY VllJ. IQ 199 so far as to order articles of impeachment to be drawn up against his consort. By some means this important paper fell into the hands of one of the queen's friends, who im- mediately carried the inteUigence to her. Sensible of the extreme danger to which she was exposed, she paid her usual visit to the king, who entered on the subject most familiar to him, and who seemed to challenge her to an argument in divinity. She gently declined the conversa- tion, and remarked, that such profound speculations were ill-suited to the natural imbecility of her sex. Woman, she said, by their creation, were made subject to men. It be- longed to the husband to choose principles for his wife ; the wife's duty was, in all cases, to adopt implicitly the senti- ments of her husband ; and as to herself, it was doubly her duty, being blest with a husband who was qualified by his judgment and learning to choose principles not only for his own family, but for the most wise and knowing of every nation. " Not so, by St. Mary," replied the king ; " you are now become a doctor, Kate ; and bettq§ fitted to give than receive instructions." She meekly replied, that she was sensible how little she was entitled to these praises ; that though she usually declined not any conversation, how- ever sublime, when proposed by his majesty, she well knew that her conceptions could serve to no other purpose than to give him a little momentary amusement ; that she found the conversation apt to languish, when not revived by some opposition, and she had ventured sometimes to feign a contrariety of sentiments, in order to give him the plea- sure of refuting her ; and that she also purposed, by this innocent artifice, to engage him on topics whence she had observed, by frequent experience, that she reaped profit and instruction. "And is it so, sweetheart?" replied the king ; " then we are perfect friends again." He embraced her with great affection, and sent her away with assurances of his protection and kindness. The reputation which the duke of Norfolk had acquired in war, his high rank, and his influence as the head of the catholic party, rendered that nobleman obnoxious to Hen- ry, who foresaw danger, during his son's minority, from the attempts of so potent a subject. His son, the earl of Surrey, had distinguished himself by every accomplish- ment which became a scholar, a courtier, and a soldier : but having declined the hand of the daughter of the earl 7 200 HISTORY OF JENCJLAxXD. of Hertford, and even waived every other proposal of mar- riage, Hemy imagined that he entertained the design of espousing tlie lady Mary. Actuated by those suspicions, the king gave private orders to arrest Norfolk and Surrey, who, on the same day, were confined in the tower. Surrey was accused of entertaining in his family some Italians, who were suspected to be spies, of corresponding with car- dinal Pole, and of quartering on his escutcheon the arms of Edward the Confessor, a practice which had been jus- tified by the authority of the heralds. Notwithstanding his eloquent and spirited defence, a venal juiy condemned him for high treason ; and their sentence was soon after executed upon him. The innocence of Nor- ^ V . ^^ folk was, if possible, still more apparent than that of his son ; yet the house of peers, without trial or evidence, passed a bill of attainder against him, and sent it down to the commons. The king was now approaching fast towards his end, and fearing lest Norfolk should escape him, he sent ^lessage to the commons to expedite the bill. The obsequious commons obeyed his directions ; and the king, having affixed the royal assent to the bill by com- missioners, issued orders for the execution of Norfolk on the morning of the twenty-ninth of January. But news being carried to the tower that the king himself had expi- red the preceding night, the lieutenant deferred obeying the warrant ; and it was not thought advisable by the council to begin a new reign with the death of the greatest nobleman in the kingdom, who had been condemned by a sentence so unjust and tyrannical. The king's health had long been in a declining state ; but for several days, all those near him plainly saw his end approaching, yet no one durst inform him of his condition. At last sir Anthony Denny ventured to disclose to him the fatal secret, and exhorted him to prepare for the event. He expressed his resignation, and desired that Cranmer might be sent for ; but before the prelate arrived he was speechless, though he still seemed to retain his senses. Cranmer desired him to give some sign of his dying in the faith of Christ: he squeezed the prelate's hand, and im- mediately expired, after a reign of thirty-seven years and nine months ; and in the fifty-sixth year of his age. The king had made his will near a month before his de- mise, in which he confirmed the destination of parliament, EDWARD VI. 201 by leaving tlie crown first to prince Edwaid, then to the lady Mary, next to the lady Elizabeth. The two princesses he obliged, under the penalty of forfeiting their title to the crown, not to marry without consent of the council, which he appointed for the government of his minor son. A catalogue of this prince's vices would comprehend many of the worst qualities incidental to human nature: violence, cruelty, profusion, rapacity, injustice, obstinacy, arrogance, bigotry, and presumption ; yet, he was sincere, open, gallant, liberal, and capable, at least, of a temporary friendship and attachment. Notwithstanding his cruelty and extortion, he seems to have possessed to the last, in some degree, the love and affection of his people. Indeed, his exterior qualities were advantageous, and fit to capti- vate the multitude ; and his magnificence and personal bravery rendered him illustrious in vulgar eyes. CHAP. XI. The Reigns of Edward VI. , and Mary, Edward, at his accession, was little more than nine years of age ; and as his majority was fixed at the completion of his eighteenth year, his father had appointed sixteen executors, to whom, during the minority, he intrust- , '^,.1 ed the government of the kingdom. Among these were Cranmer, archbishop of Canterbury ; lord Wriothes- ley, chancellor ; lord St. John, great master ; lord Russel, privy-seal ; the earl of Hertford, chamberlain ; viscount Lisle, admiral ; Tonstal, bishop of Durham ; with other officers of state, and two or three private persons. To these executors, with whom was intrusted the regal au- thority, were associated twelve counsellors, who possessed no immediate power, and could only assist with their ad- vice when any aff*air was laid before them. No sooner were the executors and counsellors met, than it was suggested that the government would lose its digni- ty, for want of some head to represent the royal majesty. Though this was a departure from the late king's will, yet the measure was carried ; and the choice fell of course on the earl of Hertford, the king's maternal uncle. In their next measure, they showed a gi-eat deference to Henry's intentions. Hertford was created duke of Somerset, mareschal and lord treasurer ; Wriothesley, earl of South- 202 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. ampton ; the earl of Essex, marquis of Northampton ; viscount Lisle, earl of Warwick ; sir Thomas Seymour, lord Seymour of Sudley, and admiral ; and sir Richard Rich, sir William Willoughby, and sir Edward Sheffield, were raised to the dignity of barons. The earl of Southampton had always been engaged in an opposite party to Somerset ; and the latter taking ad- vantage of some illegal proceedings of which the former was guilty, the council declared that Southampton had for- feited the great seal, that a fine should be imposed upon him, and that he should be confined to his own house du- ring pleasure. The removal of Southampton, however, did not satisfy the ambition of Somerset. He procured a patent from the young king, by which he entirely over- turned the will of Henry VHI., and produced a total revo- lution in the government. He named himself protector, with full regal power, and appointed a council, consisting of all the former counsellors, and all the executors, except Southampton, reserving a power of naming any other counsellors at pleasure, and of consulting with such only as he thought proper. The protector and his council were likewise empowered to act at discretion, and to exe- cute whatever they deemed for the public service, without incurring any penalty or forfeiture whatsoever. Somerset had long been regarded as a secret partisan of the reformers ; and he took care that all persons intrust- ed with the king's education should be attached to the same principles. In his schemes for advancing the refor- mation, he had always recourse to the counsels of Cran- mer, who, being a man of moderation and prudence, was averse to all violent changes. A visitation was made of all the dioceses in England, by a mixture of clergy and laity ; and the chief purport of their instructions was, be- sides correcting immoralities and irregularities in the cler- gy, to abolish the ancient superstitions, and to bring the discipline and worship somewhat nearer the practice of the reformed churches. The person that opposed, with great- est authority, these advances towards reformation, was Gardiner, bishop of Worcester, who, though he had not obtained a place in the council of regency, on account of late disgusts which he had given to Henry, was entitled by his age, experience, and capacity, to the highest trust and confidence of his party. He represented the periks of EDWARD VI. 203 perpetual innovations, and the necessity of adhering to some system. For this freedom he was sent to the Fleet- prison, and treated with some severity. In Scotland, one Wishart, a gentleman by birth, and celebrated for the purity of his morals, and his extensive learning, employed himself with great success in preach- ing again^st the ancient superstitions. Beaton, the cardi- nal primate, resolving to strike terror into all other inno- vators, by the punishment of so distinguished a preacher, caused him to be arrested. The unhappy man was con- demned to the flames for heresy, and suffered with the usual patience. The disciples of this martyr, enraged at the cruel execution, formed a conspiracy against the car- dinal, who was assassinated soon after the death of Wish- art. The assassins, being reinforced by their friends, to the number of a hundred and forty persons, prepared them- selves for the defence of the cardinal's palace, and craved the assistance of Henry, who promised to take them under his protection. To fulfil this promise, and to execute the project which the late king had recommended with his dying breath, the protector levied an army of eighteen thousand men, with which he invaded Scotland. The Scottish army, double in number to that of the English, posted themselves on advantageous ground, guarded by the banks of the Eske, about four miles from Edinburgh. Having reconnoitered their camp, Somerset found it difficult to make an attempt upon it with any probability of success. He wrote, there- fore, to Arran, the governor of Scotland, and offered to evacuate the kingdom, provided the Scots would stipulate not to contract the queen to any foreign prince, but to de- tain her at home till she reached the age of choosing a husband for, herself. The Scots rejected the demand, and quitting their camp, advanced into the plain, with the hope of cutting off the retreat of the English. Somerset, pleased to behold this movement of the Scottish army, ranged his troops in order of battle. The Scots were defeated with the loss of about ten thousand slain, and fifteen hundred taken prisoners ; while not more than two hundred of the English fell in this engagement. This action was called ;he battle of Pinkney, from a nobleman's seat of that name in the neighbourhood. Somerset was desirous of returning to England, where 204 HISTORY OP KNGLAND. be heard that some counsellors, and even his own brother, the admiral, were carrying on cabals against his autliority. On his arrival, he summoned a parliament, in which all laws were repealed that extended the crime of ,1.Q treason beyond the statute of the twenty-fifth of Edward III. ; all laws enacted during the late reign extending the crime of felony ; all the former laws against Lollardy or heresy, together with the statute of the six articles. By these and other repeals, some dawn, both of civil and religious liberty, began to appear to the people. Heresy, however, was still a capital crime by the common law, and was subjected to the penalty of burning. Only there remained no precise standard by which thai crime could be defined or determined ; a circumstance which might either be advantageous or hurtful to public security, according to the disposition of the judges. The greater the progress that was made towards a re- formation in England, the further did the protector find himself from all prospect of completing the union w)th Scotland ; and the queen-dowager, as well as the clergy, became the more averse to all alliance with a nation which had so far departed from ancient principles. The hostile attempts, too, which the late king and the protector had made against Scotland, had sei^ved only to inspire the Scottish people with the utmost aversion to a union. The queen-dowager, finding these sentiments prevail, called a parliament, in which it was proposed that the young queen should be sent to France. Accordingly, the governor re- ceived a pension of twelve thousand livres a year, and the title of duke of Chatelrauk ; and Mary embarked on board some French vessels, arrived at Brest, whence she was con- ducted to Paris, and soon after betrothed to the dauphin. The mortification of Somerset, on the failure of his pro- ject for a union with Scotland, was increased by the in- trigues of his own family. His brother, lord Seymour, a man of insatiable ambition and great abilities, by his flat- tery and address, had so insinuated himself into the good graces of the queen-dowager, that, forgetting her usual pmdence and decency, she married him so immediately upon the demise of the late king, that had she soon proved pregnant, it might have been doubtful to which husband the child belonged. The credit and riches of this alliance supported the- ambition of the admiral ; but gave umbrage EJ)WARD VI. 205 1.0 the duchess of Somerset, who, uneasy that the younger brother's wife should have the precedency, employed all her influence with her husband, first to create, then to widen, the breach between the two brothers. The first attempt of the admiral was a direct attack upon his brother's authority, by procuring from the young king a letter to the parliament, desiring that Seymour might be appointed his governor; but, finding himself prevented in his design by the parliament, he was obliged to submit, and to desire a reconciliation v/ith his brother. His ambition, however, could not be easily checked. His spouse, the queen-dowager, died in child-bed ; but so far from regarding this event as an obstacle to his aspiring views, he made his addresses to the lady Elizabeth ; and as Henry had excluded his daughters from all hopes of succession, if they married without the consent of his ex- ecutors, which Seymour could never hope to obtain, he is supposed to have aimed at effecting his purpose by the most criminal means. He had brought over to his party many of the principal nobility; and it was supposed, that he could on occasion muster an army of ten thousand men, composed of his servants, tenants, and retainers. He had already provided arms for their use ; and having engaged in his interests sir John Sharington, a corrupt man, master of the mint at Bristol, he flattered himself that money would not be wanting. Somerset was well apprised of all these alarming circumstances, and endea- voured by the most friendly expedients, by intreaty, reason, and even by heaping new favours upon his brother, to make him desist from his dangerous councils ; but finding all endeavours ineffectual, he was easily persuaded, by the earl of Warwick, to deprive him of the office of admiral, and to commit him to the towel*. Some of his accomplices were also taken into custody ; and three privy counsellors being sent to examine them, made a report that they had met with very full and impor- tant discoveries. Yet still the protector suspended the blow, and showed a reluctance to ruin his brother ; but as Seymour made no other answer to all his friendly offers, than menaces and defiances, he ordered a charge to be drawn up against him, consisting of thirty-three articles and the whole to be laid before the privy council. It v? pretended, that every particular was so incontestibly pro- XS •306 ./ HISTORY OP ENGLAND. ved, both by witnesses and his own hand- writing, that there was no room for doubt; yet did the council think proper to go in a body to the tower, in order more fully to examine the prisoner. We shall indeed conclude, if we carefully examine the charge, that many of the articles were general, and scarcely capable of any proof; many of them, if true, susceptible of a more favourable interpre- tation ; and that though, on the w^iole, Seymour appears to have been a dangerous subject, he had not advanced far in those treasonable projects imputed to him. But the administration had at that time an dasy instru- ment of vengeance in the parliament ; and &. session being held, Seymour was proceeded against by bill of attainder. The bill was passed in the upper house without undergo- ing any objections ; but in the house of commons, some members objected against the whole method of proceeding by bill of attainder passed in absence, and insisted that a formal trial should be given to every man before his condemnation. At length, however, the bill passed ; and the sentence was soon after executed, and the pri- ^'r?Q soner beheaded on Tower-hill. The warrant was signed by Somerset himself, who was much blamed on account of the violence of these proceedings. In this session, the translation of the liturgy, as well as of the scriptures, into the vulgar tongu^ was estabhshed by parliament ; and an act was also passed, permitting the mar- riage of priests, who had hitherto been enjoined celibacy. Scarcely any institution can be considered less favoura- ble to the interests of mankind, than that of monks and friars. The convents, however, were a sure resource to the poor and indigent ; and though the alms which they distributed gave too much encouragement to idleness, yet the suppression of them was felt and regretted. These orievances were at this time heightened by other causes. The arts of manufacture were much more advanced in other European countries than in England ; and even in Eno-land these arts had made greater progress than tlie knowledge of agriculture. A great demand arose for wooi both abroad and at home ; pasturage was found more pro- fitable than unskilful tillage ; whole estates were laid waste by enclosures ; and a decay of people, as w^ell as a dimi- nution of the former plenty, was remarked in the kingdom. The general increase also of gold and silver in Europe, EDWARD VI. , 207 after the discovery of the West-Indies, had a tendency to in- flame these complaints. The growing demand in the more commercial countries had heightened every where the price of commodities, which could easily be transported thither ; but in England, the labour of men, who could not so easily change their habitation, still remained nearly at the ancient rates ; and the poor complained that they could no longer gain a subsistence by their industry ; which, as it was difficult for them to shake off their former habits of indolence, they were, in fact, unwilling to employ. Loud complaints were heard in every part of England ; and these were succeeded by acts of open violence. The rising was simultaneous, as if a general conspiracy had been formed by the people. The commotions in Hamp- shire, Sussex, Kent, and some other counties, were quiet- ed by mild expedients ; but the disorders in Devonshire and Norfolk threatened more dangerous consequences. In Devonshire, the rebels, who amounted to ten thousand, were attacked and defeated near Exeter by lord Russel, who had been sent to disperse them. In Norfolk, the in- surgents amounted to twenty thousand, and were headed by one Ket, a tanner. The protector affected popularity, and cared not to appear in person against the rebels ; he therefore sent the earl of Warwick, at the head of six thousand men, levied for the wars against Scotland ; by which means he afforded his mortal enemy an opportunity of increasing his reputation and character. Warwick, having tried some skirmishes with the rebels, at last made a general attack upon them, and put them to flight. Two thousand fell in the action and pursuit ; and Ket was hanged at Norwich. But though these insurrections were quickly subdued, they were attended with serious consequences to the fo- reign interests of the nation. The Scots took the fortress of Broughty, and compelled the English to evacuate Haddington ; and the French recovered all the conquests which Henry had made on the continent, with th3 excep- tion of Boulogne. Somerset, despairing of the assistance of the emperor, was inclined to conclude a peace with France and Scot- land ; but his enemies in the council opposed all proposals for a pacification. Lord St. John, president of the coun- cil, the earls of Warwick, Southampton, and Arundel, 2(18 J mSTORY OP ENGLAND. with five members more, met at Ely-house ; and assuming to themselves the whole power of the council, began to act independently of the protector, whom they represented as the author of every public grievance and misfortune. They wrote letters to the chief nobility and gentry of England, informing them of the present measures, and requiring their assistance ; they sent for the mayor and aldermen of London, and enjoined them to obey their order, without regard to any contrary orders which they might receive from the duke of Somerset. They laid the same injunc- tions on the lieutenant of the tower, who expressed his resolution to comply with them. Other lords and gentle- men joined the malcontent counsellors. Somerset was sent to the tower; and articles of indict- ment were preferred against him. He was prevailed on to confess on his knees, before the council, all the arti- cles of charge against him ; and he even subscribed this confession. The paper was given into parliament, who, after sending a committee to examine him, and hear him acknowledge it to be genuine, passed a vote by which they deprived him of all his offices, and fined him two thousand pounds a year in land. Lord St. John was created trea- surer in his place, and Warwick earl-marshal. The pro- secution against him was carried no farther ; and his fine was remitted by the king. Warwick, thinking that he was now sufficiently humbled, readmitted him into the council, and even agreed to an alliance between their families, by the marriage of his own son, lord Dudley, with the lady .Tane Seymour, daughter of Somerset. When Warwick and the council of regency began to ex- ercise their power, they found themselves embar- , 1 -^ rassed by the wars with France and Scotland : and therefore a pacification was efi*ected, by which France bound herself to pay four hundred thousand crowns for the restitution of Boulogne ; and the English agi-eed to restore to Scotland Lauder and Douglas, and to demo- lish the fortresses of Roxburgh and Eymouth. In all other respects, than an intention of marrying the king to a daughter of the king of France, a violent ^'['1'% persecutor of the protestants, the council was steady in promoting the reformation. Several pre- lates still adhered to the Romish communion, and were deprived of their sees on pretence of disobedience. The EDWARD VI. 209 princess Mary declared herself willing to endure death rather than relinquish the ancient rehgion ; and Edward, who had been educated in a violent abhorrence of the mass and other popish rites, lamented his sister's obstina- cy, and bewailed his fate in suffering her to continue in such an abominable mode of worship. Various schemes attempted by the council for promoting industry were likely to prove abortive, by the ambition of Warwick. The last earl of Northumberland died without issue ; and as sir Thomas Piercy, his brother, had been attainted in the late reign, Warwick procured a grant of the estate, with the title of Duke of Northumberland. Finding that Somerset, though degraded from his dig- nity, still enjoyed a considerable share of popularity, Northumberland determined to ruin the man whom he re- garded as the chief obstacle to the attainment of his am- bition. The alliance between the two families had produ- ced no cordial union. Nortliumberland secretly gained many of the friends and seiTants of that unhappy noble- man ; and the unguarded Somerset often broke out into menacing expressions, which his tieacLerous confidants carried to his enemy. In one night, the duke of Somerset, lord Grey, David and John Seymour, Hammond and Neudigate, two of the duke's servants, sir Ralph Vane, and sir Thomas Palmer, were arrested, and committed to custody. Next day the duchess of Somerset, with her favourites, and some others, were thrown into prison. Sir Thomas Palmer, who had all along acted as a spy upon Somerset, accused him of having formed a design of raising an insurrection in the north ; and that he had once projected the murder of Northumberland, Northampton, and Pembroke. Somer- set was brought to his trial before the marquis of Win- chester, created high-steward. Twenty-seven peers com- posed the jury, among whom were Northumberland, Pem- broke, and Northampton, whom decency should have hin- dered from acting as judges in the trial of a man that ap- peared to be their capital enemy. S(»merset was accused of high-treason on account of the projected insurrections, and of felony in laying a design to murder privy- counsel- lors. The proof seems to have been lame in regard to the treasonable part of the charge ; but the prisoner himself confessed that he had expressed his intention of murdering 18* *ilO " I ,e HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Northumberland and the other lords ; and he was accord • ingly condemned to death for felony. Care had been taken to prepossess the young king against his uncle ; and lest he should relent, no access was given to any of Somerset's friends. The prisoner was brought to the scaffold on Tower-hill, amidst great crowds of spectators, who bore him such sincere kindness ,'^_(^ that they entertained to the last moment the fond hopes of his pardon. Many of them rushed in to dip their handkerchiefs in his blood, which they long pre- served as a precious relick ; and some of them soon after, when Northumberland met with a like doom, upbraided him with this cruelty, and displayed to him these symbols of his crime. The day after the execution of Somerset, a session of parliament was held, in which farther advances were made towards the establishment of the reformation. The new liturgy was authorised ; and penalties were enacted against all those who absented themselves from public worship. Tonstal, bishop of Durham, less eminent for the dignity of his see, than for his own personal merit, had opposed, by his vote and authority, all innovations in religion ; but as soon as they were enacted, he had always submitted from a sense of duty, and had conformed to eveiy theolo- gical system which had been established. The general regard paid to his character had protected him from any severe treatment during the administration of Somerset ; but when Northumberland gained the ascendant, he was thrown into prison ; and as that rapacious nobleman had formed a design of seizing the revenues of the see of Dur- ham, and of acquiring to himself a principality in the northern counties, he was resolved to deprive Tonstal of his bishopric. A bill of attainder, therefore, on pretence of misprision of treason, was introduced into the house of peers against that prelate, and passed with slight opposi- tion ; but when the bill was sent down to the commons, they required that witnesses should be examined, that Tonstal should be allowed to defend himself, and that he should be confronted with his accusers. These demands being refused, they rejected the bill. This equity, so unusual in the parliament during that age, was ascribed by Northumberland to the prevalence of So- EDWARD VI. 211 merset's faction ; and it was therefore resolved to dissolve the parliament, and to summon a new one. This expedi- ent answered Northumberland's expectations. As Ton- stal had, in the interval, been deprived of his bishopric in an arbitrary manner, by the sentence of lay-commissioners appointed to try him, the see of Durham was by act of parliament divided into two bishoprics, which had certain portions of tlie revenue assigned them. The regalties of the see, which included the jurisdiction of a count pala- tine, were given by the king to Northumberland. The young prmce showed a disposition to frugality ; but such had been the rapacity of the courtiers, that the crown owed about three hundred thousand pounds ; and as the king's health was declining very fast, the emptiness of the exchequer was an obstacle to the ambitious projects of Northumberland. That nobleman represented to Ed- ward, that his two sisters, Mary and Elizabeth, had been declared illegitimate by act of parliament ; that the queen of Scots stood excluded by the late king's will ; that the certain consequence of his sister Mary's succession, or that of the queen of Scots, was the abolition of the protestant religion ; that the succession next devolved on the mar- chioness of Dorset, elder daughter of the French queen, and the duke of Suffolk ; that the next heir of the mar- chioness was the lady Jane Grey, a lady of the most ami- able character, accomplished by the best education, both in literature and religion, and every way worthy of a crown ; and that even if her title by blood were doubtful, which there was no just reason to pretend, the king was posses- sed of the same power that his father enjoyed, and might leave her the crown by letters patent These reasonings made impression on the young prince ; and, above ail, his zealous attachment to the protestant religion made him apprehend the consequences, if so bigoted a catholic as his sister Mary should succeed to the throne. And though he bore an affection to the lady Elizabeth, who was liable lo no such objection, means were found to persuade him that he could not exclude the one sister on account of ille- gitimacy, without also excluding the other. Northumberland, finding that his arguments were likely to operate on the king, began to prepare the other parts of his scheme. Two sons of the duke of Suffolk, by a second marriage, having died this season of the sweating *J1^ " HISTORY OF ENGLAND, sickness, that title was extinct; and Northumberland en gaged the king to bestow it on the marquis of Dorset. By means of this favour, and of others which he conferred upon him, he persuaded the new duke of Suffolk and the duchess to give their daughter, the lady Jane, in marriage to his fourth son, the lord Guildford Dudley. In order to fortify himself by farther alliances, he negotiated a mar- riage between the lady Catharine Grey, second daughter of Suffolk, and lord Herbert, eldest son of the earl of Pembroke. He also married his own daughter to lord Hastings, eldest son of the earl of Huntingdon. These marriages were solemnized with great pomp and festivity ; and the people, who hated Northumberland, could not forbear expressing their indignation at seeing such public demonstrations of joy during the languishing state of the young prince's health. The appearance of symptoms of a consumption in Ed- ward, made Northumberland more intent on the execution of his project. He removed all except his own emissaries from about the king ; and by artifice he prevailed on the young prince to give his final consent to the settlement projected. Sir Edward Montague, chief-justice of the common pleas, sir John Baker, and sir Thomas Bromley, two judges, were accordingly summoned to the council, where, after the minutes of the intended deed were read to them, the king required them to draw them up in the form of letters patent. They hesitated to obey, and de sired time to consider. The more they reflected, the greater danger they found in compliance. The settlement of the crown by Heniy the Eighth had been made in con- sequence of an act of parliament ; and by another act, passed in the beginning of this reign, it was declared trea- son in any of the heirs, their aiders or abettors, to change the order of succession. The judges pleaded these rea- sons before the council ; and they were reduced to great difiiculties between the dangers from the law, and those which arose from the violence of present powder and autho- rity. At last, Montague proposed an expedient, which satisfied both his brethren and the counsellors. He desired that a special commission should be passed by the king and council, requiring the judges to draw a patent for the new settlement of the crown ; and that a pardon should EDWARD VI. 213 be immediately after granted them for any offence whicn they might have incurred by their comphance. When the patent was drawn, and brought to the bishop of Ely, chancellor, in order to have the great seal affixed to it, the prelate required that all the judges should previ- ously sign it. The chancellor next required, for his greater security, that all the privy-counsellors should set their hands to the patent ; and the intrigues of Northumberland, or the fear of his violence, were so prevalent, that the coun- sellors complied with this demand. Cranmer alone hesi- tated during some time, but at last yielded to the earnest and pathetic intreaties of the king. After this settlement was made, with so many inauspi- cious circumstances, Edward visibly declined every day ; and, to make matters worse, his physicians were dismissed by Northumberland's advice, and by an order of council ; and he was put into the hands of an ignorant woman, in a little time to restore him to his former state of health. After the use of her medicines, all his bad symptoms in- creased to the most violent degree ; and he expired at Greenwich, in the sixteenth year of his age, and the seventh of his reign. The English historians dwell with pleasure on the ex- cellent qualities of this young prince ; whom the flattering promises of hope, joined to many real virtues, had made an object of tender affection to the public. He possessed mildness of disposition, with application to study and busi- ness, and a capacity to learn and judge, with an attach- ment to equity and justice. During the reign of Edward, the princess Maiy had been regarded as his lawful successor ; and though the protestants dreaded the effects of her prejudices, the extreme hatred universally entertained against iV^o the Dudleys, who, it was foreseen, would reign under the name of Jane, was more than sufficient to coun- terbalance, even with that party, the attachment to reli- gion. This last attempt to violate the order of succes- sion, had displayed Northumberland's ambition and injus- tice in a full light. Northumberland, sensible of the opposition which he must expect, had carefully concealed tlie destination made by the king ; and, in order to bring the two princesses into his power, he had the art to engage the council, before 214 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Edward's death, to write to them in that prince's nawic, desiring their attendance, on pretence that his infinii state of health required the assistance of their counsel, and the consolation of their company. Edward expired before, their arrival ; but Northumberland, in order to make the princesses fall into the snare, kept the king's death still secret ; and the lady Mary had already reached Hoddes- den, within half a day's journey of the court. Happily, the earl of Arundel sent her private intelligence both of her brother's death and of the conspiracy formed against her. She immediately made haste to retire ; and she ar- rived at Framlingham, in Suffolk, where she purposed to embark and escape to Flanders, in case she should find it impossible to defend her right of succession. She wrote letters to the nobility and most considerable gentry in every county of England, commanding them to assist her in the defence of her crown and person ; and she des patched a message to the council, requiring them imme diately to give orders for proclaiming her in London. Northumberland found that farther dissimulation was fruitless ; and he approached the lady Jane with the re- spect due to a sovereign. Jane was in a great measure ignorant of the transactions which had taken place ; and it was with equal grief and surprise that she received the intelligence. She was a lady of an amiable person, an engaging disposition, and accomplished talents. Her heart, full of a passion for literature and the elegant arts, and of tenderness towards her husband, who was desei*v- ing of her affections, had no room for ambition. She even refused to accept the crown, and pleaded feha right of the two princesses ; and she at last yielded rather to the in- treaties than the reasons of her father and husband. Orders were given by the council to proclaim Jane throughout the kingdom ; but these orders were executed only in London and the neighbourhood. In the mean time, the people of Suffolk paid their attendance on Maiy. They were much attached to the reformed religion ; and as she assured them that she never meant to change the laws of Edward, they enlisted in her cause with zeal and affection. The nobility and gentry daily flocked to her, and brought her reinforcements. Even a fleet which had been sent bv Northumberland to lie off the coast of Suf- MARY* 21S folk, being forced into Yarmouth by a storm, was engaged to declare in her favour. Northumberland, hitherto blinded by ambition, saw at last the danger gather round him, and knew not which way to turn. He had levied forces which were assembled at London; but dreading the cabals of the courtiers and counsellors, whose compliance he knew had been entirely the result of fear or artifice, he was resolved to keep near the person of the lady Jane, and send Suffolk to command the army. But the counsellors, who wished to remove him, working on the filial tenderness of Jane, magnified to he** the danger to which her father would be exposed ; and represented that Northumberland, who had gained repu- tation by formerly suppressing a rebellion in those parts, was more proper to command in that enterprise. The duke himself, who knew the slender capacity of Suffolk, began to think that he only was able to encounter the present danger ; and he agreed to take the command of the troops. The counsellors attended him at his depar- ture with the highest protestations of attachment, and none more than Arundel, his mortal enemy. As he went along, he remarked the disaffection of the people, which fore- boded a fatal issue to his ambitious hopes. " Many," said he to lord Gray, " come out to look at us, but I find not one who cries God speed you !" The duke had no sooner reached St. Edmondsbury, than he found his army, which did not exceed six thousand men, too weak to encounter the queen's, which amounted to double the number. The counsellors immediately laid hold of the opportunity to free themselves from confine- ment, and to return to the duty which they owed to their lawful sovereign. The mayor and aldermen of London discovered great alacrity in obeying the orders they re- ceived to proclaim Mary. The people expressed their approbation by shouts of applause. Even Suffolk, who commanded in the tower, finding resistance fruitless, open- ed the gates, and declared for the queen. The lady Jane, after the vain pageantiy of wearing a crown during ten days, returned to a private life with more satisfaction than she felt when the royalty was tendered to her ; and the messengers who were sent to Northumberland with orders to lay down his arms, found that he had despaired of suc- cess, was deserted by all his followers, and had already *il6 y I ,C HISTORY Of ENGLAND* proclaimed the queen, with exterior marks of joy and satisfaction. The people every where, on the queen's approach to London, gave sensible expressions of their loyalty and at- tachment ; and the lady Elizabeth met her at the head of a thousand horse. The queen gave orders for taking into custody the duke of Northumberland, who fell on his knees to the earl of Arundel, sent to arrest him, and abjectly begged his life. At the same time were committed the earl of Warvrick, his eldest son ; lord Ambrose and lord Henry Dudley, two of his younger sons ; sir Andrew Dud- ley, his brother ; the marquis of Northampton, the earl of Huntingdon, sir Thomas Palmer, and sir John Gates. The queen afterwards confined the duke of Suftblk, lady Jane Gray, and lord Guilford Dudley. But Mary was desirous, in the beginning of her reign, to acquire popu- larity by the appearance of clemency ; and because the counsellors pleaded constraint as an excuse for their trea- son, she extended her pardon to most of them. Suftblk owed his liberty to the contempt of his incapacity ; but Northumberland was too powerful and dangerous to be pardoned ; he pleaded guilty, and was executed. Sir Thomas Palmer and su' John Gates suffered with him. Sentence was also pronounced against the lady Jane and lord Guilford ; but the execution of it was at present deferred. The joy arising from the succession of the lawful heir did not prevent the people from feeling great anxiety concerning the state of religion ; and the nation dreaded not only the abolition, but the persecution of the establish- ed religion, from the zeal of Mary ; and it was not long before she discovered her intentions. Gardiner, Bonner, Tonstal, and others, were reinstated in their sees ; and Cranmer, whose merits to the queen during the reign of Henry had been considerable, was tried for the part which he had acted in concurring with lady Jane, and pronounced guilty of high treason. The execution of the sentence, however, did not follow ; and Cranmer was reserved for a more cruel punishment. Several English protestants, foreseeing a persecution of the reformers, took shelter in foreign parts ; and aff*air9 wore a dismal aspect for the reformation. In opening tlie parliament, the court showed a contempt of the laws, by MARY. 217 celebrating before the two houses a mass of the Holy Ghost ill the Latin tongue, attended with all the ancient rites and ceremonies, though abolished by act of parliament. Taylor, bishop of Lincoln, having reftised to kneel at this service, was severely handled, and was violently thrust out of the house. The queen, however, still retained the title of supreme head of the church of England ; and it was generally pretended, that the intention of the court was only to restore religion to the same condition in which it had been left by Henry ; but that the other abuses of popery, which were the most grievous to the nation, would never be revived. The lii'st bill passed by the parliament was of a popular nature, and abolished every species of treason not con- tained in the statute of Edward HI., and every species of felony that did not subsist before the first of Henry the Eighth. All the statutes of king Edward, with regai-d to religion, were repealed by one vote. The attainder of the duke of Norfolk was reversed ; and this act of justice was more reasonable, than the declaring of that attainder inva- lid, w^ithout farther authority. Notwithstanding the compliance of the two houses with the queen's inclinations, they were determined not to sub- mit tamely to her pleasure in the choice of a husband. There were three matches, concerning which it was sup- posed that Mary had deliberated after her accession. The first person proposed to her was the earl of Devonshire, whose person and address had visibly gained on the queen's affections ; but that nobleman neglected the ad- vantage, and attached himself to the lady Elizabeth, whose youth and agreeable conversation he preferred to all the power and grandeur of her sister ; the second was cardinal Pole, who had never taken priest's orders, but who, having contracted habits of study and retirement, was represented to the queen as unsuitable to the business of a court ; the third was Philip, son of the emperor Charles V. ; and this alliance was not only desired by the emperor, but strenuously recommended by Gardiner, who had become prime minister, and was readily embraced by Mary herself. The commons were alarmed that the queen had resolved to contract a foreign alliance ; and they sent a committee to remonstrate in strong terms against that dangerous measure. To prevent farther applications of the 19 218 3 ^ ^ HISTORY OF ENGLAND. same kind, she thonght proper to dissolve the parliament. After the parliament was dismissed, the new laws with regard to religion were openly put in execution. The mass was every where re-established ; and marriage was de- clared to be incompatible with any spiritual office. This violent and sudden change of religion inspired the protes- tants with great discontent ; but the Spanish match ^'crl was a point of more general concern, and diffused universal apprehensions for the liberty and inde- pendence of the nation. To obviate all clamour, the articles of marriage were drawn as favourably as possible for the interest and security, and even grandeur, of Eng- land. It was agreed that though Philip should have the title of king, the administration should be entirely in the queen ; that no foreigner should be capable of enjoying any office in the kingdom ; that no innovation should be made in the English laws, customs, and privileges ; that Philip should not carry the queen abroad without her con- sent, nor any of her children without the consent of the nobility ; that the male issue of this marriage should in- herit, together with England, both Burg-undy and the Low Countries ; and that if Don Carlos, Philip's son by his former marriage, should die, and his line be extinct, the queen's issue, whether male or female, should inherit Spain, Sicily, Milan, and all the other dominions of Philip. These articles, however, gave no satisfaction ; and com- plaints were every where diffused that England would be- come a province, and a province to a kingdom which usually exercised the most violent authority over all her dependent dominions. Some persons, more turbulent than the rest, formed a conspiracy to lise in arms, and declare against the queen's marriage with Philip. Sir Thomas \Vyat purposed to raise Kent ; sir Peter Carew, Devon- shire ; and they engaged the duke of Suffolk, by the hopes of recovering the crown for the lady Jane, to attempt rais- ing the midland counties. Carew's rebellion was soon suppressed ; and he was obliged to fly into France. Suf- folk endeavoured to raise the people in the counties of Warwick and Leicester ; bm oenig closely pursued by tht earl of Huntingdon, at the head of three hundred horse, he was taken, and carried prisoner to London. Wyal was at first more successful in his attempt ; and having published a declaration at Maidstone, in Kent, against the MARY. 2J9 queen's evil counsellors, and against the Spanish match, the people began to liock to his standard. The duke of Norfolk, with sir Henry Jernegan, was sent against him, at the head of the guards and some other troops, reinforced with live hundred Londoners commanded by Bret. The Londoners, however, deserted to Wyat, and declared that they would not contribute to enslave their native country ; and Norfolk, dreading the contagion of the example, im- mediately retreated with his troops, and took shelter in the city. After this proof of the disposition of the people, espe- cially of the Londoners, who were mostly protestants, Wyat was encouraged to proceed : he led his forces to South- wark, but finding that the bridge was secured against him, and that the city was overawed, he marched up to King- ston, where he passed the river with four thousand men ; and returning towards London, hoped to encourage his partisans, who had engaged to declare for him. He had, however, imprudently wasted so much time, that the cri- tical season, on which all popular commotions depend, was entirely lost, and his followers insensibly falling off; he was taken prisoner near Temple bar, and soon after executed, with about four hundred of his adherents. The lady Elizabeth had been, during some time, treated with great harshness by her sister. Mary seized the op- portunity of this rebellion : and hoping to involve Eliza- beth in some appearance of guilt, committed her to the tower ; but the princess made so good a defence before the council, who examined her, that the queen found her- self under the necessity of releasing her. Li order, how- ever, to send her out of the kingdom, a marriage was offered her with the duke of Savoy ; and when she de- clined the proposal, she was committed to custody under a strong guard at Woodstock. This rebellion proved fatal to the lady Jane Gray and her husband. She was warned to prepare for death ; a doom which she had long expected, and which the inno- cence of her life, as well as the misfortunes to which she had been exposed, rendered nowise unwelcome to her. The queen's zeal, under colour of tender mercy to the prisoner's soul, induced her to send divines who harassed her with perpetual disputation. The lady Jane, however, had presence of mind, in those melancholy circumstances^ 220 ' HISTORY OF ENGLAND. not (m\y to defend her religion by all the topics then in use, but also to write a letter to her sister in the Greek language ; in which, besides sending her a copy of the scriptures in that tongue, she exhorted her to maintain, m every fortune, a like steady perseverance. On the day of her execution, her husband, lord Guilford, desired permission to see her ; but she refused her consent, and informed him by a message, that the tenderness of their parting would overcome the fortitude of both, and would too much unbend their minds from that constancy which their approaching end required : their separation, she said, would be only for a moment ; and they would soon rejoin each other in a scene where their affections would be for ever united, and where death, disappointment, and mis- fortunes, could no longer have access to them, or disturb their eternal felicity. She saw her husband led to execu- tion : and having given him from the window some token of tier remembrance, she waited with tranquility till her own appointed hour should bring her to a like fate. She even saw his headless body carried back in a cart, and found hei-self more confirmed, by the reports which she heard of the constancy of his end, than shaken by so tender and melancholy a spectacle. Sir John Gage, consta- ble of the tower, when he led her to execution, desired her to bestow on him some small present, which he might keep as a perpetual memorial of her ; she gave him her table-book, on which she had just written three sentences on seeing her husband's dead body ; one in Greek, another in Latin, a third in English. The purport of them was, that human justice was against his body, but divine mercy would be favourable to his soul ; that if her fault deserved punishment, her youth at least, and her imprudence, were worthy of excuse ; and that God and posterity, she trusted, would show her favour. On the scaffold she made a speech to the spectators, in which the mildness of her dis- position led her to take the. blame wholly on herself, with- out uttering one complaint against the severity with which she had been treated ; and then, with a steady and serene countenance, she submitted to the stroke of death. The duke of Suffolk was tried and condemned, and soon after executed ; and the tower and all the prisons were filled with nobility and gentry, whom their interest with the nation rendered objects of suspicion. The queen j MARY. 221 finding that she was universally hated, determined to de prive the people of resistance, by ordering general mus- ters, and directing the commissioners to seize their arms. The ministry hoped to find a compliant disposition in the new parliament, which was summoned to assemble ; and for the purpose of facilitating this object, the emperor distributed above four hundred thousand crowns in bribes and pensions among the members. Gardiner, the chan- cellor, opened the session by a speech, in which he ob- served, that in order to obviate the inconveniences which might arise from different pretenders, it was necessary to invest the queen, by law, with a power of disposing of the crown, and of appointing her successor. The parliament, however, who knew her extreme hatred to Elizabeth, and the probabihty of her making a will in her husband's fa- vour, and thereby rendering England for ever a province to the Spanish monarchy, refused to acquiesce in Gardi- ner's proposal ; and, the more effectually to cut off Philip's hopes, they passed a law, " that her majesty, as their only queen, should solely, and as a sole queen, enjoy the crown and sovereignty of her realms, with all the pre-eminences, dignities, and rights thereto belonging, in as large and ample manner after her marriage, without any title or claim accruing to the prince of Spain, either as tenant by courtesy, or by any other means." The queen, finding the parliament less subservient than she wished, finished the session by dissolving them ; and she employed all her thoughts on receiving Don Philip, whose arrival she hourly expected. She waited with the utmost impatience for the completion of the marriage ; and every obstacle was to her a source of anxiety and discon- tent. She complained of Philip's delays as affected ; and she could not conceal her vexation, that though she brought him a kingdom as her dowry, he treated her with such neglect, that he had never yet favoured her with a sin- gle letter. Her health, and even her understanding, were visibly hurt by this extreme impatience ; and she was struck with a new apprehension lest her person, impaired by time and blasted by sickness, should prove disagreea- ble to her future consort. Her glass discovered to her how haggard she was become ; and when she remarked the decay of her beauty, she knew not whether she ought more to desire or apprehend the arrival of Philip. 19* 22<8 HISTORY OB* ENGLAND* At last, news was brought the queen of Philip'* arrival at Southampton. A few days after they were married at Westminster, and having made a pompous entry into Lon- don, she carried him to Windsor, the place in which they afterwards resided. The prince's behaviour was ill-cal- culated to remove the prejudices which the English nation had entertained against him. He was distant and reserved in his address ; and so entrenched himself in form and ceremony, that he was in a manner inaccessible ; but this circumstance rendered him the more acceptable to the queen, who desired to have no company but her husband'^s, and who was impatient when she met with any interrup- tion to her fondness, Mary soon found that Philip's ruling passion was am- bition ; and that the only method of gratifying him, and securing his atfections, was to render him master of Eng^ land. For the purpose of obtaining this favourite object, she summoned a new parliament, in hopes of finding them entirely compliant ; but the hatred to the Spaniards still prevailed, and the queen failed in the endeavour to get her husband declared presumptive heir to the crown. That assembly, however, was more obsequious in regard to reli- gion : it had reversed the attainder of cardinal Pole, wlio had come over invested with legatine powers from the pope ; and who, after being introduced to the king stud queen, invited the parliament to reconcile themselves and the kingdom to the apostolic see, from which they had been so long and so unhappily divided. This message was taken iii good part ; and both houses voted an address to Philip and Maiy, acknowledging that they had been guilty of a most horrible defection from the true church ; and praying their majesties to intercede with the holy father for the absolution and forgiveness of their penitent sub- jects. The request was easily granted. The legate, in the name of his holiness, gave the parliament and kingdom absolution, freed them from all censures, and received them again into the bosom of the church. The queen's extreme desire of having issue made hei fondly give credit to every appearance of pregnancy ; and "when the legate was introduced to her, she fancied that she felt the embryo stir in her womb. Great rejoicings were made on this occasion ; but the nation remained somewhat incredulous. The belief, however, of her pregnancy was upheld \Vith all possible care ; and was one artifice by which Philip endeavoured to support his authority in the kingdom. The parliament passed a law, which, in case of* the queen's demise, appointed him protector during the minority ; and the king and queen, finding that .. 1^ ' they could obtain no farther concessions, came un- expectedly to Westminster and dissolved them. The success of Gardiner in governing the parliament, and engaging them to concur both in the Spanish match, and in the re-establishment of the ancient religion, had raised his character above that of Pole, who was regarded rather as a good man than a great minister. The latter was very sincere in his religious principles, and thought that no consideration of human policy ought ever to come in competition with the catholic doctrines ; whilst Gardi- ner, on the contrary, had always made his religion sub- servient to his schemes of safety or -advancement. Yet the benevolent disposition of Pole led him to advise a tole- ration of the heretical tenets, which he highly blamed ; while the severe manners of Gardiner inclined him to sup- port by persecution that religion which in reality he re- garded with great indifference. The arguments and views of Gardiner were more agree- able to the cruel bigotry of Mary and Philip ; and the scheme of toleration was entirely rejected. It was deter- mined to let loose the laws in their full vigour against tl\e reformed religion ; and England was soon filled with scenes of horror, which have ever since rendered the catholic re- ligion the object of deserved detestation. Rogers, prebendaiy of St. Paul's, a man eminent in his party for virtue as well as for learning, was the first victim of the persecutors. This man, besides the care of his own preservation, lay under other powerful temptations to re- cant : he had a wife whom he tenderly loved, and ten chil- dren ; yet such was his serenity after his condemnation, that the jailors, it is said, waked him from a sound sleep, when the hour of his execution approached. He had de- sired to see his wife before he died ; but Gardiner told him, that he was a priest, and could not possibly have a wife ; thus adding insult to cruelty. Hooper, bishop of Gloucester, had been tried at the same time with Rogers ; but was sent to his own diocess to be executed. This circumstance w^ contiived to strike the 2*24 'Li HISTORY OP ENGLAND. greater terror into his flock ; but it was a source of conso lation to Hooper, who rejoiced in giving testimony by his death to that doctrine which he had formerly preached among them. When he was tied to the stake, a stool was 3et before him, and the queen's pardon laid upon it, which it was still in his power to merit by a recantation ; but he ordered it to be removed ; and cheerfully prepared himself for that dreadful punishment to which he was sentenced. He suffered it in its full severity : the wind which was violent, blew the flame of the reeds from his body ; the faogots were green, and did not kindle easily; all his lower parts were consumed before his vitals were attacked ; but he was heard to pray, and to exhort the people, till his tono^ue, swollen with the violence of his agony, could no longer permit him utterance. Sanders was burnt at Coventry: a pardon was also offered him ; but he rejected it, and embraced the stake, saying, " Welcome the cross of Christ ! welcome everlast- ing life !" Taylor, parson of Hadley, was punished by fire in that place, surrounded by his former friends and pa- rishioners. Philpot, archdeacon of Winchester, was con- demned to the flames, and suffered at Smithfield. The imputed crime for which almost all the protestants were condemned, was their refusal to acknowledge the doctrine of the real presence. Gardiner, who had vainly expected that a few examples would strike terror into the reformers, finding the work daily multiply upon him, devolved the invidious ofl^ice on others, chiefly on Bonner, a man of profligate manners, and of a brutal character, who seemed to rejoice in the tor- ments of the unhappy suff*erers. He sometimes whipped the prisoners with his own hands, till he was tired with the violence of the exercise : he tore out the beard of a weaver who refused to rehnquish his reli^ on ; and that he might give him a specimen of burning, he held his hand to the candle till the sinews and veins shrunk and burst. It is impossible to enumerate in this work all the cruel- ties practised in England during the three years that these persecutions lasted. Ferrar, bishop of St. David's, was burned in his own diocess. Ridley, bishop of London, and Latimer, formerly bishop of Worcester, two prelates cele- brated for learning and virtue, perished together in the same flames at Oxford, and supported each other's con MARY. 23ij stancy by their mutual exhortations. Latimer, when tied to the stake, called to his companion, " Be of good cheer, brother ; we shall this day kindle such a torch in England, as, I trust in God, shall never be extinguished." The tender sex itself, as they have commonly greater propensity to religion, produced many examples of the most inflexible courage in supporting the profession of their faith against all the persecutors. One execution in par- ticular was attended with circumstances which, even at that time, excited astonishment by reason of their unusual barbarity. A woman in Guernsey, being near the time of her labour, when brought to the stake was thrown into such agitation by the torture that her belly burst, and she was delivered in the midst of the flames. One of the guards immediately snatched the infant from the fire, and at- tempted to save it ; but a magistrate, who stood by, order- ed it to be thrown back, being determined, he said, that nothing should survive which sprang from so obstinate and heretical a parent. These barbarities, committed in the name of a religion which abjures them, excited horror in the nation, and ren- dered the Spanish government daily more odious. Philip sensible of the hatred which he incurred, ordered his con- fessor to deliver, in his presence, a sermon in favour of toleration ; but this shallow artifice failed of the desired effect, and the court threw off" the mask. An attempt was made to introduce the inquisition into England ; and a commission was appointed, by authority of the queen's prerogative, more eff*ectually to extirpate heresy ; but the court devised a more expeditious and summary method of supporting orthodoxy than even the inquisition itself. They issued a proclamation against books of heresy, trea- son, and sedition, declaring, " that whosoever had any of these books, and did not presently burn them, without reading them, or showing them to any other person, should be esteemed rebels ; and without any farther delay be executed by martial law." In the space of three years, it is computed that two hundred and seventy-seven persons were brought to the stake ; besides those who were punished by imprisonment, fines, and confiscations. Among those who suffered by fire were five bishops, twenty-onee clergymen, eight lay gentlemen, eighty-four tradesmen, one hundred husband 226 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. men, servants, and labourers, fifty-five women, and four children. The burning of heretics was a very natural method of reconciling the kingdom to the Romish communion ; and little solicitation was requisite to engage the pope to receive the strayed flock. However, Paul IV., who now filled the papal chair, insisted that the property and possessions of the church should be restored to the uttermost farthing-. This demand had little influence on the nation, but operated powerfully on the queen, who was determined, in order to ease her conscience, to restore all the church-lands which were still in the possession of the crown ; and the more to display her zeal, she erected anew some convents and monasteries, notwithstanding the low condition of the ex- chequer. When this measure was debated in council, some members objected, that if such a considerable part of the revenue were dismembered, the dignity of the crown would fall to decay ; but the queen replied, that she pre- ferred the salvation of her soul to ten such kingdoms as England. Persecution had now become extremely odious to the nation ; and the effects of the public discontent appeared in the new parliament summoned to meet at Westminster, A bill was passed, restoring to the church the tenths and first-fruits, and all the impropriations which remained in the hands of the crown ; but though this matter directly concerned none but the queen herself, great opposition was made to the bill in the house of commons. An application being made for a subsidy during two years, and for two fifteenths, the latter was refused by the commons ; and many members said, that while the crown was thus de- spoiling itself of its revenue, it was in vain to bestow riches upon it. The queen, finding the intractable humour of the commons, thought proper to dissolve the parliament; The spirit of opposition which prevailed in parliament, was the more vexatious to Mary, as Philip, tired of her importunate love and jealousy, and finding his authority extremely limited in England, had left her, and gone over to Flanders. The indifference and neglect of her husbantl, added to the disappointment in her imagined pregnancy, threw her into a deep melancholy ; and she gave vent to her spleen, by daily enforcing the persecutions against the protestants, and even by expressions of rage against all MARY. 227 her subjects, by whom she knew herself to be hated, and whose opposition, in refusing an entire conipHance witli Phihp, was the cause, she beheved, why he had ahenated his affections from her, and afforded her so httie of his company. The less return her love met with, the more it increased ; and she passed most of her time in solitude, where she gave vent to her passion, either in tears, or in writing fond epistles to Philip, who seldom returned her any answer, and^|iarcely deigned to pretend any sentiment of love, or even of" gratitude, towards her. The chief part of government to which she attended, was the extorting of money from her people, in order to satisfy his demands ; and as the parliament had granted her but a scanty sup- ply, she had recourse to expedients very violent and irre-^ gular. She levied loans and exacted contributions with the greatest rapacity ; and this at a time when she was at peace with all the world, and had no other occasion for money than to supply the demands of a husband, who at- tended only to his own convenience, and showed himself indifferent to her interests. Philip was now become master of all the wealth of the new world, and of the richest and most extensive dominions in Europe, by the voluntary resignation I'r^ of the emperor Charles V., who, though still in the vigour of his age, had taken a disgust to the world, and was determined to seek, in the tranquility of retreat, for that happiness which he had in vain pursued amidst the tumults of war, and the restless projects of ambition. Philip, finding himself threatened with a war with France, was desirous of embarking England in the quarrel ; and though the queen was extremely averse to the measure, yet she was incapable of resisting her husband's importu- nity. But she had little weight with her council, and still less with her people ; and a new act of barbarity, of which she was guilty, rendered her government extremely un- popular. Cranmer had long been detained prisoner; but the queen now determined to bring him to punishment ; and in order tne more fully to satiate her vengeance, she re- solved to punish him for heresy, ratk^er than for treason. He was cited by the pope to stand his trial at Rome ; and though he was known to be kept in close custody at Ox- ford, he was, upon his not appearing, condemned as con- 228 f HISTORY OF ENGLAND. tumacious. Bonner, bishop of London, and Thirl eby, of Ely, were sent to degra-de him ; and the former executed the melancholy ceremony with all the joy and exultation which suited his savage nature. The implacable spirit of the queen, not satisfied with the execution of that dreadful sentence to which he was condemned, prompted her to seek the ruin of his honour, and the infamy of his name. Persons were employed to attack him by flattery, insinua- tion, and address ; by representing the^gnities to which his character still entitled him, if he would merit them by a recantation ; and by giving hopes of long enjoying those powerful friends whom his beneficent disposition had at- tached to him during the course of his prosperity. Over- come by the fond love of life, and terrified by the prospect of those tortures which awaited him, he allowed, in an un- guarded hour, the sentiments of nature to prevail over his resolution, and agreed to subscribe the doctrines of the papal supremacy, and of the real presence. The court, equally perfidious and cruel, w^ere determined that his recantation should avail him nothing ; and they sent him orders that he should be required to acknowledge his errors in church before the whole people, and that he should thence be immediately carried to execution. Whe- ther Cranmer had received a secret intimation of their design, or had repented of his weakness, he surprised the audience by a contrary declaration. He said, that he was well apprized of the obedience which he owed to his sove- reign and the laws ; but this duty extended no farther than to submit patiently to their commands, and to bear, with out resistance, whatever hardships they should impose upon him ; that a superior duty, the duty which he owed to his Maker, obliged him to speak truth on all occasions, and not relinquish, by a base denial, the holy doctrine which the Supreme Being had revealed to mankind ; that there was one miscarriage in his life, of which, above all others, he severely repented — the insincere declaration oi faith to which he had the weakness to consent, and which the fear of death alone had extorted from him ; that he took this opportunity of atoning for his eiTor, by a sincere and open recantation ; and was willing to seal with his blood, that doctrine which he firmly believed to be com- municated from heaven ; and that, as his hand had erred, by betraying his heart, it should first be punished, by a se MARY. ■ -229 vere but just doom, and should first pay the forfeit of its offences. He was thence led to the stake, amidst tlie in- sults of the catholics ; and having now summoned up all the force of his mind, he bore their scorn, as well as the torture of his punishment, with singular fortitude. He stretched out his hand, and, without betraying, either by his countenance or motions, the least sign of weakness, or even of feeling, he held it in the flames till it was entirely consumed. Hi^thoughts seemed wholly occupied with reflections on his former fault, and he called aloud several times, "this hand has offended." Satisfied with that atonement, he then discovered a serenity in his counte- nance ; and when the fire attacked his body, he seemed to be quite insensible of his outvi^ard sufferings, and by the force of hope and resolution, to have collected his mind altogether within itself, and to repel the fury of the flames. It IS pretended, that after his body was consumed, his heait was found entire and untouched amidst the ashes ; an event which, as it was the emblem of his constancy, was fondly believed by the zealous protestants. Cranmer was undoubtedly a man of great merit. He was adorned with candour, sincerity, and beneficence, and all those virtues which were fitted to render him useful and amiable in society. His moral qualities procured him universal respect ; and his learning and capacity entitled him to the esteem of mankind. After Cranmer's death, cardinal Pole was installed in the see of Canterbury, and placed at the head of the church of England ; but, though he was averse to all san- guinary methods of converting heretics, his authority was too weak to oppose the barbarous and bigotted disposition of the queen and her counsellors. In order to engage the nation in the war between France and Spain, Philip had come to London ; and he told the queen, that if he were not gratified in this request, he Vv^ould never more set foot in England. After employing menaces iVr-C and artifices, Mary's importunity prevailed ; war was declared against France ; and preparations were made for invading that kingdom. The revenue of England at that time little exceeded three hundred thousand pounds ; and in order to support the war, the queen levied money by the most arbitrary and violent methods. She oblia^ed the city of London to sup- 20 230 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. ply her with sixty thousand pounds on her husband's en try ; she levied, before tlie legal time, the second year's subsidy voted by parliament ; she issued &.new many privy- seals, by which she procured loans from the people ; and having equipped a fleet, which she could not victual, by reason of tlie dearness of provisions, she seized ail the corn she could find in Suffolk and Norfolk, without paying any price to the owners. By all these expedients, assisted by the power of pressing, she levied an ipay of ten thou sand men, which she sent over to the Low Countries, un der the command of the earl of Pembroke. Meanwhile, in order to prevent any disturbance at home, many of the most considerable gentry were thrown into the tower; and, lest they should be known, they either were carried thither in the night time, or were hood- winked and muffled by the guards who conducted them. The king of Spain's army, after the junction of the English, amounted to sixty thousand men ; and the duke of Savoy, who commanded it, suddenly invested St. Quen- tin. The constable, Montmorency, approached the place with his whole army ; but being attacked by the besiegers, he was totally defeated and made prisoner. By this event, the whole kingdom of France was thrown into consterna- tion ; but the cautious temper of Philip allowed the French time to recover their spirits, and no other enterprise of moment followed this decisive victory. Calais, which the English had held above two hundred years, was unexpectedly invested, and attacked by ^'c-Fq the duke of Guise, who in eight days, during the depth of winter, made himself master of this strong fortress, though it had cost Edward III. a siege of eleven months, at the head of a numerous army, which had that very year been victorious in the battle of Cressy. The loss of this valuable fortress occasioned loud murmurs among the English, who complained of the improvidence of the queen and her council. The Scots, excited by the French, began to infest the borders ; and the English were obhged to look to their defence at home, rather than think of foreign conquests. In order to connect Scotland more closely with France, and to increase the influence of the latter kingdom, it was thought proper by Henry to celebrate the marriage be- tween the young queen and the dauphin ; and a deputa MARY. 231 tion was sent by the Scottish parhament to assist at the ceremony, and to settle the terms of the contract. This close alUance between France and Scotland tbi'eat- ened very nearly the repose and security of Mary ; and it was foreseen, that though the factions and disorders which might naturally be expected in the Scottish government, during the absence of the sovereign, would make its power less formidable,. that kingdom would at least afford to the French a means of invading England. The queen, there- fore, found it necessary to summon a parliament, and to demand of them some supplies to her exhausted exche- quer. The commons, without making any reflections on the past exactions and extortions, voted, besides a fifteenth, a subsidy of four shillings in the pound on land, and two shillings and eight pence on goods. The parliament also passed an act, confirming all tlie sales and grants of crown- lands, which either were already made by the queen, or should be made during the seven ensuing years. During this whole reign, the nation were under great apprehensions with regard not only to the succession, but the life of the lady Ehzabeth. The violent hatred which the queen bore to her appeared on every occasion ; and it required all the prudence of that princess to prevent the eftects of Mary's jealous disposition. Being asked her opinion of the real presence, the net for catching the pro- testants, she is said to have replied as follows : " Christ was the word that spake it, He took the bread and brake it; And what the word did make it, That I believe and take it." The money granted by parliament enabled the queen to fit out a fleet of a hundred and forty sail, which being joined by thirty Flemish ships, and carrying six thousand land forces on board, was sent to make an attempt on the coast of Brittany. Negotiations for peace were entered into between the kings of France and Spain ; and the ar- mies in Picardy were put into winter quarters till the princes should come to some agreement. Among other conditions, Henry demanded the restitution of Navarre to its lawful owner ; Philip, that of Calais and its territory to England ; but in the midst of these negotiations, news arrived of Mary's death. She had long been in a decli- 232 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. ning state of health ; and the loss of Calais, and tht /_-o absence of her husband, brought on a lingering fever, of which she died, after a short and inglo- rious reign of five years, four months, and eleven days. Mary possessed few qualities either estimable or amia- ble ; and her person was as little engaging as her beha- viour and address. Obstinacy, bigotry, violence, cruelty, malignity, revenge, and tyranny, the fruits of bad temper, and a narrow understanding, attach to her character ; and amidst this ccmplication of vices, we can find no other virtue than that of sincerity. Under her reign, the naval power of England was so inconsiderable, that fourteen thousand pounds bemg or- dered to the repairing and victualling of the fleet, it was computed that ten thousand pounds a year would after- wards answer all necessary charges. CHAP. XII. The reign of Elizabeth. Elizabeth had displayed great prudence during the reign of her sister ; and as men were sensible of the im- minent danger to which she was exposed, compassion to- wards her situation, and concern for her safety, had ren- dered her the favourite of the nation. A parliament had been assembled a few days before Mary's death ; \'t^o and when that event was notified to them, scarcely an interval of regret appeared ; the two houses immediately resounded with the joyful acclamations of " God save queen Elizabeth ; long and happily may she reign !" The people, less actuated by faction, expressed a joy still more general and sincere. With a prudence and magnanimity truly laudable, Ehzabeth buried all ofteiices in oblivion ; but when the bishops came to make obei- sance to her, she turned away from Bonner, as from a man polluted with blood. In notifying her accession to Philip, she expressed to him her gratitude for the protection which he had afforded lier ; and that monarch, hoping by the means of Elizabeth to obtain that dominion over England of which he had failed in espousing Mary, made her proposals 6f marriage. To these, however, she returned an obliging, but evasive answer. ELIZABETH. 233 The education and conviction of Elizabeth determined her to pursue the measures of the reformation ; and she frequently dehberated with sir Wilham Cecil on the means of restoring the protestant religion ; but she resolved to proceed with cautious steps, and not to imitate the exam- ple of Mary, in encouraging a violent invasion on the es- tablished religion. She recalled those who had fled ; she set at liberty those who had been confined on account of religion ; she ordered a great part of the service to be read in English ; and after enjoining all the churches to conform to the }3ractice of her own chapel, she forbade the host to be any more elevated in her presence. By her aftalility and address she gained the afl^ections of her sub- jects ; and she delayed the entire change of religion till the meeting of the parliament, which was summoned to assemble. The elections had gone entirely against the catholics ; and the houses met in a disposition to gratify the queen. They began the session with an unanimous declaration, that " queen Elizabeth was, and ought to be, as well by the word of God, as the common and statute laws of the realm, the lawful, undoubted, and true heir to the crown, lawfully descended from the blood-royal, according to the order of succession settled in the thirty-fifth of Henry VIII." This act of recognition was probably dictated by the queen herself and her minister ; and she did not follow the example of Mary, in declaring the validity of her mother's marriage, or in expressly repealing the act for- merly fiassed against her own legitimacy. The first bill brought into parliament was for suppress- ing; the monasteries lately erected, and for restoring the tenths and first-fruits to the queen. This point being gif^ined, a bill was next passed, annexing the supremacy to the crown, which was vested with the whole spiritual power ; and whoever denied, or refused to acknowledge the queen's supremacy, was subjected to certain pains and penalties. A law was passed confirming all the statutes enacted in king Edward's time with regard to religion. A solemn and public disputation was held during this session, between the divines of the protestant and those of the catholic communion, in which, it may be easily imagined, the champions of the former were entirely trium- phant. Emboldened by this victory, the protestants ven- 234 ^ f f' HISTORY OP ENGLAND. tured on bringing a bill into parliament for abolishing the mass, and re-establishing the liturgy of king Edward. Thus, in one session, without any violence or tumult, the whole system of religion was changed, and placed on another foundation. The commons also voted the queen a liberal subsidy ; but when, in an importunate address, they besought her to fix her choice of a husband, she rejected the proposal, and observed, that England was her husband, and the people her children. She added, that she desired no higher cha- racter than to have it inscribed on her tombstone, " Here lies Elizabeth, who lived and died a maiden queen." While the queen and parliament were employed in set- tling the national religion, negotiations for peace were carried on between the ministers of France, Spain, and England. Philip employed his utmost efforts to procure a restitution of Calais to England. So long as he enter- tained hopes of espou>sing the queen, he delayed to con- clude a peace with Henry ; and he seemed willing to con- tinue the vt^ar till she should obtain satisfaction. But Eli- zabeth, sensible of the low state of her finances, ordered her ambassadors to conclude a peace with Henry on any reasonable terms. It was agreed, that Henry should re- store Calais at the expiration of eight years ; but it was evident, that this was only a colourable pretence for aban- doning that fortress. A peace with Scotland was a ne- cessary consequence of that with France. But though peace was concluded between France and England, there soon appeared serious grounds for mis- understanding. The king of France ordered his son and daughter-in-la^ to quarter the arms of England on all their equipages and liveries ; and as the queen of Scots was next heir to that throne, Elizabeth plainly saw, that the king of France intended, on the first opportunity, to dispute her legitimacy, and her title to the crown. Soon after, Francis 11. succeeded to the throne of France, and still continuing to assume without reserve the title of king of England, she began to consider him and his queen as her mortal enemies ; and the jealousy thus excited against the queen of Scots terminated only with the life of the un- fortunate Mary. The present situation of affairs in Scotland afforded Elizabeth a favourable opportunity both of revenging the ELIZABETH. 235 injury, and providing- for her own safety. Popeiy was stili the rehgion of the state in that country ; but the English preachers, who took shelter in Scotland, on the accession of Mary to the throne of England, had filled the whole kingdom with horror at the cruelties of the catho- lics ; and by their means, the reformation in that country had acquired additional strength, and even threatened the established religion. About this critical time, when the queen-regent, agree- able to the orders received from France, had been pro- ceeding with rigour against the protestants, John Knox arrived from Geneva, where he had imbibed, from his commerce with Calvin, the highest fanaticism of his sect, augmented by the natural ferocity of his own character. He had been invited back to Scotland by the leaders of the reformation ; and mounting the pulpit at Perth, during the present ferment of men's minds, he declaimed against the idolatry and other abominations of the church of Rome, and incited his audience to exert themselves for its sub- version. A tumult immediately succeeded ; and, in a short time, a civil war raged through the whole kingdom. The leaders of the reformers, who had assumed the title of the congregation, solicited succours from Eliza- beth ; and the wise council of the queen did not long deliberate in agreeing to this request. She equipped a fleet, which consisted of thirteen ships of war ; and she assembled at Berwick an army of eight thousand men, under the command of lord Gray, warden of the east and middle marches. The court of France, sensible of the danger, offered the immediate restitution of Calais, pro- vided she would not interfere in the affairs of Scotland ; but she resolutely rephed, that she would never put an in- considerable fishing-town in competition with the safety of her dominions. Accordingly, she concluded a treaty of mutual defence with the congregation, and receiving from the Scots six hostages for the performance of articles, she ordered her fleet and army to begin their operations. The appearance of the English soon decided the fate of the contest: and a treaty was speedily concluded, in which it was stipulated that the French should im- mediately evacuate Scotland, and that an amnesty ^'c-^A should be granted for all past offences. Soon after, the parliament abolished the papal jurisdiction in 936 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Scotland, and established the presbyterian form of disci- pline, though Mary refused to sanction their statutes. Francis IV. died soon after, and Mary, finding her abode in France disagreeable, began to think of returning to her native country ; and she applied to Elizabeth for a safe conduct, in case she should be obliged to pass through England ; but she received for answer, that till she had ratified the treaty of Edinburgh, she could expect no favour from a person whom she had so much injured. To this Mary replied with indignation, " With God's permission, I can return to Scotland without her leave ;" and embark- ing at Calais, she passed the English fleet in a fog, and arrived safe at Leith. Though a widow, yet she was only in her nineteenth year ; and by her beauty, and the polite- ness of her manners, she was well qualified to gain the affections of her subjects, who rejoiced at her arrival among them. Her first measures were calculated to establish order in a country divided by public factions and private feuds ; but there was one circumstance which bereaved Mary of the general favour that her agreeable manners and judicious deportment entitled her to expect. She was still a papist ; and this exposed the helpless queen to un- merited contumely, which she bore with benignity and pa- tience. In particular, John Knox, who possessed an un- controlled authority in the church, and even in the civil affairs of the nation, triumphed in the contumelious abuse of his sovereign, whom he usually denominated Jezebel. The queen of Scots, destitute of the means of resistance, and pressed by a turbulent nobility and a bigoted people, found that her only expedient for maintaining tranquility was the preservation of a friendly connection with Eliza- beth. Secretary Lidington was, therefore, sent to Lon- don, to pay her compliments to the queen, and express her desire of friendship and a good correspondence ; and both sovereigns assumed the appearance of a cordial recon- ciliation and friendship with each other. Elizabeth, finding that Mary was sufficiently depressed by the mutinous spirit of her subjects, employed herself in regulating the affairs of her own kingdom. She fur- nished the arsenals w^ith arms, fortified the frontiers, pro- moted trade and navigation, and by building vessels of force herself, and suggesting the same to the merchants, ELIZABETH. 237 she acquired to herself the titles of the restorer of naval glory, and tlie queen of the northern seas. Tliough EHzabeth kept aloof from marriage, yet she was not only very averse to appoint any successor to the crown, but was resolved, as much as was in her power, that no one, who could pretend to the succession, should have any heirs or successors. The lady Catherine Gray, younger sister to lady Jane, having privately married the earl of Hertford, and proving pregnant, they were both committed to the tower. As Hertford could not prove their nuptials within the time limited, the issue was de- clared illegitimate ; and the earl was confined for nine years, till the death of his wife, by freeing the queen from all apprehension of heirs and claimants from that quarter, procured him his liberty. At this time, the two great rival powers of Europe were Spain and England. The bigotry and intolerant spirit of Philip placed him at the head of the catholic party; while Elizabeth, from her religious opinions, and iV^o the conduct which she pursued, was considered as the bulwark and support of the protestants. The civil and religious contests by which France was divided, rendered that country an object of vigilance both to Philip and Eli- zabeth : the former supported the established government and religion ; while the latter lent her aid in protecting the Hugonots, or protestant party, which had taken arms under the prince of Conde. Three thousand English took possession of Havre and Dieppe ; but the latter place was so little capable of defence, that it was immediately aban- doned. The siege of Rouen was already formed by the catholics ; and though the English troops in it behaved with great gallantry, the place was taken by assault, and the whole garrison put to the sword. It was expected that the French catholics would imme- diately have formed the siege of Havre ; but the intestine divisions of the kingdom diverted their attention to another object. By the influence of Elizabeth, a considerable body of protestants had been levied in Germany ; and the Hugonots were enabled to take field against their enemies. A famous battle was fought at Dreux ; and in this action, Conde and Montmorency, the commanders of the opposite armies, by a singular fatality, fell into the hands of their enemies. The appearances of victory remained with Guise ; but the admiral Coligni, collecting the remaij^a of the army, 238 HISTORY OF ENGLAND and inspiring every breast with his own invincible courage, subdued some considerable places in Normandy. The expenses incurred by assisting the Hugonots had emptied the queen's exchequer, and obliged her to call a parliament. As the life of Elizabeth had been en- , V^o dangered by the small-pox, a little before the meet- ing of that assembly, the commons, on the opening of the session, again entreated the queen to choose a hus- band, whom they promised faithfully to serve ; or, if she entertained any reluctance to the married state, they de- sired that the lawful successor might be appointed by an act of parliament. This subject was very little agreeable to the queen, who, considering the inconveniences likely to arise from de- claring in favour either of the queen of Scots or the house of Suffolk, determined to keep both parties in awe by maintaining an ambiguous conduct. She gave, therefore, an evasive answer to the commons, whom she told, that she had fixed no absolute resolution against marriage ; that the difficulties attending the question of the succession were so great, that, for the sake of her people, she would be contented to remain some time longer in this vale of misery ; and that she could not die with satisfaction, till she had laid some solid foundation for their future security. In the mean time, the duke of Guise had been assassi- nated before Orleans, and Conde and Montmorency had come to an agreement, that a toleration should be granted anew to the protestants. The interests of England were disregarded in the treaty ; and Havre, which had been some time in possession of the English, was obliged to ca- pitulate to the arms of France. Elizabeth, whose usual vigour and foresight do not appear in this transaction, was now glad to compound matters, by agreeing that the hos- tages which the French had previously given for the resti- tution of Calais, should be restored on the payment of two hundred and twenty thousand crowns, and that both sides should retain all their claims and pretensions. The peace with Scotland still continued ; and even a cordial friendship seemed to have been cemented between Elizabeth and Maiy. She always told the queen of Scots^ that nothing would satisfy her but her espousing some Eng- lish nobleman, which would remove all grounds of jealousy and misunderstanding between them. At last, she named ELIZABETH. 239 lord Robert Dudley, now created earl of Leicester, as the person on whom she desired that Mary's choice should fall. Leicester, the great and powerful favourite of Elizabeth, possessed all those exterior qualities which are naturally alluring to the fair sex ; and, by means of these accom- plishments, he was able to blind the sagacious Elizabeth, and to conceal from her the great defects which marked his character. He was proud, insolent, and ambitious, without honour or principle. The constant and declared attachment of Elizabeth to him, had embaldened him to aspire to her bed ; and the proposal of espousing Mary was by no means agreeable to him. Indeed, it is proba- ble, that the queen had no serious intentions of effecting this marriage, and that her design was merely to gain time, and elude the project of any other alliance ; for when Mary, in the hopes of being declared successor to the crown, seemed to listen to the proposal, Elizabeth receded from her offers, and withdrew the bait which she had thrown out to her rival. After two years spent in evasions and artifices, Mary married lord Darnley, son to the earl of Lenox, her cousin- german, by the lady Margaret Douglas, niece to Henry VIII. ; and as he was, afVr his spouse, next heir to the crown of England, this marriage seemed to strengthen and unite both their claims. Elizabeth was secretly not displeased with this marriage, though she would rather have wished that Mary had re- mained single; yet she menaced, protested, and complain- ed, as if she had suffered the most grievous injury. It served her as a pretence for refusing to acknowledge Ma- ry's title to the succession of England, and for encouraging the discontents of the Scottish nobility and clergy, to whom she promised support in their rebellious enterprises. Maiy, however, was no sooner informed of the designs forming against her by the duke of Chatelrault, the earls of Murray, Argyle, Rothes, and Glencairn, and some others, than she assembled her forces, and olaliged those rebel noblemen to leave their country, and take shelter in England. Ehzabeth, when she found the event so much to disap- point her expectations, disavowed all connexion with the Scottish malcontents, and even drove them from her pre- sence. The banished lords had now recourse to the cle- 240 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. mency of their own sovereign ; and Mary seemed inclined to restore them to favour ; but her uncle, the cardinal of Jjorraine, to whose opinion she always paid the greatest deference, advised her by no means to pardon the protes- tant leaders. The cardinal of Lorraine had been a chief instrument in forming; an association between Philip and Catharine of Medicis, for the extermination of the protestants ; and he took care that the measures of the queen of Scots should correspond with the violent councils embraced by the other critliolic princes. A parliament was summoned at Edin- burgh for attainting the banished lords, who were saved from the rigour of the law only by the ruin of Mary herself. The marriage of the queen of Scots with lord Darnley was so precipitate, that while she was allured by his youth and beauty, and exterior accomplishments, she had not observed that the qualities of his mind by no means cor- responded with the excellence of his person. He was vio- lent, insolent, and ungrateful ; addicted to low pleasures, and incapable of the sentiments of love and domestic en- dearment. The queen of Scots, in the first effusions of her fondness, had granted him the title of king, and had joined his name with her own in all public acts ; but ob- serving his weakness and vices, she began to see the dan- ger of her profuse liberality ; and the young prince, en- raged at her imaginaiy neglects, pointed his vengeance against every one whom he deemed the cause of this change in her measures and behaviour. There happened to be in the court one David Rizzio, a Piedmontese musician, of m.ean birth, who, by his profes- sional talents, and the arts of address, had insinuated him- self into the favour of Mary. He became her secretary for French despatches ; he was consulted on all occa- sions ; favours of honour or emolument could be obtained only through his intercession ; and his insolence and ra- paciiy drew on himself the hatred of the nobility and of the whole kingdom. On the change of the queen's sentiments, it was easy for Darnley's friends to persuade him that Rizzio was the real author of her indifference, and even to excite in his mind jealousies of a more dangerous nature ; and the king, by the advice of several of the courtiers, determined on the assassination of Rizzio. Maiy, in the sixtli month of hel* pregnancy, was supping in private with the countess of Argyle, Rizzio, and others of her servants, when the king entered the room by a private passage, and stood at the back of Mary's chair. Lord Ruthven, George Doug- las, and other conspirators, rushed in after him ; and Riz- zio, aware of the danger, ran behind his mistress for pro- tection ; but in spite of her cries, and menaces, and en- treaties, Douglas struck a dagger into the body of Rizzio, who was then dragged into the anti-chamber, and des patched with fifty-six wounds. The unhappy queen, in formed of his fate, immediately dried up her tears, -^nd said she would weep no more, but think of revenge. The conspirators applied to the earl of Bothwell, a new favourite, and that nobleman pacified Mary ; but she was implacable against her husband, whom she rendered the object of universal contempt. He was permitted, howe- ver, to have apartments in the castle of Edinburgh, where IVlary was delivered of a son ; and sir James Melvil was sent with the intelligence of this happy event to England. Melvil tells us, that Elizabeth had given a ball to her court at Greenwich the evening of his arrival in London, and was displaying all her usual spirit and gayety ; but when news arrived of the prince of Scotland's birth, all her joy was damped, and she complained to some of her atten- dants, that the queen of Scots was mother of a son, while she was only a barren stock. The bii'th of a son gave additional zeal to Mary's par- tisans in England, where her conduct also procured her universal esteem ; but these flattering prospects were sud- denly blasted by her egregious indiscretion at least, or, as some are still inclined to suppose, by her atrocious guilt. The earl of Bothwell was a man of considerable power in Scotland, but of profligate manners. He had acquired the favour and entire confidence of Mary ; and reports were spread of too great an intimacy between them, though Bothwell was a married man. These reports gained ground from the increased hatred of the queen towards her hus- band, who, sensible of the neglects which he underwent, had it in contemplation to retire into France or Spain. While affairs were in this unpleasant situation, Darnley was seized with an illness of an extraordinary nature ; and the queen visiting him during his sickness, treated him with great tenderness, and a cordial reconciliation seemed 21 242 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. to have been brought about between them. The king* naturally uxorious, put himself implicitly into her liands ; and as the concourse of people about the court might dis- turb him in his infirm state of health, Mary assigned him a lodging in a solitary house, called the Kirk of Field. In this situation, the queen gave him marks of kindness and attention, and lay some nights in a room below his ; but, on the 9th of February, she told him, that she would pass that night in the palace, because the marriage of one of her seiTants was there to be celebrated in her presence. About two o'clock in the morning, the whole city of Edin- burgh was alarmed by a great noise ; and it was discover- ed, that the house in which the king lay had been blown up by gunpowder, and that his dead body had been carried by the violence of the explosion into a neighbouring field. The general opinion was, that Bothwell was the author of this horrible crime ; and the earl of Lenox, Darnley's fcither, implored speedy justice against him and the other assassins. Mary allowed only fifteen days for the exami- nation of this important afikir; and as Bothwell still pos- sessed the confidence of the queen, and enjoyed his former authority, Lenox entertained just apprehensions from the power, insolence, and temerity of his enemy. As, there- fore, neither accuser nor witness appeared at the trial, Bothwell was absolved from the king's murder ; but the verdict in his favour was attended with circumstances which strongly confirmed the general opinion of his guilt. Mary, having gone to visit her son at Stirling, was seized by Bothwell, and ostensibly carried off against her will, with the avowed design of forcing her to yield to his pur- pose. Some of the nobility sent the queen a private mes- sage, that if she lay under force, they would use all their eftbrts to rescue her ; but the queen professed herself satis- fied with Bothwell's conduct, and granted him a pardon for the violence committed on her person, and for all other crimes. Soon after this infamous transaction, Bothwell obtained a divorce from his wife ; and Mary, with indecent precipi- tation, raised him to her bed and to her throne. Elizabeth remonstrated, by friendly letters and messages, against the marriage ; the court of France did the same ; but Mary paid no regard to the advice she received, and seemed to scorn the united censures of Europe. ELIZABETH. 243 At length the spirit of the nation was roused ; and lord Hume, with a body of eight hundred hors^e, suddenly en- i^ironed the queen of Scots and Both well in the castle of Bothwick. They found means, however, of making their escape ; but Mary was obliged to put herself into the hands of the confederates. She was conducted to Edinburgh, amidst the insults of the populace, who reproached her for her crimes, and who held before her eyes, v/hich way so- ever she turned, a banner, on which were painted the mur- der of her husband and the distress of her infant son. Bothwell, meanwhile, found means to reach the Orkneys, whence he escaped to Denmark, where he was thrown in- to prison, and losing his senses, died about ten years after, in extreme misery. Mary was sent under a guard to the castle of Lochleven, where the associated lords refused Throgmorton, the Eng- lish ambassador, all access to her ; and various schemes were proposed for the treatment of the captive queen. In the mean time, the earl of Murray was appointed regent, and Mary signed a deed, by which she resigned the crown in favour of her son. In consequence of this forced re- nunciation, the young prince was proclaimed king, by the name of James VI. ; and he was soon after crowned at Stirling, where the earl of Morton took the coro- nation oath in his name. Maiy, however, found ^V^ means to escape from Lochleven: and being joined by many of the nobility, an army of six thousand men was assembled, in a few days, under her standard. The regent instantly took the field against her ; and, coming to an en- gagement at Langside, near Glasgow, the queen's forces were entirely defeated. The unhappy Mary fled from the field of battle, with a few adherents, to the borders of England ; and rashly con- fiding to some late specious professions of Elizabeth, she embarked on board a fishing boat in Galloway, and landed the same day at Workington, in Cumberland ; whence she immediately despatched a messenger to London, to notify her arrival, to request leave to visit EUzabeth, and to crave her protection. Elizabeth, seeing her rival thus in her power, attended '•ather to the dictates of policy than generosity. She sent lord Scrope and sir Francis Knollis to inform her, that her request of being allowed to visit their sovereign could not 244 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. be complied with, till she had cleared herself of her hus- band's murder. On receiving this intelligence, Mary burst into tears ; and the necessity of her situation extorted from her a declaration, that she would submit her cause to the arbitration of her. sister of England. The regent of Scot- land, too, professed his readiness to abide by the determi- nation of Elizabeth. Mary was removed to Bolton, in Yorkshire, and placed under the care of lord Scrope ; and the issue of this affair was regarded as an object of the greatest moment to the interests and security of Elizabeth. Commissioners were appointed on the part of England, of Mary, and of the regent, representing the king and kingdom of Scotland, and met at York, where this grand inquiry commenced. Under pretext, however, that the distance from her person retarded the proceedings of the commissioners, Elizabeth removed the conferences to Hampton-court. When Murray, the regent, was called upon for proofs of his charge against Mary, he produced before the com- missioners some love-letters and sonnets, and a promise of marriage to Bothwell, before his trial and acquittal, all written in the hand of the queen of Scots. These were incontestible evidences of her imprudence, and of her cri- minal correspondence with Bothwell, however they may be considered in regard to her consent to the murder ol her husband ; but as Mary had instructed her commis- sioners not to make a defence, if any thing were advanced that touched her honour, as she was a sovereign princess, and could not be subject to a foreign tribunal, though she professed her readiness to justify her innocence to Eliza- beth in person, the conferences terminated, and no deci- sion was given. The queen of Scots was now removed from Bolton to Tutbury, in Staffordshire, and put under the ^;are of the earl of Shrewsbury. Elizabeth entertained hopes, that she would either resign the crown, or associate her son with her in the government, and leave the administration in the hands of Murray during her son's minority ; but the high spirited Mary declared, that her last words should be those of a queen of Scotland ; and she insisted either that Elizabeth should assist her in recovering her authority, or give her liberty to retire into France. Elizabeth, how- ELIZABETH, 245 ever, refused both these proposals, and determined to de- tain her still a captive. The duke of Norfolk, the only peer that enjoyed the highest title of nobility, and the most powerful subject in England, was at this time a widower ; and his marriage with the queen of Scots appeared desirable to several of his friends and those of that princess. The scheme was made known to Norfolk, who, afraid of disclosing his in- tentions to Elizabeth, endeavoured to increase his interest in the kingdom, by engaging the nobility to favour the measure. Mary was applied to on the subject, and re- turned a favourable answer. The kings of France and Spain were secretly consulted, and expressed their appro- bation of the measure ; and though Elizabeth's consent was always held out as a previous condition of finishing this alliance, it was apparently the duke's intention to render his party too formidable to be resisted. Elizabeth was not entirely unacquainted with the plan, and even intimated to the duke the necessity of caution ; but he wanted either prudence or courage to make known to her his full intentions ; and when the court of England received certain information of this dangerous combina- tion, the alarm became extreme. Norfolk and many of his friends were arrested ; and the queen of Scots was removed to Coventry, and all access to her, for a time, was more strictly prohibited. The conspirators, among whom were the earls of Nor- thumberland and Westmoreland, appealed to arms ; and about four thousand foot and sixteen hundred horse took the field, and expected the concurrence of all the catholics in England. The duke of Norfolk, however, not only dis- countenanced these proceedings, but employed all his in- terest to suppress the rebellion ; which being effected in a short time, the queen was so well pleased with his beha- viour, that she released him from the tower, and only ex- acted a promise from him, not to proceed any farther in his negotiations with the queen of Scots. After an interval of five years, a new parliament was as- sembled, in which appeared the dawn of spirit and liberty among the English. The puritans agitated several ques- tions respecting religion ; and Strickland, a member of the house of commons, moved a bill for the amendment of 21* 246 HISTORY or bnglanb. the liturgy* This was highly resented by the queen, who was, if possible, still more jealous of what regarded reli- gion, than of matters of state. She summoned Strickland before the council, and prohibited him from appearing in the house of commons ; but finding that her conduct was likely to excite a great ferment, she sent him permission to give his attendance in parliament. Elizabeth, however, would not allow the parliament to discuss any matters of state, and still less to meddle with the church. For a long period, the chief business for which parliament was as- sembled was, to grant subsidies, to attaint and punish the obnoxious nobility, and to countenance such great efforts of power as might be deemed somewhat exceptionable, when they proceeded entirely from the sovereign. The queen J as she was determined to yield none of her power, was very cautious in asking the parliament for any supply. She endeavoured, by a rigid frugality, to make her ordi- nary revenues suffice for the necessities of the crown ; or she employed her prerogative, and procured money by the granting of patents and monopolies, or by some such ruinous expedient. The bigotry of Philip, and the inhuman severity of his representative, the duke of Alva, had filled the Low Coun- tries with confiscation, imprisonment, exile, and death. Elizabeth gave protection to all the Flemings who took shelter in her dominions, and reaped the advantage of in- troducing: into Eng-land some useful manufactures which were before unknown. Alva, whose measures were ever violent, -entered into a scheme with the Spanish ambassa- dor, and one Rodolphi, a Florentine merchant, for uniting the catholics and Mary queen of Scots in a confederacy against Elizabeth. The duke of Norfolk, despairing of the confidence and favour of Elizabeth, was tempted to violate his word, and to open anew his correspondence with the captive queen. A promise of marriage was re- newed between them ; and the duke gave his consent to enterprises still more criminal. The new conspiracy had hitherto escaped the vigilance ')f Elizabeth, and of Cecil, now lord Burleigh ; but one of the duke's servants betrayed his master ; and the evidence of the bishop of Ross proved the guilt of Norfolk beyond all doubt. A jury of twentv-five peers passed sentence ELIZABETH. 247 upon him ; but the queen hesitated to put the sen- tence in execution. At length, after a delay of four ^ V^^ months, the fatal warrant was signed ; and Nor- folk died, acknowledging the justice of his sentence. The queen of Scots was charged by Elizabeth as the cause of these disturbances ; and though Mary endeav^our- ed to justify herself, the queen was little satisfied with her apology, and the parliament applied for her immediate trial ; but Elizabeth forbade them to proceed farther in the affair, and only increased the rigour and strictness of her confinement. The same views which engaged the queen to support the Hugonots in France, would have led her to assist the dis- tressed protestants in the Low Countries ; but the mighty power of Philip kept her in awe, and obliged her to deny the Flemish exiles an entrance into her dominions. The people, however, enraged by the cruelty, oppression, and persecution under which they suffered, flew to arms. Holland and Zealand revolted ; and under the auspices of the prince of Orange, the whole Batavian provinces united in a league against the tyranny of Spain. By a solemn embassy, the Flemings offered Elizabeth the sovereignty of these provinces, if she would exert her power in their defence ; but as she was never ambitious of conquests, or of new acquisitions, she declined the proffered sovereignty. The queen, however, sent the revolters a sum of money, and concluded a treaty with them, in which she stipulated to assist them with five thousand foot, and a thousand horse, at the charge of the Flemings. It was farther agreed, that the new States, as they began to call themselves, should enter into no alliance without her consent, and if any dis- cord should arise among them, it was to be referred to her arbitration. She was desirous of making the king of Spain believe that her sole motive for entering into a treaty with the States, was to prevent them from throwing themselves into the arms of France ; and Philip dissembled his resent- ment against the queen, and waited for an opportunity of taking his revenge. Elizabeth was extremely anxious to support an interest in Scotland, because that country alone afforded her ene- mies the means of attacking her, and because she was sen- sible that the Guises had engaged Mary to have recourse to the powerful protection of Philip, That prince, under 248 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. the name of the pope, sent a body of seven hundred Spa- niards and Italians into Ireland ; but they were soon obhged to surrender ; and when the Enghsh ambassador complain- ed of the invasion, he was answered by similar complaints of the piracies committed by Drake in the new World. This brave officer, setting sail from Plymouth in 1577, with four ships and a pinnace, on board of which were one hundred and sixty-four men, passed the Straits of Magel- lan, attacked the Spaniards in South America, and cap- tured many rich prizes. He was the first Englishman that completed the circumnavigation of the globe ; and he returned safely to his native country, after a voyage of more than three years. In order to avert the resentment of Spain, the queen was persuaded to disavow the enterprise ; bat she ^'"oA determined to countenance this gallant officer, on whom she conferred the honour of knighthood, and accepted of a banquet at Greenwich, on board the shi]» which had performed such a memorable voyage. The duke of Alen^on, now created duke of Anjou, nearly Iwenty^five years younger than the queen, became a suitor of Elizabeth. He came over to England in order to pro- secute his suit ; and the reception which he met with made him expect complete success. On the anniversary of her coronation, the queen was observed to take a ring from her own finger, and put it upon his : and all the specta- tors concluded, that in this ceremony, she had given him a promise of marriage, and was even desirous of signify- ing her intentions to all the world. Reflections, however, on the probable consequences of this marriage, filled the mind of the queen with anxiety and irresolution ; but, at length, prudence and ambition prevailed over her ajffec- tions ; and she dismissed the duke with some apologies. He expressed great disgust on his leaving her, and uttered many curses on the mutability of women and of islanders. The affairs of Scotland again strongly engaged the at- tention of the queen. A conspiracy of the discontented nobles was formed, probably with the concurrence 1 kft2 ^^ Elizabeth, for seizing the person of James at Ruthven, a seat belonging to the earl of Gowry, one of the conspirators. The king wept when he found him- self a prisoner ; but the master of Glamis said, " No mat- ter for his tears : it is better that boys weep than bearded ELIZABETH. 249 men." This expression James never forgave ; but he ac- quiesced in his own detention, and agreed to summon both an assembly of the church, and a convention of the estates, in order to ratify that enterprise. The queen of Scots had often made overtures to EHza- beth, which had been entirely neglected ; but hearing of James's confinement, she wrote in the most pathetic man- ner to th© queen, entreating her to raise them both from their present melancholy situation, and reinstate them in that liberty and authority to which they were entitled. This humble application produced little effect, though some os- tensible steps were taken ; but James, impatient of re- straint, escaped from his keepers, and fleeing to St. An- drews, summoned his friends and partisans to attend him. The opposite party found themselves unable to resist, and were offered a pardon on their submission. Some of them accepted the terms ; but the greater part left the country, and took shelter in Ireland or England, where they were Drotected by Elizabeth. The queen sent Walsingham into Scotland, on purpose to penetrate the character of .Tames ; and as James excel- led in general discourse and conversation, that minister conceived a higher opinion of his talents than he really de- served ; and from the favourable report of his capacity, Elizabeth was inclined to treat the young king with more respect than she had hitherto done. The revolutions in Scotland, however, would have been little regarded, had not the zeal of the catholics daily threatened her with some dangerous insurrection. Many of the plots which had been discovered, were imputed to the intrigues of Mary ; and the parliament passed a resolution " to defend the queen, to revenge her death, or any injury committed against her, and to exclude from the throne all claimants, what title soever they might possess, by whose suggestion, or for whose behoof, any violence should be offered to her majesty." The queen of Scots was sensible that this was intended against her ; and to remove all suspicion from herself, she desired leave to subscribe this resolution. During the same session, a conspiracy was discovered, which greatly increased the animosity against the catho- lics. One William Parry, who had received the queen's pardon for a capital crime, was instigated -I'^^l by some Romanist of high rank and authority to 250 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. attempt the life of the queen, by shootiDg at her while shp was taking the air on horseback. The conspiracy, how- ever, was betrayed by one of his associates ; and Parry being thrown into prison, confessed the guilt, and suffered the punishment of death. About the same time, the prince of Orange perished at Delft, by the hands of an assassin ; and the States sent a solemn embassy to London, and made anew an offer to the queen, of acknowledging her for their sovereign, on con- dition of obtaining her protection and assistance. Eliza- beth, however, again declined the sovereignty, but entered into an alliance with the States, and sent the earl of Lei- cester with a considerable army to their relief. The queen, while she provoked so powerful an enemy as the king of Spain, by her open aid to the revolted Fle- mings, took care to secure herself on the side of Scotland, by forming an alliance with James for the mutual defence of their dominions, and of their religion, now menaced by the open combination of all the catholic powers of Europe. But the unfortunate Mary, whose impatience of confine- ment and unsubdued spirit, together with her zeal for popery, impelled to the most desperate acts, engaged in designs against Elizabeth, which afforded her enemies a reason or pretence for effecting her complete ruin. Ballard, a Romish priest, encouraged by the hopes of succours from the pope, the king of Spain, and the duke of Guise, came over to England, and bent his endeavours to effect at once an assassination, an insurrection, and an in- vasion. The first person to whom he confided his inten- tions was Anthony Babington, a young gentleman of Der- byshire, who was ardent in the cause of Mary and of the catholic religion. Babington employed himself in increa- sing the number of the associates in this desperate under- taking ; and he communicated the project to Mary, who approved highly of the design, and who observed, that the death of Elizabeth was necessary, before any other attempt should be made. Ballard, however, being arrested, his confederates became alarmed, and took to flight ; but be- ing seized, they were tried, condemned, and executed. The lesser conspirators being thus depatched, measures were taken for the trial of the queen of Scots, who was conducted to Fotheringay castle, in the county of North- ampton. A commission, consisting of forty noblemen and ELIZABETH. 251 privy-counsellors, was appointed and empowered to pass sentence on Mary, who was described in the instrument as late queen of Scots, and heiress to James V. of Scotland. On this awful occasion, Mary behaved with great dig- nity. She protested her innocence, and declared that Elizabeth had no authority over her, who was an indepen- dent sovereign, and not amenable to the laws of England. Her objections, however, were over-ruled ; her letters, and the confessions of the conspirators, were produced in evi- dence against her ; and a few days after, sentence of death was pronounced against her. Both houses of parliament ratified this sentence, which was certainly illegal, if not unjust ; and they urged the queen to consent to its publi- cation and execution, Elizabeth, however, affected great reluctance to execute the sentence against Mary, and asked if it were not possi- ble to secure the public tranquility by some other expe- dient than the death of the queen of Scots ; but when foreign powers interfered, and interceded in behalf of the unfortunate Mary, Elizabeth became obdurate, and deter- mined to execute the sentence. The interposition of James, who remonstrated in very severe terms in favour of his mother, was unavailing j and Elizabeth, tired with im- portunity, and dreading the consequences, ordered Davi- son, her secretary, privately to draw a warrant for the execution of the queen of Scots ; which, she afterwards said, she intended to keep by her, in case any attempt should be made to rescue Maiy. She signed the warrant, and commanded Davison to procure the great seal to be affixed to it ; but when Davison told her that the warrant had passed the great seal, she blamed his precipitation. Davison acquainted the council with the transaction ; and they endeavoured to persuade him to send off the warrant, promising to take on themselves the whole blame of the measure. The secretar)-, not sufficiently aware of their intention, complied with the advice ; and the warrant was despatched to the earls of Shrewsbury and Kent, and some others, ordering them to see the sentence executed on the queen of Scots. Mary, informed of this commission, though somewhat surprised, betrayed no symptoms of fear. The night be- fore her execution, she called in all her servants, drank to them, and bade them a solemn farewell. Next morning 252 ■ HISTORY OP ENGLAND* she dressed herself in a rich habit of silk and velvet ; and having declared her resolution to die in the ancient catho-^ lie and Roman religion, her head was severed from her body by the executioner. Thus perished, in the ^ Vq^ forty-fifth year of her age, and the nineteenth of her captivity in England, Mary, queen of Scots, a woman of great accomplishments, both of body and mind. The beauty of her person, and the charms of her address and conversation, rendered her the most amiable of wo- men. Whether we consider her faults as imprudences or crimes, certain it is, that she was betrayed into actions which can with difficulty be accounted for, and which ad- mit of no apology or extenuation. In her numerous mis- fortunes, we forget her faults ; and the accomplishments which she possessed render us insensible to the errors of her conduct. When Elizabeth was informed of the execution of Ma- ry, she affected the utmost surprise and indignation. She wrote an exculpatory letter to James ; and she committed Davison to prison, and ordered him to be tried for a mis- demeanor. He was condemned to imprisonment during the pleasure of the queen, and to pay a fine which reduced him to beggary. The dissimulation of Elizabeth, however, was too gross to deceive any person ; and James and his nobles breath- ed nothing but revenge. When, however, James began coolly to reflect on the consequences of a war with Eng- land, and that he might thereby forfeit the certain prospect of his succession to the English throne, he stifled his re- sentments, and gradually entered into a good con*espon- dence with the court of England. While Elizabeth insured tranquility from the attempts of her nearest neighbour, accounts were received of the vast preparations made by the Spaniards for the invasion of England, and for the entire conquest of this kingdom* In all the ports of Sicily, Naples, Spain, and Portugal, Philip had for some time been equipping vessels of un- common size and force, and filling thj^ with stores and provisions. The most renowned nobility of Italy and Spain were ambitious of sharing in the honour of this great ^^^terprise ; and the Spaniards, ostentatious of their power, anu "onfident of success, had already denominated this armament *' The Invincible Annada." ELIZABETH. 253 Elizabeth, finding that she must contend for her crown with the whole force of Spain, made preparations for re- sistance ; and though her force seemed very inadequate to oppose so powerful an enemy, every place in tlie king- dom discovered the greatest readiness in defending their liberty and rehgion, by contributing ships, men, and mo- ney. The gentry and nobility vied with each other in the same generous career ; and all the loans which the queen demanded were immediately granted. Lord Howard, of Effingham, a man of distinguished abilities, was appointed admiral of the fleet ; and Drake, Hawkins, and Frobisher, the most renowned seamen in Europe, served under him. A small squadron, commanded by lord Seymour, second son of the protector Somerset, lay off Dunkirk, in order to intercept the duke of Parma. The troops were disposed along the south coast ; and a body of twenty*two thousand foot, and a thousand horse, under the command of the earl of Leicester, was stationed at Tilbury, in order to cover the capital. The principal army consisted of thirty-four thousand foot, and two thou- sand horse, commanded by lord Hunsdon ; and these were reserved for guarding the queen^s person, and marching whithersoever the enemy should appear. Men of reflec- tion, however, entertained the greatest apprehensions, when they considered the force of fifty thousand veteran Spaniards, under the duke of Parma, the most consum- mate general of the age. TJkie queen was sensible that next to her popularity, the firmest support of her throne consisted in the zeal of the people fo-r the protestant religion, and their abhorrence of popery. She reminded the English of their former danger from the tyranny of Spain ; and of the bloody massacres in the Indies, and the unrelenting executions in the Low Countries ; and a list was published of the several instru- ments of torture, Avith which, it was pretended, the Spanish armada was loaded. The more to excite the martial spi- rit of the nation, the queen appeared on horseback in the camp at Tilbury ; and riding through the lines, she ex- horted the soldiers to remember their duty to their countiy and their God, declaring that she would rather perish in battle than survive the ruin and slavery of her people. By this spirited conduct she excited the admiration of the soldiery ; the attachment to her became enthusiastic ; and 22 254 HISTORY OP EKfGLAND. all swore to defend the glorious cause in which they were engaged* The armada, after sailing from Lisbon, suffered consi- derably from storm ; but the damages being repaired, the Spaniards again put to sea. The fleet consisted of one hundred and thirty vessels, of which one hundred were galleons, and of larger size than any before seen in Europe. On board were upwards of thirty thousand men, and two thousand six hundred and thirty great pieces of brass ordnance* Effingham, who was stationed at Plymouth, had just time to get out of port, when he saw the armada advancing towards him, disposed in the form of a crescent, and stretching the distance of seven miles from one extre- mity to the other. As the armada advanced up the chan- nel, the English hung on its rear, and soon found that the largeness of the Spanish ships was no advantage to them. Their bulk exposed them the more to the fire of the ene- my ; while their cannon, placed too high, passed over the heads of the English. The armada had now reached Calais, and cast anchor, in expectation that the duke of Parina would put to sea and join them. The English admiral, however, filling eight of his smaller ships with combustible materials, sent them one after another into the midst of the enemy. The Spaniards were so much alarmed, that they immediately cut- their cables, and fled with the greatest precipitation. The English, whose fleet now amounted to one hundred and forty sail, fell upon them next morning while in con- fusion ; and, besides doing great damage to other ships, they took or destroyed about twelve of the enemy. The Spanish admiral, defeated in many rencounters, and perceiving the inevitable destruction of his fleet, pre- pared to return homewards ; but conducting his shattered ships by the circuitous route of Scotland and Ireland, a violent tempest overtook them near the Orkneys. Many of the vessels were wrecked on the western isles of Scot- land, and on the coast of Ireland ; and not one half of this mighty armament returned to Spain. The discomfiture of the armada begat in the nation a kind of enthusiastic passion for enterprises against ^ *.,Q^ Spain ; and ships were hired, as well as arms pro- vided, at the expense of the adventurers. Among those who signalized themselves in these expeditions, were ELIZABETH. 255 Drake and Norris, Grenville, Howard, and the earls of Essex and Cumberland. The war in the Netherlands still continued ; and the king of Navarre, a protestant, ascending the throne of France by the title of Henry IV., a great part of the no- bility immediately deserted him, and the king of Spain en- tertained views either of dismembering the French mo- narchy, or of annexing the whole to his own dominions. In this emergency, Henry addressed himself to Elizabeth, who sent him aid both in men and money ; and the Eng- lish auxiliaries acquired a great reputation in several en- terprises, and revived in France the fame of their ancient valour. The war did great injury to Spain ; but it was attended with considerable expense to England ; and the queen summoned a parliament in order to obtain a supply. How- ever, it is evident that Elizabeth either thought her autho- rity so established as to need no concessions in return, or she rated her prerogative above money. When sir Edward Coke, the speaker, made to her the then three usual re- quests of freedom from arrests, access to her person, and liberty of speech, she declared that she would not impeach the freedom of their persons, nor refuse them access to her, provided it were upon urgent occasions, and when she was at leisure from other important affairs ; but that they were not to speak every one what he listeth, and that the privi- lege of speech extended no farther than a liberty of ay or no. Henry IV. renounced the protestant religion, and was received by the prelates of his party into the catholic church ; and Elizabeth assisted that monarch to break the league which had been formed against him, and which, after his conversion to popery, gradually dissolved. Though the queen made war against Philip in France and the Low Countries, yet the severest blows which he received from England, proceeded from nav^ enterprises. James Lancaster, with three ships and a pinnace, took thirty-nine Spanish ships, sacked Fernambouc on the coast of Brazil, and brought home a great quan- | '-q I tity of treasure. Sir Walter Raleigh was less suc- cessful in an expedition to Guiana, a country which he un- dertook to explore at his own expense. Sir Francis Drake engaged in an enterprise against Panama ; and the Spaniards obliged the English to return without effecting 356 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. any thing ; and Drake, from the vexation of this disap- pointment, was seized with a distemper, of which he died. This unsuccessful enterprise in America determined the English to attack the Spanish dominions in Europe. A powerful fleet of one hundred and seventy vessels, cariy- mg upwards of seven thousand soldiers, besides Dutch auxiliaries, set sad from Plymouth ; and after a fruitless attempt to land at St. Sebastian, on the western side of Cadiz, resolved to attack the ships and galleys in the bay. This attempt was deemed rash ; but the earl of Essex strenuously recommended the enterprise. Effingham, the commander in chief, appointed sir Walter Raleigh, and lord Thomas Howard, to lead the van ; but Essex, contra- ry to the injunctions of the admiral, pressed forward into the thickest of the fight ; and landing his men at the fort of Puntal, he immediately marched to Cadiz, which the im- petuous valour of the English soon carried, sword in hand. The generosity of Essex, not inferior to his valour, induced him to stop the slaughter. The English obtained immense plunder ; but they missed a much greater, by the Spanish admiral setting fire to the ships, in order to prevent their falling into the hands of the enemy. It was computed that the loss which the Spaniards sustained by this enter- prise amounted to twenty millions of ducats. The king of France concluded a peace with Spain ; and ♦:lie queen knew that she could finish the war on equitable teraas with Philip. Burleigh advised her to em- brace pacific measures ; but Essex, whose passion for glo- ry rendered him desirous that the war should continue, urged that her majesty had no reason to fear the issue of the contest, and that it would be dishonourable in her to desert the Hollanders, till their affairs were placed in greater security. The advice of Essex was more agree- able to Elizabeth ; and the favourite seemed daily to ac- quire an ascendant over the minister. Had he, indeed, been endued with caution and temper, he might soon have engrossed the entire confidence of his mistress ; but his lofty spirit could ill submit to implicit deference ; and in a dispute with the queen, he was so heated by the argu- ment, and so entirely forgetful of the rules both of civility and duty, that he turned his back upon her in a contemp- tuous manner. Elizabeth, naturally prone to anger, in- stantly gave him a box on the ear, adding a passionate ex- ELIZABETH. 25T pvession suitable to liis impertinence. Instead of recol- lecting himself, and making the submission due to her sex and station, Essex clapped his hand on his sword, sworo that he would not bear such usage, were it from Henry the Eighth himself, and immediately withdrew^ from court. The queen's partiality, however, soon reinstated him in his former favour ; and the death of Burleigh, equally re- gretted by his sovereign and the people, seemed to ensure him tlte confidence of Elizabeth. Soon after the death of this wise and faithful minister, Philip the Second expired at Madrid, This haughty prince, desirous of an accommodation with his revolted subjects in the Netherlands, had transferred to his daugh- terj married to the archduke Albert, the title to the Low Countries ; but the States considered this deed only as the change of a name ; and the secret opposition of France, as w^ell as the avowed efforts of England, continued to operate figainst the progress of Albert, as they had done against that of Philip, The authority of the English in the affairs of Ireland had hitherto been little more than nominal. Instead of invi- ting the Irish to adopt the more civilized customs of their conquerors, they even refused to communicate to them the privilege of their laws, and every where marked them out as aliens and enemies ; and the treatment which they experienced rendered them such, and made them daily became more untractable and more dangerous. Insurrec- tions and rebellions had been frequent in Ireland ; and Elizabeth tried several expedients for reducing that coun- try to greater order and submission ; but these expedients ■were unsuccessful, and Ireland became formidable to the English. Hugh O'Neale, who had been raised by the queen to the dignity of earl of Tyrone, embraced the resolution of raising an open rebellion, and entered into a coiTespon- dence with Spain, whence he procured a supply of arms and ammunition. A victory obtained over sir Henry Bag- nal, who had advanced to relieve a fort besieged by the rebels, raised the reputation of Tyrone, who assumed the character of the deliverer of his country. The English council were now sensible that the rebel- irqq lion of Ireland should be opposed by vigorous mea- sures ; and the queen appointed Essex governor of tha 22* 258 HISTORY OF ENGLANEr. country, by the title of lord-lieutenant, and gave him the eommand of twenty thousand foot, and two thousand horse. On his landing at Dublin, Essex was guilty of a capital error, which was the ruin of his enterprise,- Instead of leading his forces immediately into Ulster against Tyrone, the chief enemy, he wasted the season of action in redu- cing Munster ; and when he assembled his troops for an expedition into Ulster, the army was so averse to this enterprise, and so terrified with the reputation of the Irish rebel, that many of them counterfeited sickness, and many of them deserted. Convinced that it would be impossible for him to effect any thing against an enemy who, though superior in number, was determined to avoid a decisive action, Essex hearkened to a message sent him by Tyrone for a conference. The generals met without any of their attendants ; a river ran between them, into which Tyroncj entered to the depth of his saddle ; but Essex stood on the opposite bank. A cessation of arms was concluded till the next spring, renewable from six weeks to six weeks f but which might be broken by either party on giving a fortnight's notice. Essex also received from Tyrone pro- posals of peace, in which that rebel had inserted many unreasonable conditions; and, it was afterwards suspected, that he had commenced a very unjustifiable correspon- dence with the enemy. Elizabeth was highly provoked at the unexpected issue of this great and expensive enterprise ; and Essex, in- formed of the queen's anger, set out for England, and ar- rived at court before any one was ajjprised of his inten- tions. Though covered with dirt and sweat, he hastened to the presence-chamber, and thence to the privy-cham- ber ; nor stopped till he was in the queen's bed chamber, who had just risen. After some private conversation with her, he retired with great satisfaction ; but, though the queen had thus been taken by surprise, she ordered him to be confined to his chamber, and to be twice examined By the council. Essex professed an entire submission to the queen's will, and declared his intention of retiring into the country, re- mote from the court and business : but, though he affect- ed to be cured of his ambition, the vexation of this disap- pointment, and of the triumph gained by his enemies, threw him into a distemper which seemed to endanger his ELIZABETH. 359 life. The queen, alarmed with his situation, ordered her physicians to attend him, and also to deliver him a message, which was probably more efficacious in promoting his re- covery, than any medicines that could be prescribed. Af- ter soiTie interval, Elizabeth allowed her favourite to retire to his own house, where, in the company of his countess, he passed his time in the pursuits of elegant literature. Essex possessed a monopoly of sweet wines ; and as his patent was nearly expiring, he patiently expected that the queen would renew it ; but Elizabeth, whose temper was somewhat haughty and severe, denied his request. Essex, whose patience was exhausted, burst at once all restraints of prudence ; and observed, that " the queen was now grown an old woman, and became as crooked in her mind as her body." Some court ladies carried this story to the queen, who was highlv incensed against him ; but his secret applications to the king of Scots, her heir and suc- cessor, were still more provoking to Elizabetli than the sarcasm of her age and deformity. James, however, dis- approved of any violent method of extorting from the queen an immediate declaration of his right of succession ; and Essex, disappointed in his project, formed a select council of malcontents at Drury-house, where he delibe- rated with them concerning the method of taking arms, chiefly for the piu'pose of removing his enemies and set- tling a new plan of government. Receiving a summons to attend the council at the trea- surer's house, Essex concluded that the conspiracy was discovered, or at least suspected. He, therefore, rashly sallied forth with about two hundred attendants, armed only with walking swords ; and in his way to the city, he cried aloud, " for the queen ! for the queen ! a plot is laid for my life !" The citizens flocked about him in amaze- ment ; but though he told them that England was sold to the Infanta, and exhorted them to arm instantly, no one showed a disposition to join him. Essex, observing the coldness of the citizens, and hearing that he was proclaim- ed a traitor by the earl of Cumberland and lord Burleigh, began to uespair of success, and forced his way to his own house ; where he appeared determined to defend himself to the last extremity ; but after some parley, he surren- dered at discretion. He and his friend, the earl of Southampton, were ar- 260 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. raigned before a jury of twenty^five peers. The guilt ol the prisoners was too apparent to admit of any doubt When sentence was pronounced* Essex spoke bite a man who expected nothing but deatii ; but Southampton's be- haviour waii more mild and inoffensive, and he excited the compassion of all the peers. After Essex had passed some days in the solitude and reflection of a prison, his proud heart was at last subdued, not by the fear of death, but by the sentiments of religion, and he gave in to the council an account of all his crimi- nal designs, as well as of his correspondence with the king of Scots. The present situation of Essex excited all the tender affections of Elizabeth ; she signed the warrant for his execution ; she countermanded it ; she resolved on his death ; she felt a new return of tenderness ; but as he made no application to her for merd^, she finally gave het consent to his execution. Essex was only thirty-four years of age, when his rashness, imprudence, and violence, brought him to this untimely end. Some of his associates were tried, condemned, and executed ; but Southampton was saved with great difficulty, though he was detained in prison during the remainder of this reign. In Ireland, Mountjoy, who succeeded Essex, had ef- fected the defeat of Tyrone, and the expulsion of the Spaniards. Many of the chieftains, after concealing them-- selves during some time in woods and morasses, submit- ted to the mercy of the deputy. Tyrone himself, after an unsuccessful application to be received on terms, iro'^ surrendered unconditionally to Mountjoy, who in- tended to bring him a captive to England. But Elizabeth was now incapable of receiving any satisfaction from this fortunate event. Some incidents had happened which revived her tenderness for Essex, and filled her with the greatest sorrow. After his return from the fortunate expedition against Cadiz, she had given him a ring as a pledge of her affection ; and assuring him that into what- ever disgrace he might fall, if he sent her that ring, she would afford him a patient hearing, and lend a favourable ear to his apology. Essex, notwithstanding bll his mis- fortunes, had reserved this precious gift to the last extre mity ; but after his trial and condemnation, he resolved to try the experiment, and committed the ring to the countess of Nottingham, whom he desired to deliver it to the queen. ELIZABETH. 261 The countess was prevailed on by her husband, the mortal enemy of Essex, not to execute the commission; and Eli- zabeth, ascribing the neglect to his invincible obstinacy, at last signed the warrant for his execution. The countess falling into a dangerous sickness, Avas seized with remorse for her conduct ; and having ootained a visit from the queen, she craved her pardon, and revealed to her the fa- tal secret. The queen burst into a furious passion ; and shaking the dying countess in her bed, cried out, " God may pardon you, but 1 never can." From that moment, Elizabeth resigned herself to the deepest and most incurable melancholy; she even refused food and medicine ; and throwing herself on the floor, she remained there ten days and as many nights, declaring life an insufferable burthen to her, and uttering chiefly groans and sighs. Her anxious mind had so long preyed on her frail body, that her end was visibly approaching ; and the council being assembled, commissioned the lord- keeper, admiral, and secretary, to know her majesty's pleasure with regard to her successor. She answered with a faint voice, that, " she had held a regal sceptre, and desired no other than a royal successor." Cecil re- questing her to explain herself more particularly, she sub- joined, that " she would have a king to succeed her, and who should that be, but her nearest kinsman, the king of Scots'?" Soon after, her voice failed, and her senses were lost ; and falling into a lethargic slumber, she gently expired, in the seventieth year of her age, and the forty- fifth of her reign. So dark was the cloud which overspread the evening of that day, whose meridian splendour dazzled the eyes of Europe. The vigour, firmness, penetration, and address of Elizabeth, have not been surpassed by any person that ever filled a throne ; but a conduct less imperious, more sincere, and more indulgent to her people, would have been requisite to form a complete character. Her heroism was exempt from rashness, her frugality from avarice, and her activity from the turbulence of ambition ; but the rival- ship of beauty, the desire of admiration, the jealousy of love, and the sallies of anger, were infirmities from which she guarded not herself with equal care or equal success. When we contemplate her as a woman, we are struck with the highest admiration of her great qualities and extensive 262 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. capacity ; but we perceive a want of that softness of dis- position, that lenity of temper, and those amiable weak- nesses by which her sex is distinguished and adorned. Few sovereigns of England succeeded to the throne in more difficult circumstances ; and none ever conducted the government with such uniform success. Her wise ministers and brave warriors share the praise of her suc- cess ; but, instead of lessening, they increased the ap- plause which she justly deserves. They owed their ad- vancement to her judgment and discrimination. The maxims of her government were highly arbitrary ; but these were transmitted to her by her predecessors ; and she believed that her subjects were entitled to no more liberty than their ancestors had enjoyed. A well regulated constitutional balance was not yet established ; and it was not without many severe struggles, and some dreadful convulsions, that the people were allowed the blessings of liberty. CHAP. XHI. Reign of James I, The crown of England passed from the family of Tudor to that of Stuart with the utmost tranquility. In James's journey from Edinburgh to London, all ranks flock- tfi(vi ^^ around him, allured by the interest of curiosity ; and he was so well pleased with the flow of affec- tion which appeared in his new subjects, that in six weeks after his entrance into the kingdom, he conferred the ho- nour of knighthood on no fewer than two hundred and thirty-seven persons, besides raising several from inferior to higher dignities ; and among the rest, the Scottish cour- tiers were thought to be especially favoured. It must be confessed, however, that James left almost all the chief offices in the hands of Elizabeth's ministers, and intrusted the conduct of political concerns to his Eng- lish subjects. Among these, Cecil was successively created lord Effingdon, viscount Cranbourne, and earl of Salisbuiy, and regarded as prime minister and chief counsellor. A secret correspondence into which he had entered with James, during the latter years of Elizabeth's reign, laid the foundation of Cecil's credit ; and while all his former associates, sir Walter Raleigh, lord Gray, and lord Cob- JAMES I» 263 ham, were discountenanced on account of their animosity against Essex, this minister was continued in his employ- ment, and treated with the greatest confidence and regard. Amidst the great tranquihty, both foreign and domestic, which the nation enjoyed, nothing could be more unex- pected than the discovery of a conspiracy to subvert the government, and to place on the throne Arabella Stuart, a near relation of tPie king's, and equally descended from Henry the Seventh. Sir Walter Raleigh, one of the prin- cipals in the plot, contraiy to all laws and equity, was found guilty by a jury ; but he was reprieved, not pardon- ed : and he remained in confinement for many years. The religious disputes between the church and the puri- tans, which had been continually increasing ever since the reformation, induced the king to call a conference at Hampton-court, on prettxice of finding expedients which might reconcile both parties. The disposi- ^nr^l lion of James, however, had received a strong bias against the puritanical clergy in Scotland ; and he showed the greatest propensity to the established church, and fre- quently inculcated as a maxim, no bishop, no king. The severe, though popular government of Elizabeth, had confined the rising spirit of liberty within very narrow bounds ; but when a nev^ and foreign family succeeded to the throne, and a prince less dreaded and less beloved, principles of a more independent nature appeared in the nation. The king, however, told the parliament, " that all their privileges were derived from his grant, and hoped they would not turn them against him." James, of his own accord, annulled all the numerous patents for monopo- lies ; but the exclusive companies still remained, and almost all the commerce of England centered in London, the trade of which was confined to about two hundred citizens. One of the most memorable events recorded in history is the " Gunpowder Plot." The Roman catholics had ex- pected great favour from James ; and they were surprised and enraged to find that, on all occasions, ke expressed his intention of strictly executing the laws against them. Catesby, a gentleman of a^^ ancient family, first thought of a most extraordinary method of revenge, which was to destroy, at one blow, the king, the royal family, the lords, and the commons, by running a mine below the hall in v'hich the parliament assembled, and choosing the very 264 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. moment in which the king harangued both houses. This diabohcal scheme he communicated to Percy, a descendant of the illustrious house of Northumberland, who was charmed with the project ; and they agreed cautiously to enlist some other conspiratorSj and sent over to Flanders in quest of one Guy Fawkes, an officer in the Spanish service, with whose zeal and courage they were well acquainted. The conspirators bound themselves by oath of secrecy, which they confirmed by receiving the sacrament together; and they hired a house in the name of Percy, adjoining that in which the parliament assembled. Finding that a vault under the house of lords was to let, they seized the opportunity of renting it, and deposited in it thirty- ^t>^^ six barrels of powder, which they covered with faggots and billet'wood. The doors of the cellar were then boldly thrown open, as if it contained nothing dangerous, and, confident of success, the conspirators now planned the remaining part of their project. The king, the queen, and prince Henry, were all ex- pected to be present at the opening of the parliament; but as the duke, by reason of his tender age, would necessarily be absent, it was resolved to assassinate him. The prin- cess Elizabeth, a child likewise, was kept at lord Harring* ton's house in Warwickshire ; and it was determined to seize that princess and proclaim her queen. Though more than twenty persons were engaged in this conspiracy, the dreadful secret had been sacredly kept nearly a year and a half. No remorse, no pity, no fear of punishment, or hope of reward, had induced any conspi- rator either to abandon the enterprise, or discover the plot. A few days, however, before the meeting of parliament, lord Monteagle, a catholic, and son to lord Morley, receiv- ed the following letter, from an unknown hand.* " My lord, out of the love I bear to some of your friends, I have a care of your preservation. Therefore I would advise you, as you tender your life, to devise some excuse to shift off your attendance in this parliament.. For God * There is strong reason to believe that this letter was sent by Mary, eldest daughter of lord Morley, sister to lord Monteagle, and wife of Thornas Abington, Esq. of Henslip, in the county of Wor- cester. Affection for her brother prompted the Warning, while love for her husband, who was privy to the conspiracy, suggested such means as were best calculated to prevent his detection. Discovery of Guy Jtawkes. Death of Richard III, JAMES L 265 and man have concurred to punish the Wickedness of this tune. And think not slightly of this advertisement; but retire yourself into your country, where you may expect the event in safety. For though there be no appearance of any stir, yet, I say, they will receive a terrible blow this jiarliament, and yet they shall not see who hurts them. This counsel is not to be contemned, because it may do you good, and can do you no harm : for the danger is pastj as soon as you have burned the letter. And I hope God will give you the grace to make good use of it, unto whose holy protection I commend you." Monteagle, as well as Salisbury, to whom he com- municated it, considered the letter as a foolish attempt to frighten ; but, from the serious and earnest manner in which it was written, James conjectured that it implied something dangerous and important; and the enigmati- cal but strong expressions used in the epistle, seemed to denote some contrivance by gunpowder.* In consequence, it was determined to inspect all the vaults under the house of parliL,ment ; but the search was purposely delayed till the day before the meeting of parliament. This care be- longed to the earl of Suffolk, lord chamberlain, who re- marked the ^reat piles of wood and faggots in the vault Under the upper- :h{j9^se ; and he observed Fawkes in a corner, who passed hikiself as Percy's servant. About mid- night, sir Thomas Knevet, with proper attendants, entered the vault ; and after seizinjy Fawkes, he removed the fafrsfots, and discoverved the powder. The matches and other pre- parations for setting the whole on fire, were found in the pockets of Fawkes, who, seeing it useless to dissemble, boldly expressed his regret that he had lost the opportu- nity of firing the powder at once, and of sweetening his own death by that of his enemies. Before the council he displayed the same intrepidity, and refused to discover his accomplices ; but being confined in the tower, and left to reflect on his guilt and danger, his courage failed in a few days, and he made a full discovery of the conspirators, who never exceeded the number of eighty. They all suffered death by one way or other ; and horrible as the crime was, the bigoted catltolics regarded some of them as martyrs. * James might probably be led to this conclusion from recollecting the catastrophe of his father. Mavor. 23 i 266 HISTORY OP ENGLAND* At this time, James seems to have possessed the affec- tions of his English subjects and of the parHament. His learning, which was not despicable, obtained him the name of the second Solomon. All his efforts, however, for a union between England and Scotland proved ineffectual, on account of the national antipathy by which the English parliament was governed ; and he could procure only an abolition of the hostile laws which had been formerly enact- ed between the two kingdoms. The house of commons began now to feel themselves oi such importance, that on the motion of sir Edwin Sandys, they entered, for the first time, an order for the regular keaping of their journals. In the following session, the lord-treasurer, Dorset, laid open the king's necessities, but the commons refused to relieve them; and James received the mortification Ifilfi ^^ discovering in vain, all his wants, and of asking the aid of his subjects, who seemed determined to diminish the power of the crown. Inheriting all the high notions of regal government that had marked the reigns of Henry and Elizabeth, James was continually employed in endeavouring to preserve the prerogatives which former sovereigns had enjoyed, but which a more enlightened age and a less obsequious parliament deemed absolutely neces- sary to circumscribe. In his fii'st parliament, which sat nearly seven years, frequent attacks were made on the roy- al prerogative; and the king displayed all his exalted no- tions of monarchy and the authority of princes ; but the principles which these popular attempts developed, and which opposition served only to increase, at last overturn- ed the throne, and plunged the nation into confusion. In promoting the civilization of Ireland, James pro- ceeded on a regular and well concerted plan ; and he found it necessary to abolish the ancient customs, which suppliied the place of laws. By *Jie Erehen custom, every crime, iiowever enormous, was punished by a pecuniary fine. This rate was called eric. When the English had formed the design ofsending a sheriff into Fermanagh, Maguire,achief of that district, replied, "Your sheriff shall be welcome to me; but let me know beforehand his eric, or the price of his head, that if my people cut it off, I may levy the •money on the county." Small offences were subject to no penalty ; and in this horrible state of society, the efforts of JAMES I. 267 James to produce amelioration were highly deserving of praise. In the room of savage institutions, he substituted English laws ; took the natives under his protection, and declared them free citizens ; and governed the kingdom by a regular administration, military as well as civil. This year, the sudden death of Henry, prince of Wales, in the eighteenth year of his age, diffused a general grief throughout the nation. Neither his high birth nor his youth had seduced him into any irregularities ; t^in business and ambition were his sole delight ; and his inclinations as well as exercises were martial. The French ambassador, taking leave of him, and asking his commands for France, found him employed in the exercise of the pike : " Tell your king," said he, " in what occupa- tion you left me engaged." He had conceived great affec- tion and esteem for sir Walter Raleigh, who was prisoner in the tower. " Surely," observed he, " no king but my father would keep such a bird in a cage." The marriage of the Princess Elizabeth with Frederic, elector palatine, served to dissipate the grief which arose from that melancholy event ; but this marriage, though happy to the nation in its remote and ultimate conse- quences, was unfortunate both to the king and his son-in- law. The elector, trusting to so great an alliance, engaged in enterprises beyond his strength ; and the king not being able to support him in his pretensions, lost entirely, to- wards the end of his life, the affection and esteem of his own subjects. The history of this reign is more properly a history of the court than of the nation. About the end of the year 1609, Robert Carre, a youth of twenty years of age, and of a good family in Scotland, arrived in London, and was introduced to the English court. The charms of his per- son and the elegance of his manners soon won the affec- tions of James, who successively knighted him, created him viscount Rochester, and gave him the garter. In sir Thomas Overbury, this minion met with a judicious and sincere counsellor ; and so long as he was governed by his friendly counsels, he enjoyed the highest favour of his so- vereign, without being hated by the people. Intoxicated, ho^^ever, by his good fortune, Rochester found means to seduce the affections of Ihe youn^ countess of Essex, daughter of the earl of Suffolk, though she rejected the 268 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. embraces of her husband ; and in spite of the remonstran- ces of Overbury, a divorce was procured, and a marriage solemnized between the two adulterers. On this occasion, the king so far forgot the dignity of his character, and his friendship to the family of Essex, that, lest the lady should lose any rank by her new marriage, he created his minion earl of Somerset. The countess, however, was not satisfied till she could satiate her revenge on Overbury, who had been committed to the tower, at the instance of Somerset, for disobeying an order of the king. She engaged her husband, as well as her uncle, the earl of Northampton, in the atrocious de- si o"n of destroying him secretly by poison. Fruitless at- tempts were reiterated by weak doses ; but at last they gave him one so sudden and violent, that the symptoms were apparent to every one who approached him ; and though a strong suspicion prevailed in the public, the full proof of the crime was not brought to light for some years after. The fatal catastrophe of sir Thomas Overbury increased or begat a suspicion that the prince of Wales had been carried off by poison, given him by Somerset ; and the kino- was not spared amidst the just imputations thrown on his favourite. A new parliament was again summoned, after every ex- pedient had been tried to relieve the king's necessities, even to the sale of baronetages and peerages ; but ^* Pj that assembly, instead of entering on the business of supply, as urged by the king, began with dispu- ting his majesty's power of levying new customs and im- positions, by the mere authority of his prerogative. The king, with great indignation, dissolved the parliament, without obtaining the smallest supply to his necessities ; and he imprisoned some of the members, who had been most forward in their opposition to his measures ; and though he valued himself highly on his king-craft, he open- ly at his table inculcated those monarchical principles which he had strongly imbibed. Among other company, there sat at table two bishops, Neile and Andrews. The king publicly proposed the question, whether he might not take his subjects' money when he needed it, without all this formality of parliament 1 The obsequious Neile re- plied, " God forbid you should not ; for you are the breath JAMES I. 269 of oui* nostrils." Andrews declined answering ; but when the king ur<>ed him, he pleasantly observed, " I think your majesty may lawililly take my _brother Neile's money, for he offers.*' The favourite had hitherto escaped the inquiry of jus- tice ; but conscious of the murder of his friend, he became sullen and silent ; and the king began to estrange himself from a man who no longer contributed to his amusement. The enemies of Somerset seized the opportunity of throw- ing a new minion in the king's way, in the person of George Villiers, a youth of one and twenty, who was im- mediately raised to the office of cup-bearer. In the mean time, Somerset's guilt in the murder of sir Thomas Over- bury was fully discovered ; and James, alarmed and asto- nished at such enormous guilt in a man whom he had so highly honoured, recommended a most rigorous scrutiny. All the accomplices received the punishment of death ; but the king bestowed a pardon on the principals, Somerset and the countess ; and after some years imprisonment, he restored them to their liberty, and they languished out their old age in infamy and obscurity. The fall of Somerset opened the way for Villiers, who, in the space of a few years, by rapid advances, was at last created duke of Buckingham, knight of the garter, master of the horse, and lord high-admiral of England, with other honourable appointments. His mother obtained the title of countess of Buckingham ; his brother was created vis- count Purbec ; and a numerous train of needy relations were all invested with credit and authority. Sir Walter Raleigh had been imprisoned for thirteen years ; and men had leisure to reflect on the hardship and injustice of this sentence. They pitied his active and en- terprising spirit, which languished in the rigours of confine- ment ; and they admired his extensive genius, no less than his unbroken magnanimity. To increase these favourable dispositions, on^ which he built the hopes of reco- vering his liberty, Raleigh spread the report of a |^J^ rich gold mine, which he had discovered in Guiana. The king gave little credit to the tale, but released him fromtthe tower, without pardoning him, and sutfered him to try the adventure. Raleigh had declared that the Spaniards had planted no colonies on that part of the coast where this mine lay ; but 23* 270 HISTORY OF ENGLAND* it had happened, that, in a space of twenty-three yeafs. which had elapsed since he had last visited that region, they had formed a settlement on the river Oronooko, and built a town called St. Thomas* To this place Raleig;h directly bent his course, and sent a detachment under the command of his son, and of captain Kemys, an officer en- tirely devoted to him. The Spaniards^ who had expected tjiis invasion, fired on the English at their landing-, were repidsed, and pursued into the town. Young Raleigh re- ceived a shot, of which he immediately expired ; but the town was carried, and afterwards reduced to ashes. Ke- mys, who owned that he was within two hours' march of the mine, returned to Raleigh \vith the melancholy news of his son's death; and, despairing of the success of the en- terprise, he retired to his cabin, and put an end to his Kfe. The other adventurers now concluded, that they were deceived by Raleigh ; and thinking it safest to return imme- diately to England, they carried him with them. The privy council pronounced that Raleigh had abused the king's confidence ; and the court of Spain raising loud complaints against him, the king made use of that power which he had purposely reserved in his own hands, and signed the warrant for the execution upon his former sen- tence. Raleig;h, finding his fate inevitable, collected all his cou- rage and resolution. As he felt the edge of the axe with which he was to be beheaded, " 'Tis a sharp remedy," he said, " but a sure one for all ills." His harangue to the people was calm and eloquent ; and, with the utmost in- difference, he laid his head on the block, and received the fatal blow. The execution of this sentence, which was at first hard, and which had been so long suspended, gave general dis- satisfaction ; and it was rendered still more invidious and vmpopular by the intimate connections entered into with Spain. Godemar, the Spanish ambassador, in order to withdraw the attention of James from Germany, had of- fered the second daughter of Spain in marriage to prince Charles, with an immense fortune. The bait took; and though the states of Bohemia, inspired with the love of civil and religious liberty, had taken up arms against the emperor Ferdinand, and tendered their crown to Frederic, elector palatine, probably on account of his connection JAMES f* 271 with England, James refused to lend any assistance to his son-in-law, and Frederic^ being defeated in the great and decisive battle of Prague^ was driven from the palatinate^ and fled with his family into Holland. High were now the murmurs and complaints against the inactive disposition of the king, who flattered himself, that after he had formed an intimate connection with the Spanish monarchy by means of his son's mar- ipon riaoe, the restitution of the palatinate might be procured, from motives of friendship alone. At this time the great seal was in the hands of Franciis Bacon, lord Verulam, a man universally admired for the sublimity of his genius ; but his want of economy, and his indulgence to servants, involved him in necessities ; and he received bribes which rendered him obnoxious to censure. Being impeached by the commons, the peers sentenced him to pay a fine of forty thousand pounds, to be impri- soned in the tower during the king^s pleasure, and to be tor ever incapable of holding any ofllce, place -or employ* ment. Bacon, however, was soon released from prison, the fine was remitted, and, in consideration of his great merit, a pension of eighteen hundred pounds a year was conferred upon him ; and his literary productions have .Tiade his guilt or weakness be forgotten or overlooked by posterity. In the mean time, the commons entreated his majesty, that he would immediately undertake the defence of the palatinate ; that he would turn his arms against Spain ; and that he would enter into negotiations for a niarriao^e with his son only with a protestant princess. This seeming an invasion of his prerogative, highly incensed James, who, in a letter to the speaker, sharply rebuked the house for de- bating on matters far above their capacity, and forbade them to meddle with any subject that regarded his govern ment. This letter inflamed the commons, who, after ano- ther ineflcctu^ remonstrance, framed a protestation, in which they repeated all their claims for freedom of speech, and an unbounded authority to interpose with their advice and counsel. They asserted that the liberties, franchises, privileges, and jurisdictions of parliament, are the ancient and undoubted birthright of the subjects of England. This protestation the king himself tore from the journals ; and after committing some of the leading members of the 272 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. house to the tower, he finally dissolved the parliament. These struggles, between prerogative on the one hand, and privilege on the other, terminated only with the over- throw of the monarchy, under the unfortunate Charles the First. In vain did James, by reiterated proclamations, forbid the discussing of state affairs. Such proclamations, as might naturally be expected, seized rather to injElame the curiosi- ty of the public. The efforts of Frederic for the ir-29 recovery of his dominions were vigorous, but inef- fectual ; and James now persuaded his son-in-law to disarm, and to trust to his negotiations. To show, however, the estimation in which James's negotiations were held abroad, in a farce acted at Brussels, a courier announced that the palatinate would soon be wrested from Austria, as succours from all quarters were hastening to the relief of the despoiled elector; the king of Denmark, he said, had agreed to contribute to his assistance one hundred thousand pickled herrings ; the Dutch, one hundred thousand butter boxes ; and the king of England, one hundred thousand ambassadors. On other occasions, James was depicted with a scabbard, but without a sword ; or with a sword, which no one could draw, though several were pulling at it. In order to remove all obstacles to the match between the infanta of Spain and prince Charles, James despatch- ed the earl of Bristol to Philip IV. ; all matters were ad- justed, and the dispensation from Rome only was wanting, when this flattering prospect was blasted by the temerity of Buckingham. A coolness between this favourite and the prince of Wales had taken place ; and Buckingham, desirous of an opportunity which might connect him with Charles, and also envious of the great credit acquired by Bristol, pro- posed a journey of courtship to Madrid. The young and ardent mind of the prince eagerly embraced the scheme ; and the king was prevailed on to grant hi^onsent to the undertaking, though not without much reluctance and ap- prehension of the result. The prince and Buckingham, with their attendants, passed disguised and undiscovered through France ; and they even ventured into a court-ball at Paris, where Charles saw the princess Henrietta, whom he afterwards espoused, and who was at that time in the bloom of youth and beauty. JAMES I. 273 In eleven days after their departure from London, they arrived at Madrid, and surprised every one by a step so unusual among great princes. The Spanish monarch treated Charles with the utmost respect, and the most flat- tering attentions ; but the infanta was only shown to her lover in public, the established etiquette not allowing any farther intercourse till the arrival of a dispensation from Rome. The king of England, as well as the prince, be- came impatient ; and the latter having taken his leave, embarked on board an English fleet, and returned to Eng- land. Charles had endeared himself to the whole Spanish nation, by whom he was beloved ^nd esteemed ; while Buckingham, by his indecent freedoms and his dissolute pleasures, had rendered himself universally despised and hated. Through the intrigues of Buckingham, who dreaded the influence of the Spaniards in England after the arrival of the infanta, the match was broken off*; and James was induced to abandon a project which, during many years, had been the object of his wishes, and which had been brought near to a happy conclusion. The king, having thus involuntarily broken with Spain, was obliged to summon a parliament, in order to procure the necessary supplies ; and in that assembly, Buck- ingham threw all the blame on the court of Spain, \p^l Avhich he accused of artifice and insincerity. The parliament advised the king to break off* both treaties vrith Spain, as well that which regarded the marriage, as that for the restitution of the palatinate. The supply, how- ever, was voted with parsimony ; and to it were annexed conditions, w^hich trenched on the prerogative, but which at last produced legitimate liberty. After the rupture with Spain, a treaty of marriage be- tween the prince of Wales and Henrietta of France was speedily concluded ; but military enterprises were ex- tremely disagreeable to James, whose disposition incapacitated #im for war. The English nation, ^'n^^ however, were bent on the recovery of the palati- nate ; and an army of twelve thousand foot and two hun- dred horse, under the command of count Mansfeldt, were embarked at Dover; but so ill had the expedition been concerted, that half of the troop«r> died on board by a pesti- iHDtial disorder, before they wero permitted to land, and 274 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. the other half, weakened by sickness, appeared insufficient to march into the palatinate. James, who had zealously cultivated the arts of peace, did not long survive the commencement of hostilities. He was seized with a tertian ague, and finding himself gradu- ally becoming weaker, he sent for the prince, whom he ex- horted to bear a tender regard for his wife, but to preserve a constancy in religion, to protect the church of England, and to extend his care to the unhappy family of the pala • tine. With decency and fortitude he prepared himself for his end ; and he died in the fifty-ninth year of his age, aftei a reign over England of twenty-two years and some days. In the annals of nations, it would be difficult to find a reign less illustrious, yet more unspotted and unblemished, than that of James. No prince so little enterprising and so inoftensive, was ever so much exposed to the opposite extremes of calumny and praise ; and his character has been much disputed even in the present time. It must be owned, however, that he possessed many virtues, though scarcely one of them was free from the contagion of the neighbouring vice. His generosity bordered on profusion, his learning on pedantry, his pacific disposition on pusi> lanimity, and his wisdom on cunning. While he imagined that he was only maintaining his own authority, he may perhaps be suspected of having somewhat encroached on the liberties of the people. His intentions were just, but more adapted to the conduct of private life, than to the government of kingdoms. He was married to Anne of Denmark, who died in 1619, eminent neither for her vices nor her virtues ; and he left only one son, Charles, then in the twenty-fifth year of his age ; and one daughter, Elizabeth, married to the elector palatine. At this period, high pride of family prevailed ; and great riches acquired by commerce, were rare. Civil honours, which now hold the first place, were then^ubordinate to the military ; and the young gentry and nobility were fond of distinguishing themselves by arms. The country life, which still prevails in England to a certain degree, was just beginning to give way to a fondness for the seduce- ments of the city ; and James discouraged as much as pos- sible this alteration of manners. " He was wont to be very earnest," lord Bacon tells us, " with the country gen- CHARLES r. 275 tlemen to go from London to their country seats ; and sometimes he would say to them, Gentlemen, at London you are like ships in a sea, which show like nothing ; but in your country villages, you are like ships in a river, which look like great things." The amount of the king's revenue in this reign was about four hundred and fifty thousand pounds ; and his ordinary disbursements are said to have exceeded this sum thirty-six thousand pounds* CHAP. XIV. The reign of Charles t. No sooner had Charles assumed the reins of go- vernment, than he issued writs for summoning a ipo^ new parliament, which, after the arrival of the prin- cess Henrietta, whom he had espoused by proxy, assem- bled at Westminster. The young prince addressed them in the language of simplicity and cordiality ; but the com- mons, though aware of the expenses of government, and that the war was undertaken in compliance with their earnest entreaties, granted a supply of one hundred and twelve thousand pounds only. The puritanical party were disgusted with the court, on account of the restraints un- der which they were held, and of the favour suspected to be granted to the catholics by the treaty of marriage. To the moderate supplies allowed by parliament, were tacked concessions in favour of civil liberty ; and Charles, who had imbibed high ideas of monarchical power, and of the prerogative of the crown, could ill brook any encroach- ments on his authority, or any want of attention to his rea- sonable demands. Though he condescended to employ entreaties with the parliament, in order to obtain the necessary aid, the com- mons remained inexorable ; and a new discovery inflamed them against |j|e court and the duke of Buckingham. When James courted the alliance with France, he had promised to furnish Lewis with eight ships, which were to be employed against the Genoese, the allies of Spain ; but when the vessels by the orders of Charles arrived at Dieppe, a strong suspicion arose that they were intended to serve against the Hugonots of Rochelle. The sailors were inflamed; and Pennington, their commander, de- 276 tttStORY OP ENiGLAND. clared, that he would rather be hanged in England for dis- obedience, than fight against bis brother protestants in France. The whole squadron sailed immediately to the Downs, where they received new orders from Bucking- ham, lord admiral, to return to Dieppe ; and a report was industriously spread, that a peace had been concluded be- tween the French king and the Hugonots. When they arrived at Dieppe, they found themselves deceived, and again returned to England, notwithstanding the magnifi- cent offers of the French* On this occasion, the commons renewed their complaints against the growth of popery ; and Charles gave a gra- cious and compliant answer to their remonstrances; but when he found that the parliament was resolved to grant him no supply, he used the pretence of the plague to dis- solve the assembly* To supply the want of parliamentary aids, Charles had recourse to the unconstitutional and unpopular expedient of issuing privy^seals, for borrowing money of his subjects ; and, by means of the money thus procured, he equipped a fleet of eighty vessels, carrying ten thousand men, which sailed to Cadiz under sir Edward Cecil, lately created vis* count WimbletoUi. The bay was full of Spanish ships of great value ; but owing to some neglect or misconduct, and the plague breaking out among the seamen and sol- diers, the fleet was obliged to return to England without effecting any thing. Charles having failed in this enterprise, was again obli- ged to have recourse to a parliament ; and though 1 fi^fi ^^ ^^^ nominated four popular leaders, to be sheriffs of their respective counties, and by that means had incapacitated them fl'om being elected members, the fer- ment of opposition still continued. The commons, indeed^ voted a supply ; but the passing of that vote into a law Was reserved till the end of the session ; and they annex- ed a condition, that they should be alloweiHo regulate and control every part of the government which displeased them. Great dissatisfaction was expressed by Charles at this treatment ; but his urgent necessities obliged him to submit* The duke of Buckingham, formerly obnoxious to the public, became every day more unpopular ; and the house of commons impeached him of various crimes and misde- CHARtflS t. 27t meanoiirs. While the commons were thus engaged, the lord-keeper, in the king's name, expressly commanded the house not to meddle with Buckingham ; and Charles threatened them, that if they did not furnish him with sup- plies, he should be obliged to try new counsels. Two mem* bers, who had been employed as managers of the impeach* ment, were thrown into prison. The commons im- mediately declared, that they would proceed no farther upon business till they had satisfaction in their privileges* Charles was obliged to release the imprisoned members ; and this attempt served only to exasperate the house still more* The commons were preparing a remonstrance against the levying of tonnage and poundage without con- sent of parliament, when the king, v/ith intemperate haste, ended the session ; and they parted in mutual ill humour* The new counsels, with which Charles had menaced the parliament, were now adopted : a commission was openly granted to compound with the catholics, and agree for dispensing with the penal laws enacted against them ; from the nobility, assistance was requested, and from the city, a loan required ; and the maritime towns, with the aid of the adjacent counties^ were compelled to equip a certain number of ships* This is the first appearance in Charles* reign of ship-money, a mode of taxation which afterwards produced such violent discontents. Though these irregular and unequal expedients would have given disgust in more tranquil times, yet Charles pro- ceeded in these invidious methods with some degree of mo* deration, till at last, under the name of a general loan, he levied a sum equal to four subsidies. Many, however, re- fused these loans ; and some were even active in encoura- ging others to insist on their common rights and privile- ges. Several were thrown into prison by warrant of the council. Of these, sir Thomas Darnel, sir John Corbet, sir Walter Earl, sir John Hevingham, and sir Edmund Hampden, had spirit enough, at their own hazard and expense, to defend the public liberties, and to demand re- leasement, not as a favour from the court, but as a matter of right. The question was brought to a solemn trial before thtj court of Kinsr's Bench ; but though sir Randolph Crew, chief justice, had been displaced as unfit for the purposes of the court, and sir Nicholas Hyde, esteemed more obse 34 278 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. quious, had obtained that high office, yet the judges went no farther than to remand the gentlemen to prison, and to refuse the bail which was oftered. The nation, indeed, was already exasperated to a very high degree, by a variety of real grievances ; and except a few courtiers and eccle- siastics, all men were dissatisfied with the measures of go- vernment, and thought that if some remedy were not speedily adopted, all hopes of preserving the freedom of the constitution might be abandoned. Great, however, ^vas the surprise, when Charles, though baflfled in every attempt against Austria, embroiled with his own subjects, and unsupplied with any treasure except what he extorted by the most invidious and most danger- ous measures, wantonly attacked France, the other great kingdom in his neighbourhood. This rash action is as- cribed to the counsels of Buckingham. When Charles married by proxy the princess Henrietta, this minister and minion had been sent to France, to grace the nuptials, and conduct the new queen into England. The beauty of his person, the elegance of his manners, and the splendour of his equipage, occasioned general admiration. Encouraged by the smiles of the court, he carried his ad- dresses to the queen of Lewis ; and, after his departure, he secretly returned, and visiting the queen, was dismissed with a reproof which savoured more of kindness than of anger. The vigilance of Richelieu soon discovered this correspondence ; and when the duke was making prepa- rations for a new embassy to Paris, a message was sent him, that his presence would not be agreeable. In a ro- mantic fit of passion, he swore, " that he would see the queen in spite of all the power of France ;" and from that moment, he determined to engage England in a war with that kingdom. He first took advantage of some quarrels excited by the queen of England's attendants ; and he persuaded Charles to dismiss all her French servants, contrary to the article? of the marriage treaty. He encouraged the English ships of war and privateers to seize vessels belonging to French merchants, and these he forthwith condemned as prizes, by a sentence of the court of admiralty ; but finding that these injuries produced only remonstrances, or at most reprisals, on the part of France, he resolved to second the CHARLES 1. 279 iatrigues of the duke of Soubize, and to undertake a mili- tary expedition against that kingdom. Soubize, and his brother, the duke of Rohan, were the leaders of the Hugonot faction, and strongly solicited the assistance of Charles. Accordingly, a fleet of one hundred sail, and an army of seven thousand men, were entrusted to the command of Buckingham ; but when the fleet ap- peared before Rochelle, the inhabitants of that city refused to admit allies of whose arrival they had received no pre- vious information, and Buckingham sailed to the isle of Rhe, where he landed his men. He finally returned to England with the loss of two thirds of his land forces, and with no other credit than the vulgar one of courage and personal bravery. Great discontents, as might be expected, prevailed among the English people. Their liberties were menaced ; illegal taxes extorted ; their commerce, which had been already injured, was totally annihilated by the French war ; the military reputation of the nation had been tarnished by two unsuccessful and ill conducted expeditions ; and all these calamities were ascribed to the obstinacy of Charles, in adhering to the counsels of Buckingham, whose ser- vices and abilities by no means deserved such unlimited confidence. In this situation of men's minds, the king and the duke dreaded the assembling of a parliament ; but the money levied, or rather extorted, under colour of iJ>oq prerogative, had been very slowly procured, and had occasioned much ill humour in the nation ; and as it appeared dangerous to renew the experiment, and a supply was absolutely necessary, it was resolved to call a parlia- ment. When the commons assembled, it was soon found that they were men of the same independent spirit with their predecessors, and that the resentment for past inju- ries was neither weakened nor forgotten. The court party did not pretend to defend the late measures in order to procure money, except on the ground of necessity, to which the king had been reduced by the conduct of the two former parliaments ; and a vote was passed, without opposition, against arbitrary imprisonments and forced loans. In return for this concession, a supply of five sub- fiidies was voted, with which the king declared himself 280 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. satisfied ; and even tears of affection started in his eye, when he was informed of this Hberahty. But the supply, though voted, was not immediately passed into a law ; and the commons resolved to employ the interval in providing some barriers to their rights and liberties, so lately violated. They enumerated all the en- croachments that had been made on their constitutional liberties, under the name of a " petition of right ;" and against these grievances an eternal remedy was to be pro- vided. The terms in which this petition was expressed, seem to have been just and reasonable, yet favourable to public freedom ; but Charles, though he had given his consent to any law for securing the rights and liberties of the people, had not expected such inroads on the preroga- tive, in regard to which he was a great stickler ; and it was not without much difficulty, and many evasions, that the royal assent was obtained to a measure which diffused a general joy through the nation. Nothing tended more to excuse, if not justify, the ex- treme rigour of the commons towards Charles, than his open encouragement and avowal of principles incompati- ble with a limited government. One doctor Main waring had preached and printed a sermon subversive of all civil liberty ; and the commons impeached him for the doctrines it contained. Mainwaring was sentenced by the peers to be imprisoned during the pleasure of the house, to be fined a thousand pounds, to be suspended for three years, and to be rendered incapable of holding any ecclesiastical dig- nity or secular office. However, no sooner was the ses- sion ended, than Mainwaring was pardoned, and promoted to a living of considerable value, and, some years after, raised to the see of St. Asaph. This action sufficiently showed the insincerity of Charles in his late concessions. If, however, the king had been perfectly sincere in sanctioning the petition of right, it was evident that the commons would still have been dissatisfied. They con- tinued to carry their scrutiny into every part of govern- ment ; and they expressly declared, that the levying of tonnage and poundage without consent of parliament, was a palpable violation of the ancient liberties of the peo^ pie, and an open infringement of the petition of right. lu order to prevent the presenting of this remonstrance, the CHARLES I. 281 king came suddenly to the parliament, and ended the ses- sion by a prorogation. Freed from the vexation of this assembly, Charles began to look towards foreign wars. A considerable fleet and army had been prepared for the relief of Rochelle, and Buckingham had gone to Portsmouth, to hasten the sail- ing of the armament. Whilst at that place, one Felton, of an ardent and melancholy mind, who had served under the duke, and had retired in discontent from the army, inflamed with private resentment, and taught by a remon- strance of the commons to consider Buckingham as the cause of every national grievance, fancied that he should do heaven acceptable service, by despatching this foe to religion and to his country. Accordingly, as the duke, in a narrow passage, was engaged in conversation with colo- nel sir Thomas Fyar, he was on a sudden, over sir Tho- mas's shoulder, struck on the breast with a knife, which he pulled out, saying, " the villain has killed me," and with these words breathed his last. No one had seen the blow, nor the person who inflicted it ; but near the door was found a hat, in which were four or five lines of the remonstrance of the commons, declaring Buckingham an enemy to the kingdom ; and it was readily concluded that this hat belonged to the assassin. In this confusion, a person without a hat was seen walking very composedly before the door ; and one crying out, " here is the fellow who killed the duke," every body ran to ask, " which is heV on which Felton answered, " I am he." When questioned at whose instigation he had committed the horrid deed, he replied, that no man living had credit enough with him, to have disposed him to such an action, and that believing he should perish in the attempt, his motives would appear in his hat. Charles received the melancholy news of the death of his favourite with an unmoved countenance ; but he re- tained during his whole life an affection for Buckingham's friends, and a prejudice against his enemies. Meanwhile, the distress of Rochelle had raised to the utmost extre- mity ; and the English being unable to relieve the place, the inhabitants, pressed by famine, were obliged to sur- render at discretion. Though for more than a century the duties of tonnage 24* 282 ttlSTORl OP ENGLAND. and poundage had been considered as the king's tccKj due, without the sanction of parhament, and had been so levied, yet Charles, now freed from the violent counsels of Buckingham, in the opening of this ses-* sion, informed the commons, that he had not taken these duties as appertaining to his hereditary prerogative, but as a gift of his people, and that he had levied tonnage and poundage out of necessity, and not by any right he as- sumed* This concession gave a temporary satisfaction ; but the commons could not be pleased; and as soon as they had obtained one point, they immediately found another to contend for. Matters of religion now formed the only grievance to which, in their opinion, they had not applied a sufficient remedy by their petition of right. The pre- sent liouse of commons, like all the preceding, in the pre- sent and two former reigns, was governed by the puritani cal party ; and they thought that they could not better serve their cause, than by stigmatizing and punishing the followers of Armenius, some of whom, by the indulgence of James and Charles, had attained the highest prefer* ments in the hierarchy. Laud, Neile, Montague, and other bishops, who were the chief supporters of episco- pacy, were also supposed to be tainted with arminianism. These men were regarded by the puritans as objects of enmity and distrust, as well on account of their political as their religious principles ; but they were protected by Charles, who wisely considered, that the most solid basis of his authority consisted in the support which he received from the hierarchy. Sir John Elliott framed a remonstrance against levying tonnage and poundage without consent of parliament ; but when the question was called for, sir John Finch, the speaker, said, " that he had a command from the king to adjourn," and immediately rose and left the chair. Tho whole house was in an uproar ; and the speaker was push- ed back into the chair, and forcibly held in it by Hollis and Valentine, till a short remonstrance was framed, and passed by acclamation. By it, papists and arminians were declared capital enemies to the commonwealth ; and those who levied, and even those who paid tonnage and pound- age, were branded with the same epithet. By the king's* order, the mace was taken from the table, and thus ended their proceedings ; and a few days after, the pariiami'-nt CHARLES I. 283 was dissolved. Sir Miles Hobart, sir Peter Hayman, Seldon, Coriton, Long, and Strode, were committed to prison, on account of the last tumult in the house, which was called sedition ; and it was with great difficulty, and after several delays, that they obtained their release. Sir John Elliot, HoUis, and Valentine, were condemned by the court of King*s Bench, for their seditious speeches and behaviour in parliament, to be imprisoned during the king's pleasure, and to pay heavy fines. These gloried in their sufferings, and would not condescend to petition the king, and express their sorrow, though promised liberty on that condition ; and Elliot, happening to die while in custody, was regarded as a martyr to the liberties of Eng- land. Charles, destitute of all regular supply, was reduced to the necessity of concluding a peace with France and Spain. No conditions were made in favour of the palatine, except that Spain promised in general to use its ij^on good offices for his restoration. The influence of these two wars on domestic affkirs, and on the dispositions of the king and people, was of the utmost consequence ; but they caused no alteration in the foreign interests of the kingdom, which were at this time in the most prospe- rous condition. After the death of Buckingham, the queen may be con- sidered as the chief friend and favourite of Charles. By her sense and spirit, as well as by her beauty, she justified the partiality of her husband; but her religion, to which she was much attached, increased the jealousy which pre- vailed against the catholics and the court. Charles had endeavoured to gain the popular leaders, by conferring offices upon them ; but the views of the king were so repugnant to those of the puritans, that the leaders whom he gained, lost from that moment all influ- ence with their party. This was the case with sir Thomas Wentworth, whom the king had afterwards created earl of Straffbrd, made president of the council of York, and deputy of Ireland, and who was regarded as his chief mi- nister and counsellor. By his eminent talents and abili- ties, Straffbrd merited all the confidence which his master reposed in him ; but as he now employed all his counsels to support the prerogative, which he had formerly endea- voured to diminish, he was detested by the ipuritans. In .■ -.^^-i- 284 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. all ecclesiastical affairs, Laud, bishop of London, had the greatest influence over the king. He was a man of virtue and talents ; but he wanted pinidence, and a flexibility of character, to open a way through difliculties and opposi- tions. His whole study w^as to exalt the dignity of the priesthood ; but he weakly imagined, that this would be best efiected by the introduction of new ceremonies and observances, and a strict regard to the external forms of religion ; and the discontented puritans affected to consi- der the church of England as relapsing fast into Romish superstition. Certain, however, it is, that Laud magnified, on every occasion, the regal authority, and treated with disdain all pretensions to a free constitution. Charles issued a proclamation, declaring, that " though his majesty has shown, by frequent meetings with his peo- ple, his love to the use of parliaments ; yet the late abuse having, for the present, driven him unwillingly out of that course, he will account it presumption for any one to pre- scribe to him any time for the calling of that assembly. '^* This was generally considered as a declaration, that Charles did not intend to summon any more parliaments ; and every measure of the king*s tended to confirm this suspicion, so disagreeable to the people. Tonnage and poundage continued to be levied by the royal authority alone ; and the king had recourse to va- rious unconstitutional expedients of raising money by vir- tue of his prerogative, in every possible way, contrary not only to the rights of the people, but in many instances also in direct opposition to their general feelings and pre- judices. The severities of the star-chamber and high commission court were revived, with all their force and malignity ; and being exercised against those who were the champions of freedom, and who triumph*?d in their sufferings, the government became still more odious. Frynne, a barrister, having written a book, intituled His- trio-Mastyx, in which he censured not only stage-plays, music and dancing, but also hunting, public festivals, christmas-keeping, bonfires, and May-poles, was indicted in the star-chamber as a libeller, merely because the king and queen frequented the theatres, and the queen some- times acted a part in pastorals and interludes represented at court. The star-chamber sentenced him to lose both his ears, to "^tand in the pillory, to pay a fine" of five thou- CHARLES I. 285 sand pounds, and to be imprisoned during life. This man was a champion among the puritans ; and it was probably with a view of mortifying that sect, that he was condemn- ed to such a severe and ignominious punishment. Charles made a journey to Scotland, attended by the court, in order to hold a parliament there, and to pass through the ceremony of his coronation. Af- , ^oo ter his return, on the death of archbishop Abbot, he conferred the see of Canterbury on Laud, and that of London on Juxton, a person of great integrity, mildness, and humanity. Ship-money was now levied by virtue of the preroga- tive ; and though the amount of the whole tax little ex- ceeded two hundred thousand pounds, and was equally assessed, and entirely expended on the ipoj^ navy, yet as it was wholly arbitrary, the discontents it excited, and the irregular means by which it was en- forced, produced the most important consequences. The good effects of a navy, however, were soon apparent. A fleet of sixty sail attacked the herring fisheries of the Dutch, who consented to pay thirty thousand pounds for a license for one year ; and a squadron was sent against Saliee, and destroyed that receptacle of pirates, by whom the English commerce, and even the English coasts, had been long infested. Burton, a divine, and Bastwick, a physician, were tried in the star-chamber for seditious and schismatical libels, and condemned to the same punishment as Prynne. The rigours of the staF-chamber, which had increased in seve- rity since the promotion of Laud, induced the leaders of the puritans to endeavour to ship themselves off for Ame- rica, where others of their sect had laid the foundation of a free government ; but the council, dreading the conse- quences of a disaffected colony, a proclamation was issued to prevent their sailing; and thus sir Arthur Haselrig, John Hampden, John Pym, and Oliver Cromwell, were detained in England, "after having embarked on board of vessels in the river Thames, for the purpose of abandon- ing their native country for ever. It would be impossible, in this short work, to enter into a detail of the various means employed for abridging or destroying the few remaining liberties of the people. It may be sufficient to observe, that the unconstitutional acts 286 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. of Charles, and the oppression which was universally felt, produced murmurs and complaints, and at length re- sistance. John Hampden, who had been detained in England against his will, has deserved well of his country for the bold stand which he made in defence of its laws and liber- ties. Rather tlian tamely submit to so illegal an imposi- tion as the levying of ship money, he resolved to abide the event of a legal prosecution, though the sum in which he was rated did not exceed twenty shillings. The case was argued during twelve days, in the exchequer-chamber, be- fore all the judges of England ; and the attention of the nation was strongly excited to every circumstance of this celebrated trial. The event was easily foreseen ; the pre- judiced judges, with the exception of four of them, gave sentence in favour of the crown. Hampden, however, obtained by the trial the end for which he had generously sacrificed his safety and his quiet ; the people were roused from their lethargy, and became fully sensible of the dan- ger to which their liberties were exposed. In this state of discontent and despondency, Charles at- tempted to introduce episcopacy into Scotland : and by this attempt, he alienated the affections of his Scottish subjects, and threw both kingdoms into a flame. Against the combination of the Scots, who were contending for what they considered as dearer to them than life, ^'nnQ the king had nothing to oppose but a proclamation. This was instantly encountered by a public protes- tation ; and the insurrection which ha9 been advancing by a gradual and slow progress, now blazed up at once. No disorder, however, attended it. On the contrary, a new order immediately took place. Four tables, as they were called, were formed in Edinburgh. One consisted of nobility, another of gentry, a third of ministers, and a fourth of burgesses. In the hands of the four tables the whole authority of the kingdom was placed ; and among the first acts of their government was the production of the COVENANT. This covenant consisted, first, of a renunciation of po- pery, formerly signed by James in his youth ; and this was followed by a bond of union, by which the subscribers obliged themselves to resist rehgious innovations, and to defend each other against all opposition whatever. Peo- CHARLES I. 287 f)le of every rank and condition hastened to sign this cove- nant ; and so general was the contagion, that it seized the very ministers and counsellors of the king. Charles was now willing entirely to abolish the canons, the liturgy, and the high commission court ; and he gave authority to summon first an assembly, then a parliament, where eveiy national grievance should be redressed ; but he wished on any terms to retain episcopacy in the church of Scotland, The covenanters saw that it would be ne- cessary to retain their religious tenets by military force ; and the Dutch and French, who sought occasion for re- venge, on account of a former misunderstanding, secretly fomented the commotions in Scotland, and supplied the covenanters with money and arms. The principal re- source, however, of the Scottish malcontents, was in their own vigour and abilifies. The earl of Argyle became the chief leader of the party ; and Leslie, a soldier of expe- rience and merit, was intrusted with the command of their forces. Notwithstanding Charles's aversion to sanguinary mea- sures, his attachment to the hierarchy prevailed ; and he equipped a fleet, and levied a considerable army, which he joined himself at Berwick. Dreading, however, the con- sequences of a defeat, he suddenly concluded a peace, by which it was stipulated, that he should withdraw his fleet and array, that the Scots should dismiss their forces, that the king's authority should be acknowledged, and that » general assembly and parliament should be immediately convoked, in ord#r to compose all differences. When the assembly met, they voted episcopacy to be unla\^'ful in the church of Scotland : Charles was only willing to allow it to be contrary to the constitutions of the church. They stigmatized the liturgy and canons as po- pish : he agreed simply to abolish them. They denom' - nated the high commission tyranny : he was content to set it aside. The parliament, which sat after the assembly, advanced pretensions which tended to diminish the civil power of the monarch ; and they were proceeding to ratify the acts of the assembly, when they were prorogued by the order of Charles. And on account of these claims, which might have been foreseen, the war was renewed with great advantage on the side of the covenanters, and disadvantages on that of the king. 288 UlSTOiiY OP ENGLA]&f£». The covenanters, when they dismissed their troops, had cautiously warned them to be ready at a moment's notice ; and the rehgious zeal with which they were inspi- ifilfi I'^d, made them fly to their standards as soon as surafeioned ; but th-e king, with great difficulty, drew together an army, which he soon discovered that he was unable to support. Charles, therefore^ found himself under the necessity of calling a parliament, after an inter- mission of eleven years ; but after the king had tried many irregular methods of taxation, and after multiplied disgust? given to the puritans, who sympathized with their discon- tented brethren in Scotland ; above all, when he consider^ ed the spirit with which former parliaments had been ac- tuated, he could feel little confidence in a measure which his necessities had obliged him to adopt* Instead of sup* plies, he was assailed with murmurs and complaints. Charles, finding that ship money, in particular, gave great alarm and disgust, declared that he never intended to make a constant revenue of it, and that all the money levied had been faithfully applied ; and he offered a total renuncia- tion of that obnoxious claim, by any law which the com- mons might think proper to frame. In return, he only asked a supply of twelve subsidies, about six hundred thousand pounds, and that payable in three years. To the partisans o^ the court, who urged a reasonable confidence in the king, and a supply of his present wants, the popular leaders replied, that it was the ancient prac- tice of parliament to give grievances the precedency of supply ; and that by bargaining for th5 remission of an unconstitutional duty, they would in a manner ratify the authority by which it had been levied. These reasons, joined to so many causes of ill-humour, produced their effect on the majority ; and some affirmed, that the amount of twelves subsidies was a gi'eater sum than could be found in all England. Such were the happy ignorance and in- experience of those times, in regard to taxation ! The king, seeing that the same principles still prevailed, which had occasioned him so mujch disturbance in the for- mer parliaments, and being informed that a vote was about to pass, which would blast his revenue of ship-money, with- out allowinff him any compensation in return, formed the Uasty resolution of dissolving the assembly, a measure of Elizabeth, James I. , Charles I. wider Charles II. James 11. CHARl ES I. 289 which he soon after heartily repented, and for which he was severely blamed. Charles, disappointed of parliamentary subsidies, was obliged to have recourse again to his usual expedients ; and new exactions and acts of assumed authority served only to increase the general discontent. With some diffi- culty he collected sufficient means for marching his army, consisting of nineteen thousand foot, and two thousand horse, under the earls of NorthunLberland and Strafford, and lord Conway. The Scottish army, which was some- what superior, had already entered England, as they pre- tended, with no other view than to obtain access to the king's presence, and to lay their humble petition at his feet. At Newburn upon Tyne, a detachment under Con- way seemed to dispute the passage of that river. The Scots first entreated them not to stop them in their march to their gracious sovereign ; and then attacked them with great bravery, killed several, and chased the remainder from their ground. Such a panic then seized the whole English army, that the forces at Newcastle fled immedi- ately to Durham, and afterwards into Yorkshire. The Scots took possession of Newcastle ; and, in order to prevent their advancing upon him, the king agreed to a treaty, and named sixteen English noblemen, who were all popular men, to meet eleven Scottish commissioners at Rippon. An address arrived from the city of London, petitioning for a parliament ; and Charles, in despair of being able to stem the torrent, at last determined to yield to it, and de- clared that it was his wish to meet the representatives of his people. As many difficulties occurred in the negotia- tions with the Scots, it was proposed, likewise, to transfer the treaty from Rippon to London, a proposal willingly embraced by the commissioners of that nation, who were sure of treating with advantage, in a place where the king would have more enemies and they more friends. The causes of disgust which, for more than thirty years, had been multiplying in England, were now arrived at full maturity. No sooner had the house of commons assembled, than they impeached Strafford, who tl»4rt had incurred the resentment of the three kingdoms, by different services rendered to his unpopular master. Pym enumerated all the grievances under which the na- 2S 290 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. tion laboured ; and after several hours spent in invective or debate, the impeacnment of Strafford was voted ; and Pym vras chosen to carry it up to the lords. Strafford, who had just entered the house of peers, was immediately ordered into custody, with symptoms of violent prejudice in his judges as well as in his prosecutors. An impeachment of high treason was also voted against Laud, who was committed to custody ; and the lord-keeper Finch, and secretary Windebank, were charged with the same crime; but these ministers, conscious of their dan- • ger, escaped to the continent. In short, all the officers and servants of the crown, who had been guilty of any obnoxious or oppressive measure, were called upon to an- swer for their conduct ; and even the judges, who had given their vote against Hampden, in the tiial of ship money, were accused before the peers, and obliged to find security for their appearance. Thus, in a short time, the whole sovereign power was transferred to the commons ; and this was the time when genius and talents, freed from the restraint of authority, began to display themselves. Pym, Hampden, Si. John, Hollis, and Vane, greatly distinguished themselves by their various endowments ; and even men of more moderate talents, and of different principles, caught a portion of the same spirit from tlie situation in which they were placed. The harangues of members, now first pubhshed, kept alive the discontents against the king's admiiii^^tration ; and the sentence against Prynne, Bastwick, and Burton, being reversed by parliament, these writers were a^ain tui-n- ed loose upon the public, and increased the generai fxsrment. From necessity, the king remained entirely pasbive du- ring these violent proceedings. *' You have taken the whole machine of government to pieces," said Charles, in a speech to parliament ; " a practice frequent wich skiifui artists, when they desire to clean the wheels from sny rwat which may have grown upon them." " The engine, ' con- tinued he, " may again be restored to its former 'tse and motions, provided it be put up entire, so as not a ftn of it be wanting." But this was far from the intentioriol the commons, who, like all violent reformers, destroyed the whole machine, instead of removing only such p.arts as might justly be deemed superfluous and injurious. The commons, besides overawing their opponents, CHARLES L. 291 thought it n-ecessary to encourage their friends and adhe- rents ; and, with this view, they voted the Scots a subsis- tence of eight hundred and fifty pounds a day, and St. Antiioline's church was assigned them for their devotions, where their chaplains began to practise the presbyterian form of worship, to which multitudes of all ranks resorted. The most effectual expedient for procuring the favour of the zealous Scots, was the promotion of the presbyterian discipline and worship throughout England ; and to this in- , novation the popular leaders among the commons, as well as their more devoted partisans, were sufficiently inclined. Petitions against the church were framed in different parts of the kingdom ; and a bill was introduced, prohibit- ing the clergy from holding any civil office, and of course depriving the bishops of a seat 'in the house of peers. This bill, however, was rejected in the upper house by a great majority ; but the puritans, far from being discouraged by this opposition, immediately brought in another bill for the total abolition of episcopacy, though they thought pro- per to suffer it to sleep till a more favourable opportunity. The commons next issued orders for demolishing all images, altars, and crucifixes ; and so great was the ab- horrence against the latter, that some of the most zealous would not suffer one piece of wood or stone to lie over another at right angles. Most of the established ceremo- nies of religious worship, and the ordinary vestments of its ministers, were considered as savouring of popery; and the professors of that religion, in particular, were treated with the utmost harshness and indignity, from which the queen-mother, who had been obliged by some court in- trigues to retire to England, and even the queen herself, were not exempt. Charles, finding by experience the ill effects of his arbi- trary measures, now endeavoured to regain the confidence of his people, by concessions, and a conformity to their inclinations. He passed a bill, by which the right of grant- ing the duties of tonnage and poundage was asserted as belonging to the commons alone ; and with some difficulty he consented to a law for triennial parliaments, which was clogged with such conditions, that the legitimate power of a king was reduced almost to a shadow. A change of ministers, as well as measures, was also resolved on ; ana 293 HISTORY OF ENGLAND in one day several new privy-counsellors were sworn, all of the popular party. The end on which the king was most intent in changing his ministers was, to save the life of the earl of Strafford ; but the impeachment of that unfortunate nobleman was pushed on with the utmost vigour ; and, after long and solemn preparations, was brought to a final issue. Twenty- eight articles were exhibited against him ; but though four months had been employed by the managers, and all Strafford's answers were extemporaneous, it appears from comparison, that he was not only guiltless of trea- iPil ^'^^^' ^"^ ^^^ some degree free from censure, if we make allowance for human infirmities exposed to such difficult circumstances. The accusation and defence lasted eighteen days, enuring which Straffoi'd conducted himself with a degree of firmness, moderation, and wisdom, tliat extorted the admiration of his most bitter enemies; but the commons were determined to convict him ; and, therefore, on the most incompetent evidence, or rather against usual legal evidence, the bill of attainder passed with no greater opposition than that of fifty-nine votes. After the bill had passed the commons, the puritanical pulpits resounded with the necessity of executing justice on great delinquents ; about six thousand armed men sur- rounded the houses of parliament ; and the populace, worked up to a degree of frenzy by their leaders, flocked round Whitehall, where the king resided, and accompa- nied their demands against Strafford with the most open menaces. About eighty peers had constantly attended Strafford's trial ; but such were the apprehensions of the popular tu- mults, that only forty-five were present when the bill of attainder was brought into the upper house ; yet of these, nineteen had the courage to vote against it. On whichr ever side the king cast his eyes, he saw no resource or se- curity. All his sei*vants, consulting their own safety rather than their master's honour, declined to interpose their advice between him and his parliament ; and the queen, terrified with the appearance of so great a danger, pressed him to satisfy his people in this demand. Juxton alone, whose courage was not inferior to his other virtues, counselled the king not to act contrary to his conscience. Strafford, hearing of the irresolution and anxiety of CHARLES I. 293 Charles, wrote to the king, and with a noble effort of mag- nanimity entreated him, for the sake of public peace, to put an end to his unfortunate, however innocent life, and to quiet the tumultuous populace, hy granting the request for which they were so importunate. *' In this," added he, *' my consent will more acquit you to God than all the world can do besides. To a willing man there is no injury," After suffering the most agonizing conflicts, Charles at last grant^ed a commission to four noblemen to give his as- sent to the bill ; and he also empowered them, at the same time, to sanction a bill which was still more fatal to his interests, and by which the parliament could neither be adjourned nor dissolved without their own consent. Secretary Carleton was sent by the king to inform Straf- ford of the final result ; and the unhappy earl at first ap- peared surprised ; but soon collecting his -native courage, he prepared for the fatal event, which was to take place after an interval of three days. During this period, Charles endeavoured to obtain from the parliament a mitigation of his sentence, or at least some delay, but was refused both requests. Strafibrd, in passing from his apartments to Tower-hill, where the scaffold was erected, stopped under Laud's win- dows, and entreated the assistance of his prayers. The aged primate, dissolved in tears, pronounced a tender blessing on his departing friend, and sunk into the arms of his attendants. Strafford, however, still superior to his fate, passed on with an elated countenance, and an air of dignity ; and his mind maintained its unbroken resolution amidst the terrors of death, and the unfeeling exukations of his misguided enemies. His speech on tiie scaffold was replete with fortitude and christian hope, and at one blow he was launched into eternity. Thus perished, in the forty-ninth year of his age, one of the most eminent personages that has appeared in Eng- land, and the most faithful of the adherents of Charles ; but his death was so far from producing that calm which the king had expected from the sacrifice, that the commons renewed their claims, extorted an abolition of the high commission and star-chamber courts, and remedied various other abuses which militated against the principles of con- stitutional freedom. During this busy period, the princess Mary had been 25* 294 HISTORY OF ENGLAND- married to William, prince of Orange, with the approba tion of parliament. A small committee of both house» was appointed to attend the king into Scotland, which he had resolved to visit ; and CharleSj.despoiled in England of a considerable part of his authority, arrived in Scotland only to abdicate the small share which remained to him in that kingdom. Charles, unable to resist, had been obliged to yield to the Irish, as well as to the Scottish and English parlia- ments ; and the commons of England, jealous of a stand- ing army in Ireland, entirely attached to the king, pre- vailed on his majesty, contrary to his own judgment, to disband it. Though the animosity of the Irish against the English nation appeared to be extinguished, they were no sooner freed from the dread of a military force, than a gentleman, called Roger More, formed the project of expelling the English, and asserting the independence of his native country. This man maintained a close correspondence with lord Maguire and sir Phelim O^Neale, the most pow- erful of the old Irish ; and he secretly went from chieftain to chieftain, and roused up every latent priifciple of dis- content. The reasons of More engaged all the heads of the native Irish in the conspiracy- The insurrection be- came general ; and a massacre of the English commenced, in which, when it took place, neither age, sex^ nor condi- tion, was spared. The old, the young, the vigorous, and the infirm, underwent a like fate, and were confounded in one common ruin. In vain was recourse had to relations or friends ; the dearest ties were torn asunder without pity or remorse ; and death was dealt by that hand, from which protection was implored and expected. Death, however, was the slightest punishment inflicted Dy the Irish. All the tortures which wanton cruelty could devise^ all the lingering pains of body, and anguish of mind, which malicious ingenuity could invent, were now put in practice ; and the generous nature of More was shocked at the recital of such enormous cruelties ; but he found that his authority, though sufficient to excite the Irish to an insurrection, was unable to restrain their inhu- manity. The saving of Dublin alone preserved in Ireland the remains of the English name. The gates of that city, CHARLES I. 295 though thuoroiisly opened, received the wretched suppli- cants, and presented to the view a scene of human misery beyond description. Diseases of unknown name and spe- cies, derived from their muhiplied distresses, seized many, and put a period to their hves ; others, having now leisure to reflect on their severe loss of friends and fortune, cursed that being which they had preserved. Charles found himself obliged in this exigency to have recourse to parliament ; but that assembly manifested the same opposition to the king in which they had separated ; and the increasing of their own authority, and the dimi- nishing of the regal power, were the objects still pursued. By assuming the total management of the war in Ireland, they deprived the crown of its executive power ; and it was even roundly insinuated, that the pernicious counsels by which Charles had been guided, had given rise to the popish rebellion. To render the attack on royalty more systematic, the commons framed a general remonstrance of the state of the nation, comprising every real or supposed grievance, from the accession of Charles ; and this was published without being carried up to the house of peers for their assent and concurrence. This violent measure extremely agitated the sober and reflecting ; and Charles immediately published an answer to the remonstrance, in which he made the warmest pro- testations of his sincere attachment to the established reli- gion, expatiated with truth on the great concessions he had lately made in favour of civil liberty, and complained of the reproaches with which his person and government were attacked ; but the ears of the people were prejudiced against him, and nothing he could offer appeared to them a sufficient apology for his former misconduct. The commons resumed their encroachments ; and every measure pursued by them showed their determined resolu- tion to reform the whole fabric of civil and religious go- vernment. The majority of the peers, of course, adhered to the king, and saw the depression of their own order in the usurpations on the crown ; but some of them, finding their credit high with the nation, ventured to encourage those popular disorders, which they vainly imagined they could hereafter regulate and control. The pulpits resounded with the dangers which threaten 296 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. ed religion ; and the populace crowded round Whitehall, and threw out menaces against Charles himself. Several gentlemen now ofTered their services to the king ; and be- tween them and the rabble frequent skirmishes took place. By way of reproach, these gentlemen gave the mobility the appellation of Roundheads, on account of the short cropt hair which they wore ; and the latter retorted by calling them Cavaliei's, Thus the nation, already sufficiently divided by religious and civil disputes, was supplied w^ith party names, under which the factious might rendezvous and signalize their mutual hatred. "W illiams, archbishop of York, having been abused by the populace, hastily called a meeting of his brethren, and prevailed on them to state, in an address to the king, thai though they had an undoubted right to sit in parliament, they could i.o longer attend with safety, and therefore pro- tested against all laws which should be made during their absence. This ill-timed protestation afforded an oppor- tunity of joy and triumph to the commons. An impeach- ment of high-treason was immediately sent up against the bishops, as endeavouring to invalidate the authority of the legislature ; and, in consequence, they were sequestered from parliament, and committed to custody. A few days after, Charles was betrayed into a very fatal act of indiscretion, to which all the ensuing disor- lfi4.o ^^^^ ^"^ ^^^^ wars ought immediately and di- '^ rectly be ascribed. Imputing the increasing inso- lence of the commons to his too great facility, he was ad- vised to exert the vigour of a sovereign, and punish the daring usurpations of his subjects. Accordingly, Herbert, attorney-general, appeared in the house of peers, and, in his majesty's name, entered an accusation of high -treason against lord Kimbolton, and five commoners, Hollis, Ha- selrig, Hampden, Pym, and Strode, for having endeavour- ed to subvert the fundamental laws and government of the kingdom, and to alienate the affections of the people. A sergeant-at-arms, in the king's name, demanded of the house the five members ; and being sent back without any positive answer, Charles resolved next day to go in person to the house, and see his orders executed. Tiie members, informed of the design, had time to with- draw, a moment before the king entered, who, leaving his retinue at the door, advanced alone through the lobby ; CHARLES I. 297 and the speaker withdrawing, his majesty took possession of the chair. The king told the house, thiat he must have the accused persons produced, but that he would proceed against them in a fair and legal way. The commons were in the utmost disorder ; and when Charles was departing, some members cried aloud, " privilege ! privilege !" and the house immediately adjourned till next day. The same evening, the accused members removed into the city ; and the citizens were the whole night under arms. Next morning, Charles ordered the lord-mayor to summon a common council, which he attended himself, and told them, that he had accused certain men of high treason, against whom he would proceed in a legal way, and there- fore presumed that they would not meet with protection in the city. After many gracious expressions, he left the hall without receiving the applause which he expected ; and, in passing through the streets, he heard the cry of *' privilege of parliament" resounding from all quarters. The king, apprehensive of personal danger, retired to Hampton-court, overwhelmed with grief, shame, and re- morse. Fully sensible of his imprudence, he wished to waive all thoughts of a prosecution, and offered any repara- tion to the house for the breach of privilege, of which, he acknowledged, they had reason to complain. The parlia- ment, however, were resolved to accept of no satisfaction. Hitherto, a gi^eat majority of the lords had adhered to the king, but they now yielded to the torrent ; and the pressing bill, with its preamble, and the bill against bishops voting in parliament, were now passed. The queen pre- vailed with Charles to give his assent to these l>ills, in hopes of appeasing for a time the rage of the people, and of gain- ing for her an opportunity of withdrawing into Holland. These concessions, however, only paved the way for more demands ; and the parliament proceeded with hasty steps to monopolize all the legislative and executive power. That his consent to the militia bill might not be extorted by violence, the king retired to York, attended by his two sons. Here he found a zeal and attachment to which he had not been lately accustomed ; and from all parts of England, the chief nobility and gentry offered their alle- giance, and exhorted him to save himself and them from the slaveiy with which they were threatened. Each party now wished to throw on the other the odium 298 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. of commencing a civil war ; and while both j/repared for an event which they deemed inevitable, the war of the pen preceded that of the sword, and daily sharpened the huniours of the opposite parties. Here Charles had a double advantage. Not only his cause was now unques- tionably the best ; but it was defended by lord Falkland, who had accepted the office of secretary, and who adorned the purest virtue with the riche&t gifts of nature, and the most valuable acquisitions of learning. It was evident, however, that keener weapons than ma- nifestoes, remonstrances, and declarations, must deter- mine the dispute. To the ordinance of the parliament concerning the militia, the king opposed his commissions of array ; and the counties obeyed the one or the other, according as they stood affected. Hull contained a large magazine of arms ; and it being suspected that sir John Hotham, the governor, was not much inclined to the par- liament, the king presented himself before the place, in hopes of quietly obtaining possession of it. The governor, however, shut the gates, and refused to admit the king with only twenty attendants. Charles immediately pro- claimed him a traitor ; but the parliament justified and applauded the action. Both sides now levied troops with the utmost activity. The parliamentary army was given to the earl of Essex, and in London no less than four thousand persons enlisted in it in one day. The splendour of nobility, however, with which the king was surrounded, much eclipsed the appearance at Westminster. Lord-keeper Littleton, and above forty peers of the first rank, attended Charles ; while the house of lords seldom consisted of more than six- teen members. The parliament, in order that they might reduce the king to despair of a compromise, sent him their demands in nineteen propositions ; but they appeared so extravagant, that Charles replied, " Should I grant these demands, I may be waited on bare-headed ; the title of majesty may be continued to me ; but as to true and real power, I should remain but the outside, but the picture, but the sign of a king." War on any terms seemed to the king and his counsellors preferable to such ignominious conditions ; and, therefore, collecting some forces, he ad- vanced southAvard, and at Nottingham erected the royal standard, the open signal of civil war. CHARLES r. 299 When two names so sacred in the English constitution as those of King and Parliament were set in opposition, it is no wonder that the people, divided in their choice, were agitated with the most violent animosities and fac- tions. The nobility and more considerable gentry, dread- ing a total subversion of order, generally enlisted them- selves in defence of the king ; while most of the corpora- tions, as being republican in their principles of government, took part with the parliament. Never was a quarrel more unequal, than seemed at first that between the contending parties ; almost every advan- tage lay on the side of the parliament, which had seized the king's revenues, and converted the supplies to their own use ; and the torrent of general affection ran also to the parliament. The king's adherents were stigmatized with the epithets of wicked and malignant; while their adversaries were denominated the godly and tc ell- affected. The low condition in which the king appeared at Not- tingham, where his infantry, besides the trained bands of the county, did not exceed three hundred, and his cavalry eight hundred, confirmed the contempt pf the parliament. Their forces, stationed at Northampton, consisted of above six thousand men, well armed and appointed ; and had these troops advanced upon the king, they must soon have dissipated the small force which Charles had assembled ; but it was probably hoped, that the royalists, sensible of their feeble condition, and slender resources, would dis- perse of themselves, and leave their adversaries a blood- less victory. On a message being sent by Charles, with overtures for an accommodation, the parliament demanded as a preli- minary that the king should dismiss his forces, and giv'e up delinquents to their justice ; and both parties believed, that by this message and reply, the people would be ren- dered fully sensible of the intentions of each. In the mean time, Portsmouth, which had declared for the king, was obliged to surrender to the parliamentary for- ces ; and the marquis of Hertford, whom Charles had ap- pointed general of the western counties, and had drawn together a small army, being attacked by a considerable force under the earl of Bedford, was obliged to pass over into Wales, leaving sir Ralph Hopton, sir John Berkley, 300 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. and others, with about one hundred and twenty horse, to march into Cornwall. The parliamentary army, amounting to fifteen thousand men, under the earl of Essex, now advanced to Northamp- ton ; and the king withdrew to Shrewsbury, where he made a public declaration of his resolution to maintain the esta- blished religion, and to govern in future by the laws and customs of the kingdom. While he lay at Shrewsbury, he received the nev/s of the first action of any consequence, which had yet taken place, and in which he was successful. On the appearance of civil commotions in England, the princes Rupert and Maurice, sons of the unfortunate pala- tine, and nephews of Charles, had offered their services to the king ; and the former, at that time, commanded a body of horse, which had been sent to Worcester, in order to watch the motions of Essex, who was marching towards that city. A detached party, under colonel Sandys, was completely routed, and their leader killed ; and this action acquired to prince Rupert that character for promptitude and courage, which he eminently displayed during the Nvhole course of the war. The king, now mustering his army, found it to amount to ten thousand men. The earl of Lindsey was general, prince Rupert commanded the horse, sir Jacob Astley the foot, and lord Bernard Stewart was at the head of a troop of guards, whose estates and revenue, according to lord Clarendon, were at least equal to those of all the mem- bers, who, at the commencement of the war, voted in both houses. With this army the king left Shrewsbury, resolved to bring on an action as soon as possible. The royal army arrived in the neighbourhood o-f Banbury, while that of the parliament was at Keinton, only a few miles distant. Both parties advancing, they met at Edge-hill, and fought with various success. The cavalry and the right wing of the parliament army were defeated ; but sir William Bal- four, who commanded the reserve of Essex, perceiving the enemy in disorder, and busied in plundering, attacked the king's infantry, and made a dreadful havoc. The earl of Lindsey was mortally wounded, and taken prisoner; and sir Edmund Verney, the king's standard bearer, was kill- ed. The two armies gradually recovered their ranks, but neither of them had courage for a new attack. The eail CHAHtES I* 301 of Essex retired to Warwick, and Charles continued his inarch to Oxford, the only town at his devotion. After the royai army had been refreshed and recruited, the king advanced to Reading, from which, on the ap- proach of a body of horse, the governor and garrison being- seized with a panic, .fled precipitately to London* The parliament, who had expected a bloodless Victoiy over Charles, were now alarmed at the near approach of the royal army, and voted an address for a treaty. The king named Windsor as the place of conference ; but Essex naving arrived at London, Charles attacked two regiments quartered at Brentford, beat them from that village, and took about five hundred prisoners. Loud complaints were raised against this attack, pending a negotiation ; and the city, inflamed with resentment, joined its trained bands to the parliamentary army, which, by that means, was ren- dered much superior to that of the king, who, in conse- quence, judged it prudent to retire to Reading, and from thence to Oxford. The conferences between the king and parliament had commenced without any cessation of hostilities ; and it was soon found, that there was no probability of coming to an agreement* The earl of Essex laid i^j^q siege to Reading ; mid Fielding, the governor, con- sented to yield the town, on condition that he should bring off the garrison, and deliver up deserters. For this last article, so ignominious in itself, and so prejudicial to the king*s interests, the governor was tried by a council of war, and condemned to lose his life, but the sentence was afterwards remitted. In the north, lord Fairfax commanded for the parlia- ment, and the earl of Newcastle tor the king. The latter United in a league for the king, the counties of Northum- berland, Cumberland, Westmoreland, and Durham, and afterwards engaged some other counties in the association. Finding that Fairfax was making some progress in York- shire, he advanced with a body of four thousand men, and took possession of York ; and at Tadcaster he attacked the forces of the parliament, and dislodged them ; but bis victory was not decisive. Sir William Waller began to distinguish himself as a parliamentary general. After taking Winchester and Chichester, he defeated lord Herbert, who had laid sie«-e 26 302 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. to Gloucester, with a considerable body of forces levied in Wales. In the west, sir Bevil Granville, sir Ralph Hopton, sir Nicholas Slanning, Arundel, and Trevannion, had, at their own charges, raised an army for the king, and successively defeated the parliamentary generals, Ruthven and lord Stamford, on Bradoc Down, and at Stratton. After this success, the attention of both king and parliament was directed to the west ; and the marquis of Hertford and prince Maurice having joined the Cornish army, over-ran the county of Devon, and threatened that of Somerset. Waller advanced with a considerable force to check their progress ; and the two armies met at Lansdown, near Bath, and fought a pitched battle, but without any deci- sive event. The gallant Granville, however, was killed in the action, and Hopton was dangerously wounded The royalists next attempted to march eastwards, and join the king's forces at Oxford ; but Waller hanging on their rear, a battje took place at Round way-down, near Devizes, in which the parliamentary army was entirely routed and dis- persed. This important victory struck the parliament with dismay, which was increased by the death of the celebrated Hampden, who fell in a skirmish at Chalgrove, in Oxfordshire. Many were the virtues and talents of this eminent man, whose valour in war equalled his eloquence in the senate, and his resolution at the bar ; and Charles valued him so highly, that when he heard of his being wounded, he offered to send his own surgeon to attend him. Essex, discouraged by this event, retired towards Lon- don ; and the king, freed from the enemy, sent his army westward, under prince Rupert, who besieged and took the city of Bristol. Charles joined the camp at Bristol ; and some strongly urged him to march directly to London, where all was confusion and dismay, as the most likely means of rendering the royal cause successful over its ad- versaries ; but the resolution of investing the city of Glou- cester was fatally adopted. In the beginning of the summer, a combination had been formed, by Edmund Waller, the poet, a member of thi( lower house, to oblige the parliament to accept of rea- 50 lable conditions, and to restore peace to the nation. fi r the execution of this project, he associated with him Tnn iins, his brother-in-law, and Chaloner, Uie friend of CHARLES I. 803 Tomkins, whose influence in the city was considerable ; but iiitelligence of tlie design being conveyed to Pym, tliey V >: . tried and condemned by a court martial ; and Tom- ij^t- ciud Chaloner were executed. Waller, with much dif- ^a-t- lity, escaped, on paying a fine often thousand pounds. After relieving Gloucester, besieged by the king, Essex proceeded towards London ; but when he reached New- bury, he found that the royal army already occupied the place, and that an action was unavoidable. On both sides, the battle was fought with desperate valour ; but night put an end to the action, and left the victory undecided. Es- sex continued to march to London ; and the king follow- ing, retook Reading, in which he placed a garrison. In the battle of Newbury, fell Lucius Carey, viscount Falk- land, secretary to the king ; a man eminent for his abili- ties, and for every virtue which adorns humanity. On the morning of the day on which he met his fate, he had shown more than usual care in dressing himself, and gave for a reason, that the enemy might not find his body in any slo- venly indecent situation. " I am weary," he subjoined, *' of the times, and foresee much misery to my country; but believe I shall be out of it ere night." He was only thirty-four years of age at the time of his death. In the north, the influence and popularity of the earl, now created marquis of Newcastle, had raised a consider- able force for the king ; but he was opposed by two men, on whom the event of the war finally depended, and who began about this time to be distinguished for their va- lour and military conduct. These were sir Thomas Fair- fax, son of the lord of that name, and Oliver Cromwell. The former gained a considerable victory at Wakefield, and the latter at Gainsborough ; but these defeats of the royalists were more than compensated by the total defeat of lord Fairfax, at Atherston Moor. After tliis vic- tory, Newcastle sat down with his army before Hull ; but Hotham, the former goverior, h?iving expressed an inten- tion to favour the king's interest, had some time before been sent to London, where he and his son fell victims to the severity of the parliament. Newcastle suff*ered so much by a sally of the garrison, that he was obliged to raise the siege ; and about the same hme, Manchester having joined Cromwell and young Fair- fax, obtained a considerable victory over the royalists at 304 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Horncastle. Thus fortune seemed to balance her favours ; but the king's party still remained much superior in the north ; and had it not been for the garrison of Hull, which awed Yorkshire, a conjunction of the northern forces with the ai'my of the south had probably enabled Charles to march directly to London, and finish the war, instead of wasting both his time and resources in the siege of Glou- cester. As the event became more doubtful, both parties sought for assistance ; the parliament in Scotland, and the king in Ireland. The former easily prevailed on the Scottish co- venanters to espouse their cause, by joining in a solemn league and covenant, mutually to defend each other against all opponents, and to promote their respective aims and designs ; and Charles, having agreed to a cessation of hostilities in Ireland, where the English had regained the ascendancy, procured considerable bodies of troops from that kingdom. The king, that he might make preparations for the en- suing campaign, endeavoured to avail himself of the ap- pearance of a parliament, and summoned to Oxford 1 fi J.i ^^^ ^^® members of either house who adhered to his interest. A great majority of the peers attended him ; but the commons were not half so numerous as those who sat at Westminster. The parliament at Westminster having voted an excise on beer, wine, and other commo- dities, those at Oxford imitated the example, and conferred that revenue on the king ; and this was the first introduc- tion of an excise into England. The same winter the famous Pym died ; a man as much hated by one party as respected by the other. However, he had been little studious of improving his private for- tune ; and the parliament, out of gratitude, discharged the debts which he had contracted. The forces from Ireland, under the command of lord Biron, after obtaining considerable advantages in Cheshire, invested Nantwich, but were completely defeated by sir Thomas Fairfax, who, in the sequel, routed a large body of troops at Selby. Leven, the Scotch commander, having joined lord Fairfax, they sat down before York, to which the army of the royalists had retired. Hopeton was de- feated by Waller at Cherrington ; but prince Rupert relie- ved Newark, which the parliamentary forces had besieged. CHARLES U 305 The earl of Manchester having taken Lincoln, united iiis army to that of Leven and Fairfax ; and York, though vigorously defended by Newcastle, was reduced to the last extremity, when the besiegers were alarmed by the ap- proach of prince Rupert, at the head of twenty thousand men. .The Scottish and parliamentary generals drew up on Marston Moor to give battle to the royalists ; and Newcastle endeavoured to persuade the prince to wait, and leave the enemy to dissolve by their growing dissen- tions ; but Rupert, whose martial disposition was not suf- ficiently tempered with prudence, rejected the advice, and led on his troops to the charge. This action was obsti- nately disputed, and fought with various success ; but after the utmost efforts of courage by both parties, victory whol- ly turned on the side of the parliament. The prince's train of artillery was taken, and his whole army pushed off the field of battle. This engagement, in which Cromwell manifested great courage and abilities, proved very fatal to the king's inte- rest. Newcastle, disgusted at the treatment which he had received from the prince, and enraged that all his success- ful labours should be rendered abortive by one act of te- merity, determined to leave the kingdom. He retired to the continent, where he lived till the restoration, in great necessity, and saw with indifference his opulent fortune se- questered by those who assumed the reins of government. Prince Rupert drew off the remains of his army, and retired into Lancashire ; and York surrendered to Fairfax, while Newcastle was taken by storm. Ruthven, a Scotsman, who had been created earl of Brentford, managed the king's affairs in the south with more success. Essex and Waller marched with their combined armies towards Oxford ; and the king, leaving a numerous garrison in that city, dexterously passed be- tween the two armies, and marched towards Worcester. Waller received orders from Essex to follow h'm, while he himself proceeded westward in quest of prince Maurice. Waller had approached within two miles of the royal camp, when he received intelligence that the king had di- rected his course towards Shrewsbury; and the parlia- mentary general hastened by quick marches to that town ; but Charles suddenly retraced his former steps, and ha- ving reinforced his army, in his turn marched out in quest 26* 306 HISTORY OV JENQLAND* of Waller. At Crupredy-bridge, near Banbuiy, the two armies faced each other, with only the Cherwell running between them. Waller, attempting to pass the bridge, was repulsed ; and his army, disheartened by this unex- pected defeat, began to melt away by desertion. The king thought he might safely leave it, and marched westward against Essex ; and having cooped him up in a narrow corner at Lestithiel, reduced him to the last extremity. Essex, Robarts, and some of the principal officers, esca- ped in a boat to Plymouth. Balfour, with his horse, passed the king's post in a thick mist ; but the foot under Skippon were obliged to surrender. That the king might have less reason to exult in this ad- vantage, the parliament opposed to him very numerous for- ces under Manchester, Cromwell, and Waller. Charles chose his post at Newbury, where the parliamentay armies attacked him with great vigour ; and though the king's troops defended themselves with valour, they were over- powered by numbers, and night only saved them from a total defeat, and enabled them to reach Oxford. The discordant opinions which had arisen among the parliamentary generals in the field, were now transferred to the senate. The independents now appeared a distinct body from the presbyterians, and betrayed very different views and pretensions. Vane, Crom-r^U, Fiennes, and St. John, were regarded as the leaders of the former ; but as a great majority in the nation weie attached to the presbyterians, it was only by cunning and deceit at first, and afterwards by military violence, that the independents could entertain any hopes of success. The parliament having passed a self-denying ordinance, by which the members of both houses were excluded from all civil and military employments, Essex, Manchester, and others, resigned their commands. It was agreed to recruit the army to twenty-two thou- sand men, and sir Thomas Fairfax was appointed I* * general; a man eminent for his courage and hu- manity, but of little genius except in war. Crom- well, being a member of the lower house, should have been discarded with the rest ; but he was saved by that politi- cal craft in which he was so eminent. By an artifice, which was, doubtless, concerted between them, Fairfax resition to Shaftesbury, the prime mo- ver, induced Monmouth to delay the enterprise. Shaftes- bury, enraged at this delay, abandoned all hopes of success, and withdrew to Hollailid, where he died soon after, little regretted by his friends, or noticed by his enemies. At last, a regular project nf insurrection was formed. The council consisted of Monmouth, Russel, Essex, How- ard, Algernon Sidney, and John Hampden, grandscn to the great parliamentary leader. These men entered into an agreement with Argyle and the Scottish malcontents, who engaged to bring the covenanters into the field. The conspirators, however, differed widely in their views. Sid- ney and Essex were for a republic ; Monmouth entertain- ed hopes of obtaining the crown for himself; and Russel and Hampden were attached to the ancient constitution, and wished only a redress of grievances, and the exclusion of the duke of York. Howard, who was a man of no principle, was ready to espouse any party, to which his interest might lead him. But, discordant as they seemed in their characters and views, they were all united in a common hatred of the heir-apparent. While these schemes were concertino^ among the lead- ers, an inferior order of conspirators held frequent meet- ings, and carried on projects quite unknown to Monmouth, 358 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. and the cabal of six ; and the only persons of this confe- deracy, who had access to the leaders of the party, were Ferguson, and colonel Rumsey, an old republican officer. These persons indulged in the most criminal discourse ; and proposed to assassinate Charles at a farm called the Rye-house, which lay on the road to Newmarket, whither the king commonly went once a year ; but the house in which his majesty lived there happening to take fii-e, obli- ged him to leave that place sooner than he intended, and thus the execution of the design was prevented. Among the conspirators was one Keiling, who, being under a criminal prosecution, in order to obtain a pardon, betrayed his associates to secretary Jenkins. Search being made after the conspirators, colonel Rumsey, and West, a lawyer, finding the perils to which they were exposed, sur- rendered themselves, and turned evidence. Rumsey made known the meetings of the leaders; and orders were issued for arresting the great men engaged in the conspiracy. Monmouth absconded ; Russel was sent to the tower ; Gray was arrested, but escaped ; and Hr w^ard, a profligate man, being taken, in hopes of pardon and reward, revealed the whole plot. Essex, Sidney, and Hampden, were imme- diately apprehended ; and some d( the inferior conspira- tors being convicted, paid the forfeit of their lives. The condemnation of these criminals was preparatory to the trial of lord Russel, a nobleman illustrious for his virtues, and highly popular, against whom Rumsey, Shep- hard, and Howard, appeared. It was proved, that an in- surrection had been resolved on, and the surprisal of the king's guards taken into consideration by the prisoner ; but still, with regard to law, there remained an important difficulty. By an act passed soon after the restoration, to consult on a rebellion, during Charles's life time, was de- clared treason ; but it was required, that the prosecution should be commenced within six months after the crime had been committed. The facts sworn to by Rumsey and Shephard were beyond the six months required by law ; and to the other circumstances, Howard was the only evi- dence, whereas, by the statute of Edward IH., the crime of treason must be proved by two witnesses. Russel perceived this irregularity, and desired to have the point argued by counsel ; but the chief-justice told him, that this favour could not be granted, unless he pre CHARLES II. 359 ▼iously confessed the facts ; and the artificial confounding of the two species of treason was the principal, though not the only hardship, of which this unfortunate nobleman had reason to complain on his trial. His veracity would not allow him to deny the conspiracy for an insurrection ; but he solemnly protested, that he had never entertained any design against the life of the king. After a short de- liberation, the jury brought him in guilty. Applications were made to the king for a pardon ; and even money, to a very considerable amount, was offered to the duchess of Portsmouth by the earl of Bedford, fa- ther to Russel ; but Charles was inexorable. Lady Russel, daughter and heir of the earl of South- ampton, a woman of the most exalted merit, threw herself at the king's feet, and pleaded with many tears the services of her father as an atonement for the error of her husband. Finding her supplications ineffectual, she summoned up all the fortitude of her soul, and even endeavoured, by her ex- ample, to strengthen the resolution of her unfortunate lord. With a tender and decent composure, they took leave of each other on the day of his execution. " The bitterness of death is now past," said he, as he turned to her. To the last, he maintained the seme dignified composure, the same good-humoured equanimity for which he had been always distinguished. He was the most popular among his own party, and admired for his virtues even by the opposite faction ; and his melancholy fate united every heart, sen- sible of humanity, in a tender compassion for him. Algernon Sidney, the apostle of liberty, was next brought to trial. This gallant person, son to the earl of Leicester, had been deeply implicated in the civil wars ; but he opposed the usurpation of Cromwell with zeal and courage ; and, after the restoration, he chose voluntary ba- nishment, rather than submit to a government and family which he abhorred. At length, he returned to England, and applied for the king's pardon, which he obtained. Howard was again the only witness against Sidney ; but, as the law required two, a strange expedient was adopted to supply the deficiency. In searching the pri- soner's closets, some discourses on government were found, in which he maintained principles, favourable in- deed to liberty, but such as the most dutiful subjects have been known to embrace, and which, even if they had been 360 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. published, could not have infringed any positive law. These papers, however, were said to be equivalent to a second witness ; and the violent and inhuman judge JetFeries easily prevailed on a prejudiced jury to give a veidict against Sidney. He complained, with great rea- son, of the iniquity of the sentence ; and be died glorying in the " good old cause," in which from his youth, he said, he had enlisted himself. Howard was also the sole witness against Hampden, who, therefore, was indicted only for a misdemeanor ; and sentence being obtained against him, the exorbitant fine of forty tliousand pounds was imposed on him. On the day that Russel was tried, Essex, a man eminent for his virtues and abilities, was found in the tower with his throat cut. Whether he committed suicide, or was mur- dered by others, has never been clearly ascertained. On the detection of this conspiracy, loyal addresses ar- rived from all parts of the kingdom ; and, in order to in- crease his present popularity, Charles judged it irsi proper to give his niece, the lady Anne, in mar- riage to prince George, brother to the king of Den- mark ; but, though the king had recovered his former popularity in the nation, and was «riabled to govern with- out a parliament, it is certain he was neither happy nor satisfied. The violent temper of his brother gave him ap- prehension and uneasiness ; and, in opposing some of the duke's hasty counsels, he was heard one day to say, *' brother, I am too old to go again on my travels ; you may, if you choose it." It was evident, that the king meditated some change of measures ; and it was believed, that he intended to send the duke of York to Scotland, to recal Monmouth, to assemble his parliament, and to dis- miss his obnoxious ministers ; but amidst these wise and virtuous designs, he was seized with an apoplectic fit, and, after languishing a few days, expired in the fifty-fifth year of his age, and the twenty-fifth of his reign. Having al- ways enjoyed a good constitution, his death begat suspi- cion of poison ; but when all circumstances are consider- ed, this suspicion appears without foundation. His loss, however, was sincerely lamented by his people, as well on account of their affection for him, as of their dread of his successor. During the few days of the king's illness, he showed a JAMES n. 961 total indifference to the devotions and exhortations of the clergy of the established church, but received the sacra- ment from the hands of catholic priests ; and in his cabi- net were found two papers, which contained arguments in favour of the Romish communion, and which the duke of York had the imprudence immediately to publish. Charles, when considered as a companion, appears the most amiable and engaging of men ; he had a ready wit, was well-bred, and good-natured. When, however, we view his public character, he evidently sinks in our esti- mation. As a sovereign, his conduct was dangerous to his people, and disgraceful to himself. Negligent of the interests of the nation, careless of its glory, averse to its religion ; jealous of its liberty, lavish of its treasures, and sparing only of its blood, he exposed it by its measures to the danger of a civil war, and even to the ruin and ig- nominy of a foreign conquest. CHAP. XVII The reign of James II, The first act of James's reign was to assemble the privy- eouncil, and declare his resolution to maintain the estab- iished government in church and state ; but in the first exercise of his authority, he showed the ^'f^l insincerity of his professions. All the customs^ and the greater part of the excise, had been settled by parlia- ment on the late king during life, and consequently the grant had expired ; but James, without regarding the laws, issued a proclamation, ordering payment of the customs and excise as before ; and he went also openly, and with all the ensigns of dignity, to mass. By this imprudence he displayed at once his arbitrary disposition, and the big- otry of his principles. However little inclined James might be to an English parliament, he found it absolutely necessary to summon one ; but his speech to that assembly was calculated ra- ther to awaken their fears than to work on their aft'ections. He required them to settle his revenue, and that during his life, as had been done to his brother. " There is, in- deed," added he, *' one popular argument against comply- ing with my demand. Men may think, that by feeding rae, from time to time, with such supplies as they think 31 son HISTORY OP ENGLAND. convenient, they "will better secure frequent meetings of parliament ; but as this is the first time I speak to you from the tlirone, I must plainly tell you, that such an ex- pedient would be very improper to employ with me, and that the best way to engage me to meet you often, is al- ways to use me well." The parliament was thus placed in a veiy critical situa- tion, either of opposing James at once, or of complying with his wishes ; and the commons voted the same reve- nue to his present majesty during life, as had been enjoy- ed by the late king. The lords were no less compliant ; and they endeavoured to break in pieces the remains of the popish plot. Oates, who had been tried and convict- ed of perjury, was sentenced to perpetual imprisonment, besides being publicly whipped, and five times a year ex- posed in the pillory. The impudence of this man still supported him, and he made solemn appeals to heaven for the truth of his testimony.* The conviction of Oates was noticed by the house of peers ; and the popish lords Powis, Arundel, Bellasis, and Tyrone, together with the earl of Danby, were freed from their impeachment ; but the course of parliamentary pro- ceedings was interrupted by the news of Monmouth's arrival in the west, with three ships from Holland. Par- liament immediately passed a bill of attainder against Monmouth, and voted, that they would adhere to James with their lives and fortunes ; and they granted the king a supply of four hundred thousand pounds for suppressing the rebellion. The unfortunate Monmouth, pursued by the severity of James, even in his retirement on the continent, and urged by the impatient humour of Argyle, who set out for Scot- land in his cause, was driven, contrary to his judgment as well as inclination, to make a rash and premature at- tempt. Landing at Lyme, in Dorset, with scarcely a hun- dred followers, the popularity of his name soon drew to his standard above two thousand horse and foot. At Taunton he assumed the regal title ; and he was proclaimed king at Bridgevvater, Wells, and Frome ; but he allowed the ex- *■ On the accession of king William, Oates recovered his liberty, anil Iiad a pension of four hundred pounds a year settled on him JAMES n. 363 pectatioiis of the people to languish, without attempting any considerable undertaking. Hearing that Argyle had been defeated, Monmouth fell into despondency ; but his followers showed more courage, and seemed determined to adhere to him in every fortune. The negligence of Feversham, the royal general, invited Monmouth to attack the king's army at Sedgemoor, where, after a combat of three hours, the rebels gave way. About one thousand five hundred fell in the battle and pursuit; and the unhappy Monmouth fled from the field, above twenty miles, till his horse sunk under him. He then changed clothes with a peasant, in order to conceal him- self; but at last, he was found lying in the bottom of a ditch, and covered with fern. His body, depressed with fatigue and hunger, and his mind, by the memory of past misfortunes, and the prospect of future ills, he burst into tears when seized by his enemies, and seemed still to in- dulge the fond hope and the desire of life. He wrote to James in the most submissive terms, conjuring him to spare the issue of a brother ; and the king, finding such symp- toms of contrition and despondency in the unhappy pri- soner, admitted him into his presence, in hopes of extort- ing a discovery of his accomplices ; but Monmouth would not purchase life, however loved, at the price of so much infamy. Finding all efforts vain, he prepared himself for death, with a spirit worthy of his rank and character, and was attended to the scaffold by the tears of the people, with whom he had ever been a favourite. This victory, if it had been managed with prudence, would have tended to confirm the power and authority of the king ; but the cruelty with which it was prosecuted by the savage colonel Kirk, and the infamous judge Jef- feries, hastened the ruin of James. Besides those who were butchered by the military commanders, two hundred and fifty-one victims are said to have been executed ; and all the rigours of justice, unabated by any appearance of clemency, were fully displayed by the barbarous Jefferies. In Scotland, the fate of Argyle had been decided be- fore that of Monmouth. The parliament of that country acknowledged the king's authority to be absolute ; and with such a servile train, the patriotic virtues of Argyle could stand no chance o-f obtaining a pardon. He was 364 HISTORY OF ENGLAN©. seized, aud carried to Edinburgh, where, after endaring many indignities, he was puWicly executed. Elated with this tide of short-hved prosperity, James began to undervahie the authority of an EngUsh parlia- ment ; and in a speech to that assembly, he observed, that he had employed many catholic officers, in whose favour he had dispensed with the law, which requires the test to be taken by every one possessed of any public office ; and he also declared, that, having received the benefit of their service, he was resolved neither to expose them afterwards to disgrace, nor himself to the want of their assistance. The commons voted an address to the king against the dispensing power ; but this address was ill received by James, who returned a haughty reply. At their next meeting, the commons proceeded to the considei*ation of a supply, and went so far in their submissions as to es- tablish funds for paying the sums voted. The king there- fore had, in effect, obtained almost a complete victory over the lower house, which ceased to be the guardian of the liberties and property of the people. In the upper house, however, Compton, bishop of Lon- don, in his own name and that of his brethren, moved that a day should be appointed for taking the king's speech into consideration ; and notwithstanding the op- position of Jefi*eries,^ the chancellor, the bishop's motion prevailed. James was so much irritated, that he proceed- ed immediately to prorogue, and finding that he could not break the firmness of the leading members,^ he finally dis- solved the parliament. The open declaration of James, to dispense with the tests, had diffiised an universal alarm throughout the na- tion, had alienated the church, and even disgusted the ar- my. The former horror against popery was revived ; and this was further increased by Louis XIV. having, about the same time, revoked the edict of Nantes, in consequence of which, nearly fifty thousand refugees passed over into England ; and, from their representations, all men dread- ed the projects which were supposed to be formed by the king for abolishing the protestant religion. Though James had failed in prevailing on the parlia- ment, he was successful in establishing his dispensing power* by a verdict of the |udges. Four catholic lords JAMES II. 365 were also brought into the privy-council ; the king was openly zealous in making converts ; and men i^o/^ plainly saw, that the only means of acquiring his majesty's confidence, was the sacrifice of their religion. Those who had any regard to decency, any attachment to the liberties of their country, or to the protestant faith, now withdrew from the ministry, or were dismissed, and their places were filled with renegadoes, who squared their belief by their interest. All judicious persons of the catholic communion easily foresaw the consequences of these violent measures ; but James was entirely governed by the rash counsels of the queen, and of his confessor, father Peters, a Jesuit and privy-counsellor. The king issued a proclamation, sus- pending all the penal laws in ecclesiastical affairs, and granting a general liberty of conscience to all his subjects. In Girder to facilitate the reception of this edict of tolera- tion, James began to pay court to the dissenters ; but his intentions were so obvious, that he found it ^'gq<^ impossible to obtain the confidence of the non-con- formists ; and if the dissenters had been blinded by his professions, the measures pursued in Scotland, and also in Ireland, were sufficient to discover the secret. James, however, did not long affect to conceal his de- signs. He publicly sent the earl of Castlemaine ambassa- dor-extraordinary to Rome, in order to express his obei- sance to the pope, and to bring about a reconciliation with the holy see ; but the pontiff, rightly concluding that a scheme conducted with such indiscretion could never suc- ceed, treated the ambassador with neglect, and thought it sufficient to send a nuncio to England, who was solemnly received at Windsor, in opposition to an express act of parliament, by which it was made treason to hold any correspondence with the pope. By virtue of his prerogative, James had suspended the penal laws, and dispensed with the test ; and he would gladly have obtained the sanction of parliament to these acts of power ; but, finding that impossible, he forebore to convene that assembly, and proceeded to strengthen the catholic party by every expedient. The church and the universities had hitherto been shut against the catholics ; and though the university of Oxford had lately made a so- lemn profession of passive obedience, yet whe^ the king 31* 366 HISTORY OF ENGLANir, sent a mandate for appointing one Farmer, a convert ro popeiy, president of Magdalen college, one of the richest foundations in Europe, the fellows chose Dr. Hough, a man whose virtue and firmness rendered him not only proper for the office but for the times. On inquiry, Far- mer was found guilty of the most scandalous vices ; and a new mandate was issued in favour of Parker^ lately crea- ted bishop of Oxford, a man also of a prostitute character, who atoned for his vices by his willingness to embrace the catholic religion ; but the society representing that by the statutes, Parker could not be chosen^ the president and all the fellows y except two who complied, were expelled the college ; and Parker was appointed president. The next measure of the court rendered the breach be- tween the king and the ecclesiastics incurable. James had published a second declaration of indulgence, 1688 ^vhich he ordered to be read in all the churches, immediately after divine service. The clergy in general detennined to oppose this violence done to their consciences ; and Lloyd, bishop of St. Asaph ; Ken, of Bath and Wells ; Turner, of Ely ; Lake, of Chichester ; White, of Peterborough ; and Trelawney, of Bristol, met privately with the primate, and drew up a petition to the king, that he would not insist on their reading the declara- tion. For this the prelates were committed to the Tower ; and the crown lawyers were directed to prosecute them for the seditious libel, which it was pretended, they had com- posed and uttered. The bishops, however, notvrithstanding the machina- tions of the court, were acquitted ; and the joy which the intelligence of this event diffused throughout the kingdom is indescribable. The army encamped on Hounslow-heath soon caught the contagion ; and James, who had that day reviewed the troops, and was in the general's tent, was surprised to hear a general uproar in the camp ; inquiring the cause, be was told by Lord Feversham, " it was no- thing but the rejoicing of the soldiers for the acquittal of the bishops." " Do you call that nothing?" replied he, *' but so much the worse for them." Nothing, however, could check the mad career of James. He struck out two of the judges who had appeared to favour the bishops ; and he issued orders to prosecute all those clergymen vrho had not read his declaration ; and to tlie honour of the JAMES II. 3t)7 established church be it recorded, that only two hundred complied with his edict. A few days before the acquittal of the bishops, the queen was delivered of a son, to the great joy of the king and all zealous cathohcs ; but so violent was the animosity against the court, that calumny ascribed to James the design of imposing on the world a supposititious child. He was baptized by the R»ame of James, and was afterwards known by the title of " the pretender." The prince of Orange, who had married the princess Mary of England, eldest daughter of the king, had main- tained a very prudent conduct ; and James strongly soli- cited the consent of the prince to the repeal of the penal statutes and of the test ; but the latter declared his refusal to concur in these measures, unless the same should be sanctioned by parliament. This declaration gave courage to the protestants, while it excited the indignation of James, who prepared to make war on the United States. Many persons of consequence and talents, flying from England, offered their services to William, and requested his active interference. The prince, after duly weighing the matter, and finding the whigs, the tories, the churchmen, and the non-con- formists, forgetting their animosities, all leagued in the design of resisting their deluded sovereign, yielded to the very respectable and numerous applications that had been made to him ; and having secretly augmented the Dutch navy, levied troops, and raised considerable sums of mo- ney, he waited for a favourable opportunity of embarking for England, which regarded him as its sole protector. Louis, who had penetrated the designs of the prince, conveyed the intelligence to James ; but the king treated the information with contempt, and refused the assistance which the French monarch offered on this occasion. At last, however, when convinced that he might soon expect a powerful invasion from Holland, James opened his eyes, and found himself on the brink of a frightful precipice. He now began to retract those fatal measures which had created him so many foreign and domestic enemies ; but when intelligence arrived, that a great disaster had befallen the Dutch fleet, he recalled, for some time, the concessions which he had made. Meanwhile, a declaration from the prince of Orange was t^68 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. dispersed over the kingdomf^nd met with universal appro- bation. All the grievances of the nation were there enu- merated ; and to redress these, the prince said, that he in- tended to come over into England with an armed force. After a prosperous voyage, he landed his army safely in Torbay, on the fifth day of November, and, marching to Exeter, caused his declaration to be there pub- ,ggg lished. By degrees, all England was in commo- tion ; and every day showed some effect of tha. universal combination into which the nation had entered against the measures of the king ; but the most dangerous symptom was the disaffection of the army, all the officers of which seemed disposed to regard only the interests of their country and their religion. Lord Cornbuzy carried over three regiments to the prince ; and several officers informed Feversham^ the general, that they could not in conscience draw their swords against the Dutch. Even lord Churchill, who had been raised from the rank of a page, and owed his whole fortune to the bounty of the crown, influenced by principle alone, deserted his master, and carried with him the duke of Grafton, natural son to the late kino^. James, however, received a still more fatal blow in the defection of George, Prince of Denmark, his son-in-law, and his daughter Anne, who both joined the prince. When intelligence of this reached the king, the unfortunate sove- reign burst into tears. " God help me," cried he, in the f xtremity of his agony, " my own children have forsaken me !" His last acts of authority were to issue writs for a new parliament, and to send Halifax, Nottingham, and Godolphin, as commissioners to treat with the prince of Orange. He even hearkened to imprudent counsel, by which he was prompted to desert the throne. Alarmed by the general disafi*ection, and impelled by his own fears and those of others, James precipitately embraced the re- solution of escaping into France ; and, having previously sent off the queen and the infant prince, he himself dis- appeared in the night-time, and hastened to embark and follow them. By this rash act, the reins of the government were thrown up, and the populace became masters ; and rising m a tumultuous manner, they destroyed the mass-houses, and rifled the places in which the catholics had lodged ■Ss^ — =^"~isin^8BP'f Ifes ^^r^^ ^^^^^aMj |HHP^^^^^9 ^S ^^^ WBm^^^^Sm^^^^^R^^ ^^■1 ^^^^^^^ fl ■91 IPP^H ^HP^Vn W^SE^^SSf .J ^'^Vy^^rMlSff^ ^B I^^^B ^H ^^H Queen Mavi^aret and the Robber, Judge Jefferies seized by the People. JAMES II. 369 their most valuable effects, ^gjjiteries, the chancellor, who had disguised himself, was^Rovered, and treated with the greatest severity, in consequence of which he died soon after. Feversham no sooner heard of the king's flight, than he disba-nded his troops, without either disarm- ing or paying them. In the mean time, however, James had been seized at Feversham, and obliged to return to London, where the populace, moved by compassion, or actuated by loyalty, received him with shouts and acclamations. During his abode at Whitehall, little attention was paid him ; and de- siring permission to retire to Rochester, a town near the sea coast, his request was immediately granted. He pri- vately embarked on board a frigate which ^vaited for him, and arrived safely at Ambletouse, in Picardy, whence he hasten-ed to St. Germain's. Louis received him with the greatest generosity and respect, a circumstance more ho- nourable to him than his most splendid victories. Thus ended the reign of James ; a prince who possess- ed many of the qualities which form a good citizen, but whose bigotry and arbitrary principles rendered him odious as a king. In domestic life, his conduct was irreproach- able ; and even while he was sacrificing every thii>g to the advancement of popery, his frugality of the public money was remarkable, and his jealousy of the national honour commendable ; but his invasion of the rights and liberties of the people tarnished every other virtue, and his disre- gard to the religion and constitution of his country could not be compensated by any other qualities. In principle, he was a despot and a bigot ; and his abdication of the throne, and consequent exclusion, have proved the happi- ness of this kingdom. Thus the prince of Orange, with little effusion of blood, effected the deliverance of England, and dethroned a king possessed of a formidable navy and a numerous army. Still a more difficult t£isk remained, to obtain for himself that crown which had fallen from the head of his father in-law. To claim it by right of conquest would have been destructive to the principles of liberty, which he professed to establish ; and he wisely resolved to leave the settle- ment of this important affair to the guidance and direction of the nation. In the convention which was assembled, it was evident 370 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. that the whig part^jl|efly prevailed ; and the com • ipeq i^ons sent up a HR to the peers, "that king James II. having endeavoured to subvert the con stitution of the kingdom, by breaking the original contract between the king and the people ; and having, bj the ad- vice of Jesuits and other wicked persons, violated the fun- damental laws, and withdrawn himself out of the kingdom, has abdicated the government, and that the throne is there- by vacant." This vote, when carried to the upper house, met with great opposition ; and the last clause, which de- clared the throne vacant, was omitted ; but the commons still insisted on their original vote, and some peers desert- ing to the whig interest, the whole was passed, and re- ceived the sanction of both houses. During these debates, the prince had maintained a re- spectful silence ; but, at length, he expressed his senti- ments on the present situation of affairs. He observed, that some insisted on appointing a regent, and that others were desirous of bestowing the crown on the princess Mary alone ; that though he pretended not to interfere in their deliberation, he thought it incumbent on him to inform them, that he wag determined not to be the regent, nor would he accept a crown which depended on the life or will of another ; and, therefore, if they were inclined to either of these two plans of settlement, it would be wholly out of his power to give them any further assistance. The princess seconded the views of her husband, and the princess Anne agreeing to be postponed in the suc- cession to the crown, facilitated the public settlement. The principal parties being thus agreed, the convention passed a bill, settling the crown on the prince and princess of Orange, the sole administration to remain in the prince ; the princess Anne to succeed after the death of the prince and princess of Orange ; and her issue after those of the princess, but before those of the prince by any other wife.' To this settlement the convention annexed a declaration of rights, in which the powers of royal prerogative were more narrowly circumscribed, and more exactly defined, than at any former period. Soon after, similar resolutions having been passed by the Scottish convention, William and Mary were proclaim'- ed in both kingdoms. WILLIAM AND MARY* 371 CHAPllllfV^IIT. The reign of William and Mary. The revolution, as it is called, formed a new epoch in the constitution, which now assumed a different aspect ; and, it may be affirmed, without any danger of ex- aggeration, that, since that period, the British have ipoQ enjoyed a system of government the most perfect and the most free that was ever established in the world. While, however, William and Mary were thus peacea- bly established on the throne of Great Britain, a very dif- ferent scene presented itself in Ireland. The catholics in that country saw with reluctance the events which bad taken place, and testified their adherence to James. The earl of Tyrconnel, the lord deputy, disguised his sentiments, and amused William with false hopes of sub- mission, till James should be able to supply him with re- inforcements from France, which he earnestly solicited by private messages. In the mean time, the whigs, who were the prevailing party in the state, determined that the revenue for the maintenance of the king's household, and the support of nis dignity, should be granted from one year to another only, in order that William, finding himself constantly de- pendant on parliament, might endeavour to merit a re- newal of tKe grant by a just and popular government. The king, however, was disgusted with these restraints, which he considered as marks of distrust ; and the tories seized this occasion to foment his jealousy against their adversaries. William recommended to parliament a bill of indemnity, as the most effectual means of putting an end to all controversies and distinctions ; but this was de- feated for some time by the address of the whigs, who were sensible that the bill would open a way to the prefer- ment of the tories. The two parties, however, were now io equally balanced in parliament, that the bill for restoring corporations to their ancient rights passed by one vote only, with the rejection of two clauses against those who had been concerned in the surrender of charters. The king found himself so perplexed between tvA'-o fac- tions, which he equally feared, that he had resolved to leave the government in the queen's hands, and retire into 372 HISTORY OP ENGLAND* Holland ; but he was dissijuyed from this purpose by the marquis of Caermarthen wfk other noblemen whom he consulted, and finding the tories more compliant, he be- gan to gratify them at the expense of the whigs. The lat- ter were foiled or out-voted in several favourite schemes ; and the earl of Shrewsbury resented this so highly, that he resigned his office of secretary of state* William having wholly given himself up to the politics of the tories, was soon gratified with the hereditary excise during life, and the customs for four years. The bill of indemnity, so earnestly recommended by the king, was also passed, with the exception of thirty persons. At this period, the great scheme which William had projected, of a confederacy against France, began to take effect. The emperor negotiated an alliance, off*ensive and defensive, with the States General ; and Spain and Eng* land were invited to accede to the treaty- William, who was at the head of this confederacy, found no difficulty in persuading the English to undertake a war against their ancient rivals ; and the commons unanimously resolved, that in case his majesty should think fit to engage in hos-' lilities with France, they vt'^ould enable him to cany on the war with vigour. This was very agreeable to the king ; and war was immediately declared against the French monarch. Louis XIV., who had long rendered himself the terror and the scourge of Europe, was not dejected by this con- federacy against him. He supplied James with a consi- derable fleet for the invasion of Ireland, and the ex-prince, with about twelve hundred British subjects, and several of the most distinguished French officers, landed at Kin- sale, on the 22d of March, 1689. The earl of Tyrconnel had assembled an army of thirty thousand foot, and eight thousand borse, for the service of his master ; and the whole kingdom, except the ci^ty of Londonderry, received James with submission. Finding his affairs in Ireland in a desperate state, and that he had been deceived by those in whom he had con* fided, William determined to pass over into that island in person. A general engagement took place on the banks of the Boyne, in which the Irish wei*e entirely de- 1 fion ^"^^^^^ 5 ^^^ James retired to Dublin^ whence he fled a second time into France; but the hopes and the spirits of his party were not yet vanquished. WILLIAM ANt) MARY. 373 A French fleet being discovered off Plymouth, the earl ot'To«rrington, the English adfliral, reinforced with a Dutch squadron, put to sea, in order to intercept the enemy, if an attempt should be made to sail up the channel. After the hostile fleets had continued in sight of each other for five days, lord Torrington bore down upon the enemy off'Blea* chey He-ad ; and an engagement ensued, in which the Eng- lish were defeated, with the loss of two of their own ships, and of six vessels belonging to the Dutch. A camp was immediately formed in the neighbourhood of Torbay, where the French seemed to threaten a descent ; but their fleet, after setting fire to the small village of Teignmouth, and burning a few coasting vessels, returned to Brest. The news of the victory obtained by the French fleet efi^aced all thoughts of submission on the part of the Irish, and an offer of indemnity from William, to those who would lay down their arms, produced little effect. This, however, only increased the misery of that unhappy coun- try, which suffered from both parties ; but, at length, the French forces embarked for their own country: and Wil- liam, having constituted the,lord Sydney and Thomas Co- ningsby lord-justices of Ireland, and left the command of the army with count de Solmes and baron de Ginkle, re- turned to England with prince George of Denmark. Next year the Irish rebels were entirely reduced, and a capitulation was executed, extending to all the places in that kingdom which had not yet submitted. By it, the catholics were restored to the same rights and pri- vileges as they had enjoyed under Charles II. ; and ^^(?,* twelve thousand of the determined adherents of James were allowed to transport themselves to France. The conquest of Ireland being thus effected, the French king resolved to invade England during the absence of William, who had sailed for Holland, in order to promote the measures of the grand confederacy. Louis seemed warmly engaged in the interest of James ; and the Jaco- bites* in England were assured, that their lawful sovereign would revisit his British dominions at the head of thirty thousand men. Accordingly, a considerable body of French forces, and * A term given to the partisans of James, or the adherents <»f tlie •x-family. 32 374 HISTORY OF ENGLANB. many fugitive Irish and Scots, assembled between Cher bourgh and La Hogue, conftianded by James in person ; while a French fleet, of sixty-three ships of the line, under admiral Tourville, was appointed to convoy the troops. Admiral Russel, with a fleet of ninety-nine ships of the line, English and Dutch, besides frigates and fire-ships, set sail for the coast of France. On the 19th of May, 1692, the hostile fleets met ofi^ La Hogue; and after a bloody contest of nearly twelve hours, victory declared in favour of the English. The French lost fifteen ships of the line ; and this defeat reduced James to the greatest despondence, and overwhelmed his friends in England with despair. The war, however, was continued on the continent for some years, with various success ; but at last it was ter- minated by the treaty of Rhyswick, with no advan- ,^q^ tage to England beyond honour and independence, and with the burden of a national debt which has since increased to an enormous amount. The terrors of a standing army produced a general fer- ment in the nation ; and the king was extremely mortified, when the commons voted, that the number of standing forces should be reduced to ten thousand. The earl of Sunderland, who had advised the unpopular measure of a standing army, dreading the vengeance of the commons, resigned his oflice. William at this time revolved in his mind the settling of the succession of the throne of Spain, which would shortly be vacated by the death of Charles II. ; and he, therefore, directed that sixteen thousand men should be retained in the service. When the new parliament met, the commons were so irritated at the king's presuming to maintain a greater number of troops than their predecessors had voted, that they passed a resolution that the army in England and Wales should be disbanded by a fixed day, with the exception of seven thousand men, who were judged sufli- cient for guards and garrisons. William was highly indignant at the conduct of his mi- nisters and the parliament ; but when the bill was ready for the royal assent, he went to the house of peers, and havincp sent for the commons, he told them, that though he considered himself unkindly treated, in being deprived of bis Dutch guards, yet as nothing could be more fatal to the WILLIAM AND MAR?. 375 nation, than a distrust between him and the parliament, he had come to pass the bill, acdording to their desire. 1'he opening of a new parliament promised more cordi- ality, and the commons in an address desired his majesty to enter into such neaociations with the States-Ge- • -•AT) neral and other potentates, as might most etfectu- ^lyni ally conduce to the mutual safety of Great Britain and the United Provinces, as well as to the preservation of the peace of Europe. They also settled the succession, in case the princess Anne should die without issue, on Sophia of Hanover, and her heirs, being protestants. The treaty of partition, however, into which William had entered with the court of France, for the division of the Spanish dominions on the death of the reigning sove- reign, gave great offence. Among the competitors for that crown, the dauphin, who had married the king of Spain's daughter, was to be allowed to possess the greatest part of Italy; and other allotments were made, which tended to lessen the danger of one person succeeding to too exten- sive dominions. In order to frustrate the objects of the confederacy, the king of Spain by will nominated the duke of Anjou, second son of the dauphin, heir to all his domi- nions ; by which means he detached the French monarch from the union he had formed. The parliament, in order to evince their resentment at the clandestine treaty of partition, ordered an impeachment of lord Somers, the earl of Orford, and the earl of Halifax, but the commons not appearing to prosecute, the three lords were acquitted ; and William, encouraged by a peti- tion from the county of Kent, and the general voice of the people, entered into a league with the emperor and the States-General, the principal objects of which were the re- covery of the Spanish Netherlands, as a barrier for Hol- land, and of Milan for the emperor. Ring James expired at St. Germain's, and was interred, at his own request, in the church of the English Benedic- tines, in Paris, without any funeral solemnity. Before his death he was visited by the French monarch, who declared that he would acknowledge his son as king of England. Accordingly, when James died, the pretended prince of Wales was proclaimed king of England, and treated as such at the court of Versailles. In his speech to the parliament, William enlarged on 376 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. this indignity offered to the nation by the French king ; and explained the dangers m which England was exposed by that monarch placing his grandson on the throne of Spain. In an address to his majesty, the commons voted that no peace should be concluded with France, till repa- ration should be made to the king and nation, for owning and declaring the pretended prince of Wales, king of Eng- land, Scotland, and Ireland. They also voted a large sup- ply ; and they agreed that the proportion of the land for- ces, to act in conjunction with the allies, should be forty thousand men, and that forty thousand seamen should be employed for the service of the ensuing year. The health of William had been declining for some time ; but he endeavoured to conceal the inroads which he felt were making in his constitution, in order that the al- lies might not be discouraged from engaging in a confe- deracy of which he was considered the chief. In riding to Hampton Court from Kensington, his collar-bone was broken by a fall from his horse ; and this hasten- ^ly^^ ed his dissolution. He expired on the eighth day of March, of a fever and asthma, in the thirteenth year of his reign. His amiable consort, Mary, had fallen a victim to the small-pox a few years before. William HI. was in his person small and slender. He had an aquiline nose, a large forehead, and a grave as- pect. His genius was penetrating, and his judgment sound ; but in his manners he was distant, and better quali- fied to gain respect than love. He was rehgious, tempe- rate, just, and sincere. England, in some respects, gained very much by the revolution, while in others, it was a se- vere sufferer. The system of borrowing money oh remote funds, which began in this reign, has been attended with the most pernicious consequences ; and a standing army, which was first sanctioned by parhament in the time of William, now seems interwoven with the constitution ; but when we consider the noble stand which WiHiam made for the freedom of Europe, against the ambitious projects and dangerous influence of France, we must ac- knowledge, that he possessed qualities of the first order, which entitle him to the applause and respect of mankind. In 1604, the bank of England, and the salt and stamp- offices, were established. ANNE* 377 OHAB: XIX The reign of Queen Anne* Anne, princess of Denmark, the eldest surviving daugh- ter of James the Second, ascended the throne on the death of William, with the general satisfaction of all parties. She was now in the thirty-eighth year -. 1^^ of her age, and by her husband, George, prince of Denmark, had a numerous offspring, all of which died in infancy, except the duke of Gloucester, who, after giving promises of future worth, was seized with a malignant fe- ver, which put an end to his existence in the eleventh year of his age. Anne had received great mortifications in the late reign; but she conducted herself with so much discretion, that little or no pretence for censure or resentment could be alleged. The facility of her disposition, however, render- ed her the dupe of interested and artful dependents: and it was owing to this that a serious misunderstanding had taken place between her and the late king and queen,^ which continued till the death of the latter. Anne had been taught to consider the tories as friends of the monar- chy, and the true sons of the church ; and they had al- ways professed an inviolable attachment to her person and interest. The death of William excited the greatest consterna- tion throughout Holland ; but the anxiety of the States- General was relieved, by the arrival of tlie earl of Marl- borough, who assured them that her majesty would ad- here to all the stipulations which had been entered into by the late king. In her first speech to parliament, Anne made the most conciliatory declaration of her views and principles ; and in return, they settled on her, during life, the same reve- nue as had been enjoyed by the late king. When the bill received the royal assent, the queen assured them, that one hundred thousand pounds of this revenue should be ap- plied to the public service of the year. When the subject of the intended war was debated in the queen's privy-council, the earl of Rochester, maternal uncle to the queen, proposed that the English should act only as auxiliaries, and that the chief burden of the war 32* 378 HISTORY OP UNGLANfi. should be borne by the continental allies, who had most to fear from tlie power of France ; but the earl of Marl- borough observed, that France could never be reduced within due limits, unless the English entered as princi- pals in the quarrel. The opinion of Marlborough prevail- ed ; and he was also appointed captain-general of all her majesty's forces, to be employed in conjunction with the troops of the allies. The Dutch too, to whom the earl had been sent ambas- sador-extraordinary, gave him the same appointment over their forces ; and the alUes having promised to furnish their quotas of troops, every thing was concerted for com- mencing the war, the avowed object of which, as far as concerned England, was to put the house of Austria in possession of the throne of Spain, and to procure a barrier for the Dutch in the Netherlands. Marlborough, at the head of sixty thousand men, took the field in the month of July, and obliged the duke of Burgundy, who commanded the French army, to retire * before the allied tr.oops, and to leave Spanish ,l,j^ Guelderland exposed. The town and castle of Werk surrendered ; Venlo capitulated ; and Rure- monde was reduced after an obstinate defence. Boufflers, whom Burgundy had left in the command, confounded at the rapidity of Marlborough's success, retired towards Liege ; but, at the approach of the confederates, he direct- ed his march towards Brabant ; and Marlborough took that city by assault, in which the allies found considerable public booty. Meanwhile, the combined fleets of England and Hol- land, under the command of sir George Rooke, after an unsuccessful attack on Cadiz, captured the Spanish gal- leons at Vigo, with riches to the amount of seven million pieces of eight. Marlborough, who arrived in England about the latter end of November, received the thanks of the house of com- mons for his great and signal services, which were so ac- ceptable to the queen, that she created him a duke, and complimented him with a grant of five thousand pounds per annum out of the post-office. About the same time, the parliament settled the yearly sum of one hundred thousand pounds on George, prince of Denmark, the queen's consort, in case he should survive her. ANNE* 379 In the iieXt campaign^ the duke of Marlborough, being unable to provoke marshal Villeroy to hazard a battle, was obliged to content hnnseif with the capture of Bonne, Huy, Limburgh, and Gueldres. The duke i^O,'^ was restricted in his enterprises by the deputies of the States-General, who began to be influenced by the in- trigues of the Louvestein faction. £n the beginning of next year, the duke of Marlborough assembled his army at Maestricht ; and having concerted the plan of operations with the States, he crossed the Rhine at Coblentz. After effecting a junction i^^J^ with prince Eugene and the imperialists, the allied army, on the second day of July, attacked the Bavarians in their intrenchments at Donavert ; and, after an obsti- nate resistance, succeeded in defeating the enemy, who left six thousand men dead on the field of battle. The elector of Bavaria, being joined by marshal Tal lard, crossed the Danube. The duke of Marlborough and prince Eugene found the enemy advantageously jjpsted upon a hill near Hochstadt, their right being covered by tlie Danube and the village of Blenheim, their left by the village of Lutzingem, and their front by a rivulet, the banks of which were steep, and the bottom marshy. Not- withstanding these diificulties, the generals resolved to at- tack the French and Bavarians, whose army amounted to sixty thousand men. Marshal Tallard commanded on the right, and threw twenty-seven battalions, with twelve squadrons, into the village of Blenheim, where he sup- posed the allies would make their chief effort ; their lef . was conducted by the elector of Bavaria, assisted by Mar- sin, a French general of experience. The duke of Marlborough, taking advantage of the in- judicious arrangement of his opponent, ordered the villa- ges to be attacked by his infantry, and with his horse in person fell on the French cavalry, commanded by marshal Tallard. After several charges, the French horse were totally subdued, a-nd driven into the Danube, where most of them perished ; and ten battalions of foot were at the same time charged on all sides, and cut to pieces. The elector of Bavaria made a resolute defence against prince Eugene, but, at length, was oblig-ed to give way. The confederates being now masters of the field, surrounded the village of Blenheim ; and the twenty-seven battalions 380 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. and twelve squadrons, despairing of forcing their \va/ through the alHes, surrendered themselves prisoners of war. Never was a victory more complete. Ten thousand French and Bavarians were left dead on the field of bat- tle ; the greater part of thirty squadrons of horse perished in the Danube ; and thirteen thousand were made prison- ers ; and the enemy lost their camp equipage, baggage, and artillery. Marshal Tallard was taken prisoner. Tlie allies concluded the campaign, with the capture of Lan- dau and Trierbach. Sir George Rooke, who had been sent with a squadron to Barcelona, made a sudden and successful attack on Gibraltar, and took possession of that important fortress, which has ever since belonged to England. In the campaign of 1705, the object of the duke of Marl- borough was to penetrate to France by the Moselle ; but his operations were ill-seconded by prince Louis of Ba- den, who was suspected of treachery, or who was actua- ted by envy of the duke's military reputation. In the mean time, the French invested and took Huy, and besie- ged Liege ; but Marlborough, returning into the Nether- lands, retook Huy, and obliged the French to abandoR their enterprise against Liege. The English general, in- flamed with a desire of achieving some action of impor- tance, attacked the enemy in their lines, defeated the Ba- varian cavalry with great slaughter, and obliged the infant- ry also to give way. Meanwhile, an English fleet, with five thousand troops under the command of the earl of Peterborough and sii Cloudesly Shovel, being joined by a Dutch squadron at Lisbon, and re-enforced by a body of horse from the earl of Galway's army in Portugal, having taken the archduke Charles on board, directed its course to Catalonia. The troops were disembarked at Barcelona, and Charles land- ed amidst the acclamations of a countless multitude, who threw themselves at his feet, exclaiming, " I^ong live the king !" Barcelona was compelled to capitulate ; and the whole province of Catalonia declared for Charles, who now assumed the title of king of Spain, and took up his winter quarters in the heart of that country. Villeroy having received orders to act on the offensive, passed the Doyle, advanced to Tirlemont, and from thence ANNE. 381 to Ramilies, where he met the miited army of the alhes. Both sides prepared for battle. The duke ^J^^ of Marlborough order^ Ueutenaiit-general Schultz, ^ with twelve battalions, and twenty pieces of cannon, to attack the village of Ramilies, which was strongly fortified with artillery. The main body of the enemy were speedily driven from the field ; and the confederates obtained a complete victo- ry. About eight thousand French and Bavarians were killed or wounded ; and the allies captured the enemy's baggage and artillery, about one hundred and twenty co- lours or standards, six hundred ofiicers, and six thousand private soldiers. The entire conquest of Brabant, and almost all Spanish Flanders, was the immediate result of the battle of Rami- lies. Louvaine, Mechlin, Brussels, Antwerp, Ghent, and Bruges, submitted without resistance ; Ostend was obliged to capitulate; and the captures of Menin, Dendermonde, and Aeth, speedily followed. In Spain, the French were also unsuccessful : anc^ing Philip was obliged to raise the seige of Barcelona. The earl of Galway advanced into Estremadura, took Alcan- tara, and marched to Madrid, which the English and Por- tuguese entered without resistance. In Italy, the French were defeated by prince Eugene at Turin, and the duke of Savoy entered his capital in tri- umph. The duke of Orleans retreated into Dauphine ; while the French garrisons were expelled from every place they occupied in Piedmont and Italy, with the exception of Cremona, Valenza, and the castle of Milan, which were blockaded by the confederates. In return for the great services which he had rendered his country, the commons, in an address, besought her ma- jesty to consider the means by which the memory of the duke of Marlborough's noble actions might be perpetuated. The queen informed them by a message, that she intended to grant to the duke and his heirs, the interest of the crown in the honour and manor of Woodstock and the hundred of Wooten ; and she desired the assistance of the house, in clearing from incumbrance the lieutenancy and ranger- ship of the park, with the rents and profits of the manor and hundred, which had already been alienated for two lives. Accordingly, a bill was brought in and passed, en- 382 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. abling the queen to bestow the aforesaid honour and ma- nor on the duke of Marlborough and his heirs ; and her majesty was desired to advance the fnoney for clearing the incumbrances. The queen not only complied with this address, but likewise ordered the comptroller of her works to build on Woodstock-park, the magnificent palace or castle of Blenheim, as a monument of the signal victoiy obtained by the duke of Marlborough near the village of that name. Previously to this, the queen, with the concuiTcnce of parliament, had alienated that branch of the revenue which arose from the first-fruits and tenths paid by the clergy, and vested it in trustees for the augmentation of small livings. At the same time, the statute of mortmain was repealed, so far as to allow all persons to bestow by will, or grant by deed, what they should think fit for the increase of benefices. The union between England and Scotland, which was effajjijMi about this time, was an event more glorious and ben^^ial than the most splendid success of the British arms. This measure, however, imperiously urged by wis- dom, was violently opposed by popular prejudice in Scot- land; but, at length, the two kingdoms were united under one legislature, and one government ; and the ■tlyfy^ union, though unpromising in its origin, has been productive of happiness and prosperity to both kingdoms. In the meantime, Louis, whose pride had been greatly humbled by the victories of the duke of Marlborough, and the exertions of the English, offered peace on the follow- ing terms : That Milan, Naples, and Sicily, should be given to the archduke ; that a barrier in the Netherlands should be allowed to the Dutch ; and that the duke of Savoy should be indemnified for the ravages committed in his dominions. In return for these concessions, he demanded the quiet possession of the throne of Spain and the Indies to his grandson, Philip V., and the restitution of Bavaria to its native prince. These offers, however, were rejected ; and the charac- ter of the duke of Marlborough was at this time so high in the nation, that both houses of parliament renewed their thanks to him, passed a bill to perpetuate his titles in the ANNE* 383 female as well as the male line, and readily voted supplies for prosecuting the war. But, notwithstanding all his grace's abilities and influ* ence, he could not escape the envy which too frequently attends on transcendant talents and uninterrupted success. Mrs. Masham, a distant relation of the duchess of Marl borough, who had, from this connexion, obtained the of- fice of woman of the bed chamber, succeeded to that as- cendancy over the mind of her sovereign, which the duchess had long maintained. This favourite was more obliging than her benefactress, who had frequently opposed the wishes of the queen ; and in political intrigues, she acted as auxiliary to Mr. Robert Harley, who had been appointed secretary of state, and who determined to destroy the cre- dit of the duke of Marlborough and the earl of Godolphin. His intention was to unite the tories under his own aus- pices, and expel the whigs from the administration ; and, in this scheme, he was assisted by Henry St. John, after- wards lord Bolingbroke, a man of elegant taste and an as- piring mind, whose talents, however, were rather specious than profound, and whose principles were loose and un- settled. The duke of Marlborough and the earl of Godolphin, apprized of the secret intrigues which Mr. Harley carried on with Mrs. Masham, informed the queen that they could serve her no longer, if that minister were continued in his office of secretary. The queen endeavoured to appease their resentment, but in vain ; and she was obliged to re- move Mr. Harley from his office; but her majesty was in- dignant at the conduct of the duke and the earl of Godol- phin, from whom she withdrew her confidence. At this period, the nation was alarmed with a threatened invasion from France, in favour of the pretender, or the chevalier St. George, as he was called. The queen com- municated to the commons the advice Avhich she had re- ceived of the destination of the French armament ; and both houses immediately joined in a loyal and atfeciionate address on this occasion ; the habeas corpus act was sus- pended ; the pretender and his adherents were proclaimed traitors and rebels ; and a bill was passed, discharging the clans of Scotland, where it was expected the chevalier would land, from all vassalage to those chiefs who should arm against her majesty. 384 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. Preparations for this expedition were made at Dunkirk, where a fleet was assembled under count Fourbin, and a body of land forces embarked ; and this armament, after leaving Dunkirk, directed its course for Scotland. Sir George Byng, who had received advice of its departure from the coast of France, pursued the enemy with an Eng- lish squadron so closely, that both fleets arrived in the Frith of Forth almost at the same time ; when the French commander, despairing of success, and unwilling to try the issue of a battle, took advantage of a land-breeze, and sailed away. The pretender desired to be set on shore at Inverness ; but this being found impracticable, the che- valier and his general returned to Dunkirk. The duke of Marlborough, with his usual success, de- feated the French near Oudenarde. In this battle, ^^j?Q the French had about three thousand men killed ' in the field, and seven thousand taken prisoners. After obtaining this victory, the allies invested Lisle, the strongest place in Flanders, and the bulwark of the French barrier. Prince Eugene commanded, and the duke of Marlborough covered and sustained the siege. The gar- rison was numerous, and was commanded by a marshal of France ; but nothing could resist bravery and skill united. The enemy assembled all their forces, and marched to the relief of the place, but were only spectators to its fall. The duke obhged the elector of Bavaria to raise the siege of Brussels ; and re-took Ghent and Bruges, which had been lost by treachery. On the twenty-eighth of October of this year, died Georo'e, prince of Denmark, a personage who possessed all the amiable qualities of his consort, but who was devoid of great talents and ambition. At his de^h, the earl ot Pembroke was created lord high-admiral, the earl of Wharton was promoted to the government of Ireland, and lord Somers appointed president of the council. Notwith- standing the advancement of these whig noblemen, the duke of Marlborough contnmed to decline in his credit with the queen, who privately consulted, and placed her chief confidence in Mr. Harley, though the latter held no ostensible situation in the administration. Meanwhile, the duke of Savoy, by making himself mas- ter of the important fortresses of Exilles, La Perouse, the valley of St. Martin, and Fenestrells, had not only secured ANNE* 385 a barriei* to his own frontiers, but opened a way into the French provinces on the side of Dauphine ; while the pos- session of Lisle exposed that monarchy on the side of the Netherlands. During this campaign, major-general Stanhope, with three thousand men, having landed on the island of Mi- norca, took fort ^. Philip in three days ; and the garrison of fort Fornelles having surrendered themselves prisoners to admiral sir John Leake, the whole island submitted to the English government. By this time the pride of Louis was humbled, and he once more made proposals of peace to the Dutch ; but the States immediately communicated his proposals to the courts of Vienna and London ; and the emperor appoint- ed prince Eugene of Savoy, and Great Britain the duke of Marlborough, as their respective plenipotentiaries. The allies, however, rendered insolent by conquest, made de- mands which were considered extravagant by the French monarch, who, gathering resolution from despair, publish- ed them and his own concessions ; and the people, ani- mated with the desire of defending their king and country, displayed extraordinary efforts in preparing to resist the tremendous power of the enemy. The allies, on their side, were equally active. Marlbo- rough and prince Eugene proceeded to Flanders ; and the allied army assembled on the plain of Lisle, to the number of one hundred and ten thousand men. Tournev soon fell, and the siege of Mons was formed. The French ar- my, amounting to one hundred and twenty thousand men, were posted in the neighbourhood of Malpla- ily^A quet. In the night of the tenth of September, the two armies arrayed themselves in order of battle ; and, about eight o'clock the next morning, one of the most fu- rious contests that had taken place in this war commenced. The battle was maintained with the most determined cou- rage on both sides.. The French fought with an obstinacy bordering on despair, till seeing their lines forced, and their general dangerously wounded, they retreated in good order, and took post between Quesnoy and Valenciennes. The field of battle was abandoned to the confederates, with about forty colours and standards, sixteen pieces of artil- lery, and a number of prisoners ; but it was the dearest victory the allies had ever purchased. About twenty thou- 33 3S6 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. sand of their best troops were killed in the engagement^ while the enemy did not lose half that number. The bat tie of Malplaquet, however, was followed by the surrender of Mons ; and this achievement terminated the campaign. Some attempts at negotiation were again made by Louis ; but in proportion to his concessions, the allies rose in theii demands. # During this campaign, the military operations in Spain and Portugal were unfavourable to the aUies. The castle of Alicant, garrisoned by two English regiments, had been besieged during a whole winter. At length, the com- mander of the besieging forces ordered the rock on which the castle was situated to be undermined ; and colonel Syburgh, the governor, was informed, that it was intended to spring the mine, if he did not surrender in twenty-four hours. Syburgh, however, refused to comply ; and the rock being split by the explosion, the colonel and several officers were swallowed up in the opening, which imme- diately closed upon them ; but notwithstanding this terri- ble accident, the garrison persisted in its defence, till the arrival of general Stanhope, who procured an honourable capitulation. Henry Sacheverell, a man of very moderate talents, but of a busy and meddling disposition, in a sermon preached at St. Paul's, on the fifth day of November, took occasion to inveigh with bitterness against the ministry, the dissent- ers, and the low church ; he defended the doctrine of non- resistance, and declaring religion to be in danger, exhorted the people to stand up in defence of the church. This ser- mon being printed, was speedily dispersed over the king- dom ; and Mr. Dolben, son of the late archbishop of York, complained of it to the house of commons, in consequence of which Sacheverell was taken into custody and impeached. The attention of the whole kingdom was fixed on this extraordinary trial, though neither the man nor his publi- cation deserved any other than silent contempt. The trial continued for three weeks ; and a vast multitude attended Sacheverell every day to and from Westminster-hall, pray- ing for his deliverance as if he had been a martyr. The (jueen's sedan was surrounded by the populace, who ex- claimed, " God bless your majesty and the church ; we hope your majesty is f ^r Sacheverell." They abused and ius\dted all who would not join in the cry of "the church m ANNE. 387 and Sacheverell ;" destroyed several meeting-houses, and plundered the dwellings of eminent dissenters. Sacheverell was found guilty by a majority of seventeen voices ; he was prohibited from preaching for the term of three years ; and his sermon was ordered to be burnt in the presence of the lord-mayor and the sheriffs of London, be- fore whom it had been delivered. The lenity of the sen- tence, which was in a great measure owing to a dread of the popular fury, was celebrated as a triumph over the whigs. The French king, sensible that the misery of his people daily increased by the continuance of the war, again made overtures for peace; but finding that the ^ly^A allies would not listen to reasonable or honourable terms, and hoping that the approaching change in the English ministry might be productive of advantage to him, he resolved to await the events of another campaign. The duke of Marlborough, however, still continued his successes. He took Douay, Bethune, Venant, and Aire, which opened a free passage into the heart of France. On the Rhine, the campaign produced no military event ; and in Spain, both parties were by turns conquerors and conquered. In England, the effects of those intrigues which had been formed against the whig ministers, began to appear. The trial of Sacheverell had excited a popular spirit of aversion to those who favoured the dissenters ; and the queen expressed her attachment to the tories, by mortify- ing the duke of Marlborough, whose interest was not suffi- cient to prevent the dismission of his own son-in-law, the earl of Sunderland, from the office of secretary of state. Harley became sole minister, and was created earl of Ox- ford and Mortimer. The new ministry, however, had not yet determined to supersede Marlborough in the command of the army. In the next campaign, prince Eugene acted in Germany, and the duke of Marlborough was again opposed by marshal Villars, who had assembled a numerous army, and which he encamped in a strong position behind ^' J** the river Sanset. Villars boasted that the French lines were impregnable ; but the duke of Marlborough en- tered these lines without the loss of a single soldier"; and he afterwards reduced the strong town of Bouchain in the very sight of the French army, which was superior to his 388 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. own, and made the garrison, consisting of six thousand men, prisoners of war. This was the last memorable military service performed by the duke of Marlborough. The ministers took every method which envy and malice could suggest, to exaspe- rate the nation against the duke, who had supported so uobly the glory of England, humbled the pride and check- ed the ambition of France, secured the liberty of Europe, and, as it were, chained victory to his chariot wheels. Of Marlborough it has been justly observed, that he never laid siege to a town which he did not take, or fought a battle which he did not win. His understanding was as injurious to France as his military abilities ; and he was equally famous in the cabinet as in the field. Such, however, is the violent conduct of faction, that this consummate general and statesman was ridiculed in public libels, and reviled in private conversation r He was represented as guilty of fraud, avarice, and extortion, and traduced as the meanest of mankind. Even his cou- rage was called in question ; and he was accused of inso- lence, ambition, and misconduct. When his enemies had become ministers, the same parliament, which had so often before voted him thanks for the great and important ser- vices he had performed, now determined, by a large ma jority, that some of his practices had been unwarrantable and illegal ; and on the strength of these resolutions, ori- ginating solely from party motives, the queen dismissed him from all his employments, and the command was gi- ven to the duke of Ormond. By the death of Joseph, emperor of Germany, his bro- ther, the archduke Charles, became possessed of all the hereditary states of the empire ; and soon after being elected emperor, the object of the war was certainly changed ; for his accession to the thrones of both Germa- ny and Spain would have effectually destroyed that ba- lance of power, for the maintenance of which so much blood had been spilt. A congress was therefore appointed at Utrecht; and, after negotiations had been long carried on at that place, peace wns signed, March 31, 1713, by all the belligerent powers, except the emperor. By the treaty of Utrecht, Spain and the Indies were confirmed to Philip ; but the Netherlands and the Spanish dominions in Italy were se- ANNE* 389 parated from that monarchy. Naples, Sardinia, and Mi- lan, were bestowed on the emperor ; and Sicily, with the title of king, was given to the duke of Savoy. The Dutch had a barrier assigned them against France in the Netl\- erlands ; while all that Great Britain gained, after so glo- rious a war, and so many splendid victories, was the de- molition of Dunkirk, and the possession of Gibraltar and Minorca. The ambition of St. John, lord viscount Bolingbroke, would not allow him to act a subordinate part under Har- ley, earl of Oxford ; and the former had insinuated him- self into the confidence of Mrs. Masham, whom the latter had displeased. By means of that lady, Bolingbroke was confirmed in the good opinion of the queen, while Oxford in proportion lost the favour of his sovereign. The queen, harassed by discordant counsels, and perceiving her con- stitution giving way, was supposed by some to form real designs of securing the succession to her brother ; and it was strongly suspected, that Bolingbroke was attached to the same interest, and encouraged her majesty with the most flattering hopes of success. After the peace had received the sanction of parliament, the two rivals, unrestrained by the tie of common danger, gave a loose to their mutual animosity ; and a very acri- monious dialogue passed, on the 27th of July, between Mrs. Masham, Oxford, and Bolingbroke, in the presence of the queen. Soon after, Oxford was deprived of his badge of office ; but as no provision had been made for sup- plying his place, confusion and disorder ensued at court. The fatigue of attending-a long cabinet-council held on this occasion, and the altercation which passed between the ministers at the board, so agitated and aftected the queen's spirits, that she was immediately seized with an apoplectic disorder, which baffled all the power of medi- cine. Her majesty continued in a lethargic insen- jl, J sibility, with short intervals, till her death, which took place on the first day of August, in the fiftieth year of her age, and the thirteenth of her reign. Anne was of the middle size, and well proportioned ; her countenance was round, her features regular, her com- plexion ruddy, and her hair a dark brown. In domestic life, she was a pattern of conjugal affection, and a tender mother. She wanted, however, the vigour of mind re- 33* 890 MlStOUY OP ENGLAND. quisite to preserve her independence, and to free her frott» tlie snares of favourites ; but the virtues of her heart were never doubted ; and, notwithstanding the party feuds which embittered her repose, and disturbed her reign, she was personally beloved by her people. In a word, though her abilities were unequal to the high station which she filled, and her attachment to favourites Was injurious to her government and the nation, she was a humane and munificent sovereign, and well deserved the title, which her subjects gave her, of '* the good queen Anne." CHAP. XX. The reign of George J. If providence had granted a longer life to Anne, and the daring and ambitious St. John had continued to influ- ence her councils, there seems reason to suppose that at- tempts would have been made to restore the hereditary line. Certain it is, that the friends of the pretender de- rived great hopes from the ministry of Bolingbroke ; but the sudden death of the queen, by destroying the expecta- tions of the Jacobites, put an end to their present machi- nations, and thus removed the fears and apprehensions of the whigs. Agreeably to the act of settlement passed in the reign of William, George I. elector of Hanover, descend- ed by his mother from Elizabeth, daughter of i^i^ James I., was procltftmed king in due form, the very day of the queen's death, and the submission of the three kingdoms was as universal, as if no pretended claim existed. At the time of his ascending the throne of Great Britain, George was in the fifty-fifth year of his age. In about §ix weeks, he landed at Greenwich, where he was received by the lords of the regen6y ; and on the twentieth day of Oc- tober following, he was crowned at Westminster with the usual solemnity. The hopes and fears of both the whigs and tories were great at this time ; but the new sovereign had been prepos- sessed against the latter ; and his majesty efi'ected an in- stantaneous and total change in all important offices under government. The duke of Ormond was dismissed from jiis command, which the king I'estored to the duke of OEORGE I. 391 Marlborough, with several new appointments ; tlie earl of Nottingham was declared president of the council ; the great seal was given to lord Cowper ; the privy-seal to the earl of Wharton ; and the vice-royalty of Ireland to the earl of Sunderland. Lord Townshend and Mr. Stanhope were appointed secretaries of state ; Mr. Pulteney secre- tary of war ; and Mr. Walpole, who had undertaken to manage the house of commons, was made paymaster to the army. The post of secretary for Scotland was bestowed on the duke of Montrose ; and the duke of Argyle was ap- pointed commander in chief of the forces in that country. Thus the whigs obtained an ascendancy both in and out of parliament. Meanwhile, the malcontents in England were consider- ably increased by the king's attachment to the whigs ; and dangerous tumults were raised in different parts of the kingdom. The pretender took this opportunity to trans- mit copies of a printed manifesto to various noblemen of the first distinction* In this declaration, he mentioned the good intentions of his sister towards him, which had been prevented by her death ; and observed, that his people had proclaimed for their king a foreign prince, contrary to the laws of hereditary right, which no act could abrogate. When the parliament met, the earl of Oxford, the duke of Ormond, the earl of Strafford, and lord Bolingbroke, were impeached, on account of the parts which they had acted in regard to the peace of Utrecht. Bolingbroke fled to the continent, and was followed by Ormond ; but though Oxford, Prior, and some others, were taken into custody, they all escaped punishment, Ormond and Bolingbroke, not surrendering themselves within the time appointed, the house of lords ordered their names to be erased from the list of peers ; and inventories were taken of their per- sonal estates. It is impossible to reflect on the ruin of tlie noble family of Ormond, in the person of a brave and hu- mane nobleman, whose only crime was obedience to the commands of his sovereign, without feeling the greatest indignation against those who were the promoters of such iniquitoas proceedings. The spirit of discontent daily increased in England; and notwithstanding the proclamations against riots, se- veral tumults were raised in the cities of London and Westminster. A trifling incident served to augment the 3S^ HISTORY OP ENGLANB. public ferment. The shirts allowed to the first regiment of guards, commanded by the duke of Marlborough, were so coarsCf that the soldiers could scarcely be persuaded to wear them. Some of the shirts were thrown into the gar- den of the king's palace, and into that which belonged to the duke of Marlborough ; and a detachment, in marching through the city, produced them to the people, exclaiming, " These are the Hanover shirts." Tumults were raised in Staffordshire, and other parts of the kingdom ; and the house of commons presented an address to the king, desiring that the laws might be exe- cuted with vigour against rioters. They also passed a new act, by which it was decreed, that if any persons, to the number of twelve, unlawfully assembled, should continue together one hour after having been required to disperse by a justice of peace or other officer, and had heard the proclamation against riots read in public, they should be deemed guilty of felony without benefit of clergy. The king having infoiined both houses that a rebellion had actually commenced, and that the nation was threat- ened with a foreign invasion, the parliament immediately passed a law, empowering his majesty to secure suspected persons, and to suspend the habeas corpus act. About this period, the royal assent was given to an act for encoura- ging loyalty in Scotland. By this law, the tenant who continued peaceable, while his lord took up arms in favour of the pretender, was invested with the propriety of the lands he rented ; on the other hand, it decreed that the lands possessed by any person guilty of high-treason should revert to the superior of whom they were held ; and a clause was added for summoning all suspected persons to find bail for their good behaviour. By virtue of this clause, all the heads of the jacobite clans, and other sus- pected persons, were summoned to Edinburgh, and those who neglected to appear were declared rebels. The disaffected, both in England and Scotland, held private consultations with the Jacobites ; and the cheva- lier St. George was assured, that the whole nation was dis- satisfied with the new government. Resolving to take advantage of this favourable disposition, tlie chevalier ap- plied to the French king, who supplied him with the means of fitting out a small armament in the port of Havre ; but the death of Louis, which happened at this time, was GEORGE I. 303 highly detrimental to his interests ; and the duke of Or- leans, on whom the regency of the kingdom devolved, adopted a new system of politics, and entered into ".ne strictest alliance with the king of Great Britain. The partisans of the pretender, however, had gone too far to recede. The earl of Mar, assembling three hun- dred of his vassals, proclaimed the chevalier at Castletown, and on the sixth of September, set up ill/i4 his standard at Brae- Mar. Then assuming the title of lieutenant- general of the pretender's forces, he publish- ed a declaration, exhorting the people to arm for their lawful sovereign ; and this was followed by a manifesto, in which the national grievances were enumerated and aggravated, and the people promised redress. Meanwhile, the duke of Argyie set out for Scotland, as commander-in-chief of the forces in North Britain ; and the earl of Sutherland set sail for that country, to raise his vassals in defence of his liege sovereign. Other heads of clans did the same; and it was soon evident, that the voice of Scotland vi^as far from being general in favour of the pretender. In the north of England, however, the earl of Derwent- water and Mr. Foster took the field with a body of horse, and being joined by some gentlemen from the borders, proclaimed the chevalier in Warkworth, Morpeth, and Alnwick. After an ineffectual attempt on Newcastle, they retired northwards, and being reinforced by a body of troops under lords Kenmuir, Carnwath, and Wintown, the insurgents advanced to Kelso, where they were joined by Mackintosh, who had crossed the Forth with a body of highlanders. A council of war being called, the rebels determined to re-enter England by the western border. At Brampton, Foster opened his commission of general, and proclaimed the pretender. They continued their march to Penrith, where the sheriff, assisted by lord Lonsdale and the bishop of Carlisle, had assembled the posse comitatus of Cumber- land, amounting to twelve thousand men, who fled at the approach of this small army. From Penrith, the insur- gents proceeded by the way of Kendal and Lancaster to Preston, of which they took possession without opposition. General Willis marched against the rebels, with six regiments of horse and one battalion of foot, and had ad- 394 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. vanced to the bridge of Rftble, before Foster received in- lelligence of their approach. At first, the king's troops met with a warm reception, but being reinforced next day with three regiments of dragoons, under general Carpen- ter, the town was invested on all sides. The rebels now proposed to capitulate, but the general refusing to treat, they surrendered at discretion. The noblemen and lead- ers were secured, and sent prisoners to London. Some of them were tried by the martial-law and executed ; and the common men were imprisoned at Chester and Liverpool, till the pleasure of government respecting them should be known. The very day on which the rebels surrendered at Preston, was fought the battle of Dumblane, between the duke of Argyle and the earl of Mar. The duke's army was far inferior in point of numbers ; but he obtained the advan- tage, though both sides claimed the victory. In this desperate situation of his affairs, the chevalier, embarking in a small vessel at Dunkirk, landed at Perhead on the twenty-second of December, and proceeded to Fet- terosse, where, being joined by the earls of Mar and Ma- rischal, and about thirty noblemen, and gentlemen of the first quality, he was proclaimed king. His declaration, dated at Commercy, was printed and circulated through all the adjacent counties ; and he received addresses from the episcopal clergy, and the laity of that communion, in Aberdeenshire. On the fifth of January, he made his pub- lic entry into Dundee ; and, on the seventh, he ar- ,1,^ rived at Scone, where he assumed all the functions of royalty, and fixed his coronation for the twenty- third of the same month. This dream of royalty, however, w^as of short duration. In a council, at which all the chiefs of his party assisted, it was determined to abandon the enterprise, as they were destitute of money, arms and ammunition, and as they were beginning to be hemmed in by the king's army. The chevalier, being hotly pui*sued by tlic duke of Argyle, was glad to embark on board a French vessel which lay in the harbour of Montrose, from whence he sailed to France, accompanied by Mar, Melfort, Drummond, Bulk- ley, and other persons of distinction. The rebelhon being thus suppressed, the commons im- peached the nobility who had been engaged in this affair j GEDR6E I. S95 but of them the earl of Derwentwater and lord Kenmuir alone suffered death ; and few of the lower ranks were exe- cuted in comparison with the number found guilty. About one thousand, who submitted to the king's mercy, petition- ed for transportation, and were sent to America. The ministry, sensible of the unpopularity of their mea- sures, and fearing the effects of a new parliament, deter- mined to repeal the triennial act, and by a new law to extend the term of parliaments to seven years. -tly^A Accordingly, on the tenth of April, the duke of Devonshire brought a bill into the house of lords for en- larging the continuance of parliaments, which was sup- ported by all the whig party ; and though it was strenu- ously opposed by the earls of Nottingham, Abingdon, and Paulet, it passed by a great majority ; and, in the lower house, it met with the same success. The Spanish king having taken Sardinia, and invaded Sicily, Great Britain, France, Holland and the emperor, formed a quadruple alliance against his catholic majesty. Bremen, and Verdun, which had been purchased with the money of England, were secured to Hanover, contrary to the act of settlement in the reign of king William. Admi- ral sir George Byng sailed with twenty ships of the line, for the Mediterranean ; and, on the eleventh of August, he met, off cape Passaro, on the south- i^|q east point of Sicily, with the Spanish fleet consist- ing of twenty-seven sail. An engagement ensued, in which sir George took or destroyed the greatest part of the hostile armament. The Spaniards now formed a scheme in favour of the pretender, and sent a squadron, with six thousand regular troops and twelve thousand stand of arras, under the duke of Ormond, to invade Great Britain. The Spanish fleet, however, was dispersed by a violent storm, which defeated the intended expedition ; but two frigates arrived in Scot- land, with the earls Marischal and Seaforth, the marquis of Tullibardine, and three hundred Spaniards. These being attacked by General Wightman, were entirely de- feated. Soon after, lord Cobham made a descent on Spain, and took Vigo; and his catholic majesty acceded to the quadruple alliance, which, indeed, was chiefly in favour of the emperor, who was desirous of adding Sicily to his other Italian dominions. 306 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. On the royal recommendation to the commons to take the national debt into consideration, a scheme was 171Q forwi^d, called the South-Sea act, which was pro- ductive of the greatest mischief and infatuation. The scheme was projected bj sir John Blount, who had been bred a scrivener, and who proposed to discharge the national debt, by reducing all the funds into one. The bank and South-Sea company bade against each other; and the terms of the latter were so advantageous, that go- vernment closed with them. While the matter was in agitation, the stock of the com pany rose from one hundred and thirty to nearly four hun- dred ; and though the Mississippi scheme of Law had ruin* ed many thousand families in France, in the pre^ 1720 ^^^^^S y^^^j the people of England were so infa- tuated, that the example did not operate as a warn- ing. Blount imposed on the whole nation, which was seized with a kind of delirium. The projector and his associates pretended, that Gibraltar and Port Mahon would be exchanged for some places in Peru, by which means the English trade to the South-Sea would be protected and enlarged ; the directors opened their books for a subscrip- tion of one million, at the rate of three hundred pounds for one hundred, capital stock ; and such was the eager- ness of the multitude to subscribe, that in five days two millions were entered in the books, and stocks advanced to double the price of the first payment. By a promise of high dividends and other artifices, the South-Sea stock was raised to one thousand- Exchange- alley was daily filled with an infatuated crowd of all ranks ; but in the course of a few weeks the stock fell to one hundred and fifty ; and the ebb of this tide of hope was so violent, as to overwhelm in ruin an infinite num- ber of families. Public credit sustained a terrible shock- The principal actors in this nefarious undertaking were punished by parliament, and measures were adopted for giving some redress to the injured parties. In the beginning of May, it was reported, that the kinj: had received from the duke of Orleans information of a conspiracy against his person and s^overnment. In ^jcyo consequence, a camp was immediately formed in Hyde park ; all military officers were ordered to repair to their respective posts; troops were sent from GEORGE I. 397 Ireland ; the states of Holland were desired to have their auxiliary forces ready to be embarked ; and some suspect- ed persons were apprehended in Scotland. Among the individuals supposed to be implicated in this treasonable conspiracy, were Atterbury, bishop of Roches- ter; the earl of Orrery ; the lords North and Grey; Coch- rane and Smith, from Scotland; Christopher Layer, a young gentleman of the Temple ; George Kelley, an Irish clergyman ; Cotton, Bingley, and Fleetwood, Englishmen ; and one Naynoe, an Irish priest. All these were taken into custody, and committed to different prisons. On the meeting of the new parliament, his majesty in- formed them of the nature and extent of the plot, which, he said, if it had not been timely discovered, would have involved the whole nation, and particularly the city of London, in blood and confusion. The parliament sus- pended the habeas corpus act for a year; but the opposi- tion in the house of commons was so violent, that Mr. Ro- bert Walpole, the prime minister, endeavoured to rouse their apprehensions by informing them of a design to seize the bank and exchequer, and to proclaim the pretender on the Royal Exchange. To corroborate the whole, an original and printed copy of a declaration, signed by the pretender at Lucca, was laid before the house. In this curious paper, the chevalier expatiated on the grievances of England, and very gravely proposed, that if king George would relinquish the throne of Great Britain, he would, in return, bestow on him the title of king in his native domi- nions, and secure to him the succession to the British sceptre, whenever, in due course, his natural right should take place. The commons prepared a bill for raising one hundred thousand pounds on the real and personal estates of pa- pists, towards defraying the expenses incurred by the late rebellion and disorders ; and all persons of that faith in Scotland were called upon to register their names and real estates. These acts were followed by the trial, conviction, and execution of Layer. Against the lords who had been ar- rested, no evidence appeared, or at least was produced ; Out Atterbury, bishop of Rochester, had rendered himself fioo conspicuous to escape punishment. On mere conjec- ture and hearsay evidence, a bill of pains and penalties M 398 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. passed the lower house against him, and was sent up to the lords, when the trial commenced. Nothing could be proved against hini, except the uncertain evidence of the clerks of the post-office; yet the bishop was deprived of all offices, benefices, and dignities, and rendered incapa- ble of enjoying any for the future ; he was also banished the realm, and subjected to the penalty of death in case he should return ; and all persons who should correspond with him in his exile, were declared guilty of a capital offence. The remainder of the reign of George the First presents little to excite attention. Intricate and contradictory trea- ties, most of which were inimical to the interests of this country, form the principal subjects of this portion of English history. The king was suddenly seized with a paralytic disorder, on the road from Holland to Hanover, and was conveyed in a state of insensibility to Osnaburgh, where he ^IfjnC expired on Sunday, the 11th day of June, in the sixty-eighth year of his age, and the thirteenth of his reign. George I. was plain in his person, and simple in his ad- dress. His deportment was grave and composed, though he could be easy and familiar in the hours of relaxation. Before he ascended the throne of Great Britain, he was considered an able and experienced general, a just and merciful prince, and a consummate politician. "With these qualities, his disposition to govern England, according to the regulations of the British constitution, cannot be dis- puted ; and if ever he appeared to deviate from these prin- ciples, we readily allow, that the blame does not attach to him, but to his ministers, by whose venal suggestions he was misled. George I. married the princess Sophia Dorothy, daugh- ter of the duke of Zell, from whom he separated before he came to England. CHAP. XXI. The reign of George II, On the 14th day of June, an account was received of the late king's death, when the prince of Wales repaired GEORGE II. 390 From Richmond to Leicester-house, where a privy- couacil was held, and next day, George II. was ^l^^Z proclaimed king with the usual solemnities. His majesty declared his firm purpose to preserve the consti- tution in church and state, and to adhere to those allian- ces into which his father had entered. At the same time, he took and subscribed the oath for the security of the church of Scotland, as required by the act of union ; and he continued all the great officers of state in their places. In his speech to both houses, on the opening of the par- liament, the king professed a fixed resolution to merit the love and affection of his people, by maintaining them in the full enjoyment of their religious and civil rights, and by studying to lessen the expenses of government on eve- ry occasion. Sir Robert Walpole followed these gracious assurances, by moving that the entire revenue of the civil-list, which produced about eight hundred thousand pounds per an- num, should be settled on the king during life ; and though Mr. Shippen and other patriots opposed any increase of the royal revenue, as inconsistent with the trust reposed in them, the motion was carried by a great majority ; and a liberal provision was made for- the queen, in case she should survive his majesty. In short, the two houses of parliament seemed to vie with each other in expressing their attachment to the new king : and, for a time, all par- ties appeared to be united in afi*ection to his person, and in submission to the proposals of his ministers. Sir Robert Walpole, though he disclaimed any intention of promoting a general excise, expatiated on the benefits which would accrue to the nation by a partial measure of that nature, and prevent numberless frauds on the public and the fair trader. The speech of the minister was fol- lowed by a motion that a partial excise on tobacco should be levied. This measure met with a violent opposition, as well from the consideration of the train of depen- dants it would produce, as from the dread of its ex- ^il<^ tension to other articles ; and the ferment became so great throughout the nation, that though the minister had a triumphant majority of sixty-one in the house of commons, he was obliged to waive the advantage, and abandon the scheme. Ever since the treaty of Seville, in 1729, the Spaniards 400 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. in America had almost incessantly insulted and distressed the commerce of Great Britain. They disputed the right of the English to cut logwood in the hay of Campeachy, and gather salt on the island of Tortugas, though that right was acknowledged in all the treaties concluded between the two nations. The captains of their armed vessels, call- ed guard a-costas, made a practice of boarding and plun- dering English ships, on the pretence of searching for con- traband goods ; and various other acts of cruelty and injus- tice were committed. In particular, one Captain Jenkins, master of a Scottish merchant ship, was boarded by the commander of a Spanish guarda-costa, who insulted Jenkins with the most opprobrious invectives, and tore off one of his ears, which he bade him carry to the king, and tell him that the Spaniards would serve him in the same manner, if an opportunity should present itself. These outrages were loudly and justly complained of. Petitions from different parts of the kingdom were present- ed to the lower house ; and the relief of parliament was earnestly implored against these acts of violence. Sir John Barnard moved, that all the memorials and papers relative to the Spanish depredations should be laid before the com- mons ; and though sir Robert Walpole proposed some al- teration, he was obliged to comply. The minister, however, was either fond of peace, or afraid that war would injure his administration. Every endeavour, therefore, to prevent a rupture with Spain was industriously employed ; and, at last, a convention was concluded and ratified, by which the king of Spain ^ly^a bound himself to pay, within a limited time, the ^ ' sum of ninety-five thousand pounds, to be employ- ed in discharging the demands of British subjects on the crown of Spain. This measure, however, excited great indignation ; and Mr. William Pitt, who afterwards ren- dered himself so illustrious by his eloquence, his virtues, and his talents, declaimed against the convention, as inse- cure, unsatisfactory, and dishonourable to Great Britain. The Spaniards not fulfilling the agreement into which they had entered, letters of marque and reprisal were o-ranted against Spain ; a large fleet was assembled at Spithead ; the land forces were augmented ; and ^1^ an embaro;o was laid on all merchant vessels. Af- ter another fruitless attempt to negotiate, war was at last formally declared. tSECllGE II. 401 Admiral Vernon having affirmed, in the house of com- mons, that he could take Porto Bello, on the Spanish Main, with six ships, was despatched thither, and actually performed this hazardous service, almost without opposi- tion. On the arrival of this news, the two houses of par- liament joined in an address of congratulation on the suc- cess of his majesty's arms ; and the commons granted all the necessary supplies for carrying on the war. The minister, however, was become extremely unpopu- lar. War was not the sphere of sir Robert Walpole. Expensive expeditions were projected, without producing any corresponding effect ; and the enemy was unmolest- ed in proceeding from one port to another. In conse- quence, the minister was attacked in the house of com- mons with much asperity ; and though he contrived to re- tain his situation, it was evident that his administration was verging towards a close. Charles VI. emperor of Germany, and the last male sovereign of the house of Austria, died at Vienna, and was succeeded in his hereditary dominions by his eldest daugh- ter, the archduchess Maria Theresa, married to ^ L^^ the grand duke of Tuscany ; but, though this prin- cess became queen of Hungary, by virtue of the pragmatic sanction, the restless ambition of her neigh- bours would not suffer her to enjoy those possessions which had been guarantied by all the powers of Europe. Frederick, the young and aspiring king of Prussia, was no sooner informed of the emperor's death, than he laid claim to Silesia, which he entered at the head of twenty thousand men. At the same time, the elector of Bavaria refused to acknowledge the archduchess as queen of Hun- gary and Bohemia, alleging, that he himself had legiti- mate pretensions to these dominions. Thus a war was kindled in Germany ; and the archduchess rriade requisi- tion of twelve thousand men, stipulated by treaty to be fur- nished her by England. In the present posture of affairs, men could be less con- veniently spared than money ; and sir Robert Walpole moved, that two hundred thousand pounds should be granted in aid to the queen of Hungary. The motion pass- ed, though not without opposition ; and the house resol- ved, that three hundred thous-and pounds should be granted to his majesty to enable him to assist the archduchess. 34* 403 HlSfORY OF ENGLAND. An attempt was made on Carthagena by sir Chaloner Ogle, and admiral Vernon ; but it failed of success, and was attended with the loss of many men^ the greatest part of whom were martyrs to the season and the climate. An- other unsuccessful expedition to Cuba finished the losses and the disgraces of this campaign. The nation cora- plained loudly of these miscarriages ; and the general dis- content had a great eifect on the election of members for the new parliament. Notwithstanding all the ministerial influences, the party of opposition evidently prevailed. The adherents of the minister began to tremble j and sir Robert Walpqle knew, that the majority of a single vote would commit him prisoner to the Tower. After endea- vouring in vain to bring over the prince of Wales to his party, he prudently meditated a retreat ; and , 1 . J" the king having adjourned both houses of parlia- ment, in the mean time sir Robert Walpole was created earl of Oxford, and resigned all his employments, after being a minister for twenty years. The change in the ministry was celebrated with public rejoicings ; yet, if the character of Walpole be candidly appreciated, we shall find less to censure than to praise. That he carried his measures by venal influence must be allowed, and this is the greatest stain that attaches to his character ; but those who suffered themselves to be cor- rupted were at least equally blameable. When, however, we contemplate his aversion to war, and his disinterested conduct, when so much was at his disposal, we cannot de- ny him the tribute of our applause. In the new administration, the duke of Newcastle and Mr. Pelham retained their former situations. Mr. Sandys succeeded sir Robert Walpole as chancel- ^^^^ lor of the exchequer; and the earl of Wilmington was appointed first lord of the treasury, in the room of the ex-minister. Lord Carteret became secretary of state for the foreign department ; and Mr. Pulteney, who refused any oflicial situation, was sworn of the privy-council, and soon after created ear! of Bath. It soon however appeared, that those who had declaim- ed the loudest for the liberties of their country, had been actuated solely by sordid or ridiculous motives. The peo- ple complained, that, instead of a change of men and measures, the old ministry was strengthened by this coali GEOltGiS It. tiou ; and they branded the new converts as apostates and betrayers of their country. The parhament voted one hundred thousand seamen and landsmen for the service of the year ; five hundred thousand pounds to the queen of Hungary ; and they pro- vided for the subsidies to Denmark and Hesse Cassel. As the king had determined to make a powerful diversion in the Netherlands, sixteen thousand men were embarked for the continent, under the command of the earl of Stair; and several thousand of Hanoverians, Hessians, and Aus- trians, were taken into British pay. The troops which the king of Great Britain had assem- bled in the Netherlands, marched for the Rhine, and en- camped at Hoech, on the river Maine. The duke of Cum- berland had already come to make his first campaign, and his majesty arrived in the camp on the 9th of June. The king found his army, amounting to about forty thousand men, in a critical situation ; and receiving intelligence that a reinforcement of twelve thousand Hanoverians and Hes- sians had reached Hanau, he resolved to march to that place, as well with a view to effect a junction, as to procure provisions for his forces. Soon after he had begun his march, he perceived the French drawn up in order of bat- tle at the village of Dettingen ; and he now found himself enclosed on all sides by the enemy, insomuch that a retreat was impossible. Thus environed, the 17^0 confederates must either have fought at a great dis- advantage, or been obliged to surrender, if the duke dc Grammont had not rashly descended into the plain. The French charged with impetuosity, and the allies received the shock with great intrepidity and deliberation. The king himself displayed much personal courage ; and the duke of Cumberland was wounded. The French were at last repulsed, and obliged to cross the Maine, with the loss of five thousand men. The French, who had now become principals in the war, projected an invasion of Great Britain, and made prepara- tions for that purpose at Boulogne and Dunkirk, under the inspection of the young pretender ; but sir John Norris appearing with a fleet superior to that which was to convey the French forces, the expedition was ^'yfl laid aside for that season. However, in the Nether- lands, the enemy had considerable success under marshaj 404 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. count Saxe, a natural son of Augustus, king of Poland, by the countess Koningsmark. In the next campaign, a veiy numerous army was as- sembled under marshal Saxe : and the French kingf and the dauphin arriving in the camp, the strong town -,^4^ of Tournay was invested. The duke of Cumber- land assumed the command of the allied army ; and though the confederates were greatly inferior in number to the enemy, they resolved to attempt the relief of Tour- nay. On the twenty-eighth of April, they came in sight of the French army, strongly encamped under cover of the village of Fontenoy. On the thirtieth of April, they at- tacked the French in their entrenchments ; and though the attempt was considered rash and imprudent, the allied army at first had the advantage ; but the destructive fire of the enemy's batteries, to which they were exposed both in front and flank at last obliged them to retreat. The allies lost about twelve thousand men, and the French nearly the same number ; but the consequences of this furious battle were all against the English and the allies. Tour- nay was compelled to surrender ; Ghent was surprised and taken ; Ostend, Dendermonde, Oudenarde, Newport, and Aeth, were successively reduced ; while the allied army lay entrenched behind the canal of Antwerp. The pretender, Charles, son of the chevalier de St. George, fired with ambition and the hope of ascending the throne of his ancestors, resolved to risk an invasion of Great Britain. Being furnished with a sum of money, and a supply of arms, he embarked on board of a small fri- gate, accompanied by the marquis of Tullybardine and a few Scottish and Irish adventurers, and was joined by the Elizabeth, a French ship of war, as his convoy. Their design was to sail round Ireland, and to land on the west- " ern coast of Scotland ; but being met by the Lion, an English ship of the line, an engagement ensued between the Lion and the Elizabeth, in which the latter was so disabled, that she was obliged to return to Brest ; and the young pretender was deprived of a great quantity of arms, and the assistance of about one hundred officers, who had embarked in that vessel for the expedition. Charles, how- ever, in the frigate, continued his course to the western isles of Scotland, and on the 27th of July, landed on the \ William III. Anne George L George II, George IIL GEORGE U. 405 coast of Lochaber, where he was soon joined by twelve liundred men, under their respective chiefs or leaders. The administration was now sufficiently alarmed. The kmg was at this time in Hanover. The lords of the re- gency despatched a messenger to his majesty with the news, and offered a reward of thirty thousand pounds for the apprehension of Charles. Loyal addresses flocked in from all parts. The principal noblemen tendered their services to the government ; and the former discontents seemed to be forgotten in the fears of the present moment. The prince advanced to Perth, where the chevalier de St. George was proclaimed king of Great Britain ; and, the rebel army being considerably augmented, Charles, on the 16th of September, took possession of the town of Edinburgh. Here he caused his father again to be pro- claimed, and fixed his residence in the royal palace of Holyrood-house. Sir John Cope, commander in chief of the forces in North Britain, informed of these transactions, assembled all the troops he could muster, and, on the 20th of Sep- tember, encamped at Preston Pans, in the vicinity of Ed- inburgh. Next morning he was attacked by the pre- tender, with about two thousand four hundred highlanders, who charged sword in hand ; and in less than ten minutes, the king's troops were totally routed, with the loss of about five hundred men. By this victory, Charles was supplied with a train of field artillery, and found himself possessed of all Scotland, except the fortresses. The pretender continued to reside in the palace of Ho- lyrood-house ; but after being joined by the lords Kilmar- nock, Elcho, Balmerino, and many other persons of dis- tinction, and receiving considerable supplies from France, he resolved to make an irruption into England. Accord- ingly, on the 6th of November, he entered Carlisle, whence he advanced to Penrith, and continued his route through Lancaster and Preston to Manchester, where he was join- ed by about two hundred English Jacobites, under the command of colonel Townley. Crossing the Mersey at Stockport, Charles passed through Macclesfield and Con- gleton to Derby ; at which last place a council was held, and it was determined to return into Scotland. The re- treat was effected with all the artillery and military stores, ID spite of two hostile armies, one under general Wade, 406 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. and the other under sir John Ligonier, stationed to in- tercept the rebels; but the most remarkable circumstance in this expedition was the great moderation and forbear- ance which the pretender's army exercised, in a country abounding with plunder. No violence or outrage was committed, notwithstanding the extremities to which they must have been reduced. The duke of Cumberland, being now invested with the chief command, set out for the north, and overtook the rear of the rebels at the village of Clifton, in the vicinity of Penrith, where a skirmish took place. Carlisle, which the pretender garrisoned, submitted to the duke in a few days. Charles, however, after levying heavy contribu- tions on Glasgow, which had displayed its attachment to the government, pi-oceeded to invest the castle of Stirling. General Hawley, commander of the king's forces in that quarter, marched to Falkirk, with the intention of bring- ing the rebels to an action. The latter, however, -J 1^^ began the attack on the seventeenth of January ; and their first volley threw the rayal forces into dis- order. The rebels following up their blow, the royal ar- my abandoned Falkirk, and retired in confusion to Edin- burgh, leaving part of the tents and artillery in the hands of the enemy. The duke of Cumberland having put himself at the head of the troops in Edinburgh, advanced to Aberdeen, the rebels fleeing all the way before him ; and after crossing the deep and rapid river Spey without opposition, he was at length informed, that the en-emy were encamped on the plains of Culloden, about nine miles from the royal army. On the 16th of April, the duke of Cumberland left Nairn early in the morning, and, after a march of nine miles, " perceived the enemy drawn up in order of battle, to the number of four thousand men. The royal army, which was much more numerous, was immediately formed into three lines. The action commenced about one o'clock in the after- noon. The artillery of the rebels was badly served, and did little execution ; but that of the king's troops made a dreadful havoc among the enemy. Impatient of this fire, about five hundred of the clans charged the duke's left wing with their usual impetuosity ; and one regiment was thrown into disorder by the attack of this body ; but two GEORGE II. 407 battalions advancing from the second line, supported the first, and galled the enemy by a close and terrible dis- charge. At the same time, the dragoons under Hawley, and the Argyleshire militia, pulling down a park wall, which guarded the flank of the rebels, fell upon them, and made a horrible slaughter. In less than half an hour, they were totally routed, and the field covered with the slain. Thus, in one short hour, all the hopes and ambition of the pretender sunk together, and instead of thrones and sceptres, he saw himself a miserable outcast. To the eternal disgrace of the conquerors, they spread terror vi^herever they came ; the whole surrounding country was one sad scene of slaughter, desolation, and plunder; and, in a few days, there was neither man nor house to be seen within the circuit of fifty miles ! The unfortunate Charles was now chased by armed troops from hill to dale, from rock to cavern, and from mountain to mountain. At length, after many escapes and distresses, he found means to embark on board a small vessel, which conveyed him in safety to Morlaix, iij Bretagne. Punishment now awaited those who had escaped death in the field of battle. Seventeen rebel officers were exe- cuted at Kennington common, near London. Lords Kil- marnock, Balmerino, and Lovat, suffered decapitation bn Tower-hill, as did also Mr. Ratclifie, the titular earl of Derwentwater, on his former sentence in 1716. The French had fitted out two squadrons at Brest, one to make a descent on the British colonies in America, the other to assist the operations of their arms in the East In- dies. These squadrons, however, were intercepted and attacked by admirals Anson and Warren, and nine ships were taken, on board of which was found a great quantity of bullion, which was landed at S pithead, and conveyed in twenty wagons through the streets of London to the bank. Soon after, admiral Hawke defeated a French fleet, and took seven ships of the line and -. L.Z several frigates ; and, in the course of this year, the British cruisers were very successful in capturing the vessels of the enemy. At the close of the session of parliament, the king in- formed both houses that the preliminaries for a general peace had been actually signed at Aix-la- -tj^A Chapelle, by the ministers of Great Britain, France, 408 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. nnd the United Provinces, on the basis of a general resti- tution of conquests. By the treaty of Aix-ia-Chapelle, in which the earl of Sandwich and sir Thomas Robinson were the British ple- nipotentiaries, it was stipulated, that the duchies of Parma, Placentia, and Guastalla, should be ceded to Don Philip, heir-apparent to the Spanish throne, and his heirs ; but, in case of his succeeding to the crown of Spain, that then these dominions should revert to the house of Austria : that the fortifications of Dunkirk to the sea should be de- molished ; that the king of Prussia should be secured in his possession of Silesia, which he had conquered ; and that the queen of Hungary should be guarantied in her hereditary dominions. No mention was made of the right of the English to sail in the American seas without being subject to a search, though this claim was the original cause of the difference between Great Britain and Spain. In short, it would be difficult to point out one advantage which this country gained by a war that had cost so many millions of money. As several nations on the continent had reformed their calendar according to the computation of Pope Gregory the Thirteenth, and much confusion in mercantile transactions had arisen, the parliament decreed, that the new year should begin on the first day of January, and that ■I'^rk eleven intermediate nominal days, between the second and fourteenth of September, should this year be omitted, so that the day succeeding the second shouild be denominated and accounted the fourteenth. As soon as the French had recovered a little from the effects of the late war, they began to erect forts on the back of the British settlements in North America, and they also attempted to seize Nova-Scotia. The English government receiving only evasive answers from the court of France, on the subject of the encroachments in Ame- rica, ordered the governors of that countiy to expel the French by force from their settlements on the river Ohio. In consequence, colonel Washington, who afterwards made himself so famous in the cause of American inde- pendence, was despatched from Virginia with four hundred men, and occupying a post on the banks of the Ohio, was attacked by the French, who compelled him to surrender the fort. It was now evident that war was inevitable GEOtlGfi II. 409 France continued to send reinforcements of men, and sup- plies of ammii-nition to Quebec, for the purpose of prose- cuting her ambitious projects ; and the ministry of Great Britain exhorted the governors of the i»i( vinces in North America to repei the incursions of the en^iuf. Admiral Boscawen being sent with a squadron of ships to protect the province of Nova-Scotia, captured two French vessels, the Alcide and the I^ys. About the same time, general Braddock, who h^id been sent to Virginia, took upon him the command of the forces destined to act against the French on the Ohio; and, on the i^re ninth of July, while advancing without proper caution, he was suddenly attacked by a general fire, both in front and flank, from an invisible enemy concealed be- hind the trees and bushes. The van-guard immediately fell back, and horror and confusion seized the ranks. The general himself was killed by a musket-shot ; and the few remaining soldiers instantly fled and left their baggage and ammunition in the hands of the enemy. Sir William Johnson, who had been appointed to the command of an expedition against Crown Point, being attacked by the French and Indians near Oswego, on the isouth-east side of the lake Ontario, defeated the enemy with great loss, but was unable to proceed on the ulterior object of his orders. tn this year happened a terrible catastrophe, which uni- ted all parties in one common sentiment of humaaity. On the first of November, an earthquake destroyed the greatest part of the city of Lisbon, with an immense num- ber of its inhabitants, while the survivors, destitute of the necessaries of life, were exposed to misery and famine. On this occasion, the parliament of Great Britain gene- rously voted one hundred thousand pounds for the distress- ed Portuguese. The next year, a treaty between his Britannic majesty and the king of Prussia was signed, by which they mutu- ally engaged not to suffer any foreign troops to enter Germany. On the other hand, the queen of ^'^' Hungary, though she owed every thing to Great Britain, concluded a treaty of mutual guarantee a.*nd sup- port with France; and she refused to his Britannic majesty the auxiliaries that she had agreed to furnish, on account of her dangerous neighbour, the kmg of Prussia. 35 410 HISTORY OP ENGtAND Mr. Pitt, and Mr. Legge, the most popular members of administration, disapproving of the political measures which had been adopted, as ruinous and absurd, were dis- missed from office ; and the seals were soon after trans- ferred from sir Thomas Robinson to Mr. Fox, whose abili- ties were universally acknowledged. The French equipped a formidable squadron of ships at Brest, and assembling a number of land forces and trans- ports, threatened England with an invasion. To meet the attack, several thousand of foreign mercenaries were call- ed upon to assist the country, on the presumption that the menaces of France would be carried into effect ; but, un- der the pretence of an invading armament, the French pre- pared an expedition, which too well succeeded. A formidable fleet sailed from Toulon with forces to in- vade Minorca ; and when admiral Byng, who had been sent out too late, arrival at Gibraltar, he found that the enemy had landed, and were besieging Fort St. Philip, which was defended by general Blakeney. The admiral being reinforced by a detachment from the garrison at Gibraltar, proceeded to Minorca, and perceived the Bri- tish colours still flying at the castle of St. Philip. How- ever, before a landing could be efl^ected, the French fleet, under La Galissoniere, appeared ; but though an engage- ment ensued, both commanders seemed averse to the con- tinuance of the battle ; and the French admiral, taking advantage of Byng's hesitation, sailed away. In a council of war, which was held immediately after this indecisive engagement, it was unanimously agreed, that it was impracticable to relieve the castle of St. Philip, and that it would be advisable to return to Gibraltar, which might requM-e immediate protection. General Blakeney receiving no assistance, at length capitulated on honoura- ble terms. The ministry, irritated against admiral Byng, who had complained that the English fleet had been too long de- layed., and that the ships under his command were unfit for service, took no steps to lessen the odium which popu- lar prejudice attached to him ; on the contrary, they were pleased to find the blame transferred from themselves, and that the admiral's imputed misconduct exnnerated them from censure. The unfortunate admiral was brought to trial, and the GEORGE ir. 411 coiil*t determined, that during the engagement off Minorca, he did not use his utmost endeavours to i^^y take, seize, and destroy, the ships of the French king, nor exert his utmost power for the rehef of the castle of St. Philip ; and, that the punishment attached to this sentence was death ; but, as they believed that his miscon- duct arose neither from cowardice nor disaffection, they earnestly recommended him to mercy. All the friends and relations of the unhappy man exert- ed their influence to obtain a remission of his sentence, which popular clamour alone had extorted from his judges ; but, the sovereign was told, that the death of Byng was necessary to appease the fury of the people ; and, in spite of every application, a warrant was signed for his execu- tion. Thus abandoned to his fate, the unfortunate admi- ral was not wanting to himself on this trying occasion. Conscious of the uprightness of his intentions, he ad- vanced to the quarter-deck with a firm and deliberate step, and throwing down his hat, kneeled on a cushion, tied one handkerchief over his eyes, and dropped another as a signal to his executioners, when five balls passed through his body, and he fell dead without a struggle. Notwithstanding this sacrifice, the clamours against the administration continued to increase ; and the ministry found it necessary to admit into a participation of office Mr. Pitt and Mr. Legge, who were alike distinguished for their spirit and integrity ; but adverse as these two patriots were to his majesty's scheme of continental politics, they could not agree with their colleagues, and were dismissed from their situations. Addresses, however, poured in from all parts, in favour of the discarded minister ; and the king thought proper to reinstate Mr. Pitt in his former situation of secretary of state, and Mr. Legge in the office of chan- cellor of the exchequer. Public affairs were adverse at the commencement of this administration. An unsuccessful attempt was made against Rochefort ; but what was infinitely more disastrous, the duke of Cumberland, unable to contend with the great mihtary talents of marshal d'Etrees, was obliged to capi- tulate at Closter Seven, by which Hanover was left in the hands of the French, and an army of thirty-eight thousand Hanoverians were disarmed and disbanded. This inglo rjous convention seems to have been the crisis of the war. 413 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. which, under the guidance of other ministers, produced the most splendid events. In America, after the return of lord Loudon to England, the chief command devolved on major general Abercrom- bie. On the 27th of July, Louisburgh and Cape Breton surrendered to the British under major-general Am- ■tUez^ herst ; and Fort du Quesne, which the French had evacuated, was garrisoned under the name of Pitts- burgh, in compliment to the minister. The English also concluded a treaty with the Indian nations inhabiting the country between the Apalachian mountains and the lakes ; and such was the spirit of enterprise which now animated the cabinet, that the conquest of Canada was projected as the business of a single campaign. To accomplish this important object, major-general Wolfe, who had already distinguished himself by his mili- tary talents, was directed to undertake the siege of Que- bec, while general Amherst, after reducing Ticonderoga and Crown Point, was to cross the lake Champlain, and join Wolfe under the walls of the capital of Canada. The British forces under general Wolfe arrived in the river of St. Lawrence, and encamped near the falls of the Montmorenci. M. de Montcalm, the French commander, though his troops were superior in number to the invaders, had taken every precaution of defence, which the nature of the country afforded. The city of Quebec was tolera- bly fortified ; and Montcalm, having reinforced the troops of the colony, with this army occupied an advantageous situation from the river St. Charles to the falls of the Montmorenci. On the last day of July, the British general made dis- position for an assault, under cover of the fire from the ships in the river; but the English grenadiers, impetu ously attacking the enemy's entrenchments in disorder, were repulsed with great loss, and Wolfe was obliged to retreat. This mortifying check preyed on the spirits of the gal- lant Wolfe, who could not brook the most distant prospect of censure or disgrace, and who declared that he would rather die than fail of ultimate success. At length, a new plan of operations was concerted for landing the troops in the night within a league of Cape Diamond, in hopes of ascending the heights of Abraham, which rise abruptly GEORGE It. 413 with a steep ascent from the banks of the river, that they might gain possession of the grounds on the back of the city, where it was but shghtly fortified. This plan was put in execution ; and the troops were disembarked during the night with secrecy and silence ; but the precipice still remained to be ascended. With infinite labour and difficulty, the troops reached the sum- mit of the heights of Abraham, and the general drew them up in order of battle as they arrived. When M. de Montcalm understood that the English had gained these heights, he found himself under the necessity of risking an engagement, in order to save the town, and accordingly advanced his men with great intrepidity. A furious con- test ensued, and general Wolfe, who stood in the front of the line, early received a shot in the wrist, to which he paid little regard; but, advancing at the head of the gre- nadiers, another ball pierced his breast, and compelled him to quit the scene of action. As he reclined on the arm of an officer, he was roused by the exclamation, " they run ! they run !" " Who run '?" said the brave Wolfe, with great eagerness. " The French," replied the officer. " Then," said he, "I die contented;" and almost immediately ex- pired in the arms of victory. The French general, M. de Montcalm, was also mor- tally wounded in the battle, and died soon after ; but the advantage remained wholly on the side of ihe English. Quebec vras obliged to surrender, and at length the con- quest of all Canada was completed, by the capture of Montreal under general Amherst. Success indeed attended the British arms in every quar- ter of the globe. Fort Louis and the isle of Goree, in Africa, submitted to the British ; as did also Guadaloupe, in the West Indies. Cherbourg w^as taken by commodore Howe, and Havre de Grace bombarded by admiral Rodney. In the Mediterranean, M. de la Clue was defeated by admiral Boscawen, who took four of his ships ; and ano- ther fleet under M. de Conflans was attacked off Quibe- ron bay by sir Edward Hawke, w^ien a furious battle en- sued, and night alone saved the French from total destruction. In this last engagement, two of the "t'^' enemy's best ships were sunk, one struck her co- lours, two were stranded and destroyed, and the S'^leil Royal, the flag-ship of the French admiral, was burnt bv 35* 414 HISTORr OP ENGLAND. her own crew, to prevent her from faUing into the hands of the Enghsh. In Germany the war was carried on with great vigour, and the glory of the British arms raised to the highest pitch ; and though the empress of Russia had acceded to the alliance concluded between the courts of Versailles and Vienna, the king of Prussia, aided by his Britannic majesty, continued to make head against the numerous armies of those powers. Such was the general posture of affairs, when George 11. died, on the twenty-fifth day of October, in the ^ Lf,^'i seventy-seventh year of his age, and the thirty- fourth year of his reign. He was at his palace of Ken- sington : and having risen at his usual hour, he observed to his attendants, that as the w^eather was fine, he would walk out. In a few minutes after, being left alone, he was heard to fall ; and, being lifted on the bed, he desired, in a faint voice, that the princess Amelia might be called ; biit before she could arrive, he expired. George the Second was in his person rather below the middle size. In his disposition he is said to have been prone to anger, yet soon appeased ; in other respects, he was mild and humane. He was personally brave, and fond of war as a soldier. Though his foreign politics can- not be commended, his internal government deserves un- qualified praise. In this reign, the hopes of the Stuart party and family being baffled, and the legitimacy of the Guelphs generally recognised, the constitutional government, as adjusted at the Revolution, began to display its excellencies and faults, and to acquire its full force. Parliaments were regularly convened, for the despatch of ail business connected with the improvement of the laws, and the regulation of the revenue ; and the preroga- tives of the sovereign, and the rights of the legislature, were duly recognised and balanced. The king chose his ministers, and these were amenable to parliament ; while the latter was kept in good humour by the influence and patronage of the ministers. The of- fice of prime-minister began now to distinguish our coun- cfls. The first who merited the name was sir Robert Walpole, a favourite confidential minister of George the First and Second ; and the nation under him and his sue- OEORQE 11. 4] 5 cessors, presented the spectacle of a sovereign contented with the splendour of his crown, and with the maiiifesta- tion of his power, under the advice and responsibility of his ministers ; of a parliament whose majorities were go- verned by the influence of the minister, and the modera- tion and plausibility of his measures ; and of a people obedient to the laws, the operation of which they had the power of controlling by juries formed from their own body. Such a state of society continued through an entire ge- neration, begat confidence at home and respect abroad. The public securities rose in value, commerce increased, domestic improvements were made, and the capabilities of the nation in arts, arms, and industry, began to develope themselves, and prepare the way for the more decisive events of the succeeding reign. CONTINUATION, FROM THE ACCESSION OF GEORGE III. TO THE COROITikTIOST OF G-SOXIGS ZV. CHAP. XXIH. The reign of George III On the decease of George 11., the eldest son of Frede- ric, prince of Wales, succeeded his grandfather, under the most favourable auspices ; as the third , 1^.^ of his name and family. This young and native sovereign, whose character and affability of deportment rendered him the object of esteem, was greeted by the enthusiasm of the people. *' Born and educated in this country," said his majesty, in his first speech to parliament, " I glory in the name of Briton." The parliament^ with the general approbation, voted the clear yearly sum of £800,000 for the maintenance of his majesty's household, and the support of the royal dig- nity, in lieu of the civil-list revenues, which hud been for- merly appropriated for the sovereigns of this country. This was followed by a wise and liberal regulation, by which the judges were rendered independent of the crown, and which, as it passed on the recommendation of the king, justly gained his majesty universal applause. The war, however, was prosecuted with unabated vigour. The island of Belleisle surrendered to commodore Keppel and general Hodgson. In the East-Indies, the French were divested of all their possessions of importance ; and Pondicherry, their capital settlement, was reduced by co- lonel Coote and admiral Stevens. In the West Indies, Martinico, and some other islands, were added to the list of British conquests. During these transactions, Mr. Pitt, with that sagacity and intuitive foresight which characterize an able states- man, anticipating the hostile designs of Spain, proposed an immedif *e declaration of war against that kingdom ; GEORGE III. 417 but this measure being opposed by his colleagues in office, and iiiiding that the earl of Bute, who had heeu governor to his majesty, had acquired an ascendancy in the royal favour, he disdained to act a subordinate part, resigned the seals, and retired with a pension and a peerage for his lady. Lord Bute, who had been previously appointed one of the principal secretaries of state, was now supposed to in- fluence the decisions of government ; but, before the end of the year, the ministry found it necessary to adopt the measure recommended by Mr. Pitt, and to declare war against Spain. Havanna, Manilla, and all the Philippine islands, became, in consequence, the reward of British va- lour. Amidst these successes, however, the restoration of peace was equally desired by the victors and the vanquished ; and after some time had been spent in negotiation, a defi- nitive treaty was signed at Paris on the 10th of ,lpo February, and peace solemnly proclaimed in Lon- don, on the 22d of the following month. By this treaty, Great Britain obtained the extensive province of Canada, East Florida, West Florida, the Grenadas in th^^ West Indies, and some inferior acquisitions ; but restored all the other conquests made during the war. These terms were considered in England as degrading to the nation ; and clamours were raised against the administration of lord Bute, who had never been a favourite with the people. About this time too, the daring spirit of John Wilkes, Esq., Avho sat in parliament for Aylesbury, contributed to hasten the downfall of the Premier. This man published a paper called " The North Briton," in which he attacked the minister with great asperity, and indulged in the gross- est scurrility against the whole Scottish nation. Churchill, the poet, employed his satirical powers in the same cause ; and the ferment excited by these two able, but profligate characters, was so great, that the earl of Bute thought proper to resign his office of first lord of the treasury, in which he was succeeded by Mr. George Grenville. One of the first acts of the new minister was the prose- cution of Mr. Wilkes, who, in the North Briton, No. 45, had asserted, that his majesty's speech, which he aflibcted to consider as the minister's, contained a falsehood. In consequence of this violation of all decorum, Mr. Wilke? 418 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. was apprehended by virtue of a general warrant, his pa- pers were seized, and he was committed to the tower. In the court of common pleas, however, Mr. Wilkes was ac- quitted of the charge exhibited against him ; and lord chief justice Pratt declared, that general warrants were il- legal. Mr. Grenville possessed integrity and abilities, but he wanted a sound discriminating judgment. In order to raise a revenue from the American colonies, he projected a stamp-act, which, being resisted by the Americans, was afterwards repealed ; but the attempt and its failure laid the foundation for that fatal contest, which at length ter- minated in the independence of the American colonies. The name of the princess of Wales having been omitted in the bill for appointing a regency, in con- , 1^ * sequence of his majesty's illness, the king, after re- covering from his indisposition, determined to change his ministers ; and the marquis of Rockingham was placed at the head of a new administration. The highly respecta- ble character of the marquis, however, could not secure the new ministers a continuance in office. Possessing a great share of moderation in principles, their opponents effectu- ally made head against them ; and the duke of Grafton became first lord of the treasury ; while Mr. Pitt, who was now raised to the dignity of earl of Chatham, accepted the office of privy seal. Mr. Charles Townshend, the chancellor of the exchequer, who possessed eminent talents for busi- -I'-yr^A ness, but too much versatility of disposition, unhap- pily revived the design of taxing America, though taxation and representation cannot constitutionally be separated ; and while the earl of Chatham was confined by extreme illness, he brought in a bill for imposing a duty on tea, and some otherarticles imported into the colonies. Against this design, the Americans formed a general combination for not receiving any of the commodities thus taxed, from the mother country ; and, the acts were again repealed, except as far as related to the duties on tea. This con- cession, however, gave little satisfaction to the Americans, who considered the late acts as unconstitutional, and pro- posed a general union of the colonies for defending their natural rights. Meanwhile Mr. Townshend died, and his place of GEORGE 111. 419 chancellor of the exchequer was filled by lord North. Some other changes also took place ; and the earl of Chat* ham, who had long been treated with disregard, either on account of his infirmities, or his uncomplying disposition, resigned his office of privy-seal, and from this time lived unconnected with the aftairs of government, though he frequently took an active part in the interesting debates which agitated this period. The discontents which had been produced in ,l,Kj-o America by the insidious, not to say unjust designs of the ministry, were about to break out into a flame, that spread into a general conflagration. Laws hav- ing been passed for quartering troops in the colonies, and for rendering the governors of the different provinces solely dependant on the crown, the Americans, in order to show their aversion to the measures of the British government, and their determination to resist, destroyed a large quanti- ty of tea at Boston, and obliged ships laden with the same commodity to return from other places without landing their cargoes. In consequence of these proceedings, acts were passed for shutting up the port of Boston, and for altering the constitution of Massachusetts bay and Quebec. This violent stretch of power excited the utmost indig- .lation in America ; and the colonies entered into a solemn league and covenant to suspend all commercial intercourse with Great Britain, till the obnoxious acts were repealed. Meanwhile, measures were adopted for holding a general congress of the American colonies; and a bold and spirit- ed remonstrance, soliciting a redress of grievances, was addressed to the king. All remonstrances and petitions^ however, being equally disregarded, and eveiy avenue to accommodation, except by implicit submission, shut up, the Americans determined to have recourse to arms, as the only means left for defending their unalienable rights. On the 19th of April, general Gage, commander in A. D. ^^^®^' having been informed that the Americans 1775 ^^^ collected military stores at Concord, sent a de- tachment to seize them. The detachment was at- tacked at Lexington, and many were killed on both sides; but the loss on the side of the British far exceeded that of their opponents. The torch of civil war being thus Hghted up, the colo- nists flew to arms as if by concert, and assumed the title 4S0 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. of " the United States of America," whose affairs were to be managed by a congress. This body of representatives instantly passed resolutions for raising an army, for issuing a paper currency for its payment, and for prahibiting all importations to those places which still remained faithful in their allegiance to the crown of Great Britain. A few weeks after this engagement, the British army in America was strengthened by a large reinforcement, which arrived from England, under the command of gener.'ds Howe, Burgoyne, and Clinton. Martial law Avas now proclaimed ; but the congress was not easily intimidated ; and voting that the compact between the cr»wn and the inhabitants of Massachusetts Bay, was dissolved, they re- commended that province to resume its chartered rights. As further hostilities were now mutually expected, the Americans, that they might secure Charlestown, sent a detachment of men at night to erect some considerable Works on Bunker's Hill. When these operations were discovered in the morning, a heavy fire commenced from the ships ; and the Americans were with difficulty driven from their entrenchments by generals Howe and Pigot. In this action, which was very severe, the loss of the Bri- tish in killed and wounded amounted nearly to half ^'jry^ their number, and included many officers. After this affair, the colonists threw up works on another hill opposite ; and the British troops were closely invested in the peninsula. The general congress published a very animated decla- ration, in which their reasons for taking up arms were as- signed, and the objects for which they contended were distinctly pointed out. They also appointed George Washington general and commander in chief of the Ame- rican forces. This gentleman had acquired some experi- ence in the last war, when he commanded different bodies of provincials ; and his conduct and military skill fully justified the partiality of his countrymen. Another peti- tion to the king was also voted by congress, in which they earnestly beseeched his majesty to adopt some method of putting a stop to the unhappy contest between Great Bri- tain and the colonies ; but this petition, though presented by Mr. Penn, late governor, and one of the proprietors of Pennsylvania, did not obtain an answer. In the mean time, the Americans, prepared for ev*ry GEORGE lit. 421 events and animated with the enthusiasm of a people con- tending for liberty, no longer confined them'selves to de- fensive operations. Ticonderoga and Crown Point had already been taken by a party of Americans ; and it was determined to fit out an expedition against Canada, un- der generals Montgomery and Arnold ; but in an attempt against Quebec, Montgomery fell, and Arnold, after being dangerously wounded, was compelled to make a precipi- tate retreat. The state of the royal army at Boston had now become deplorable. By a masterly stroke, Washington compel- led the British to abandon the town ; and all the English troops, with such loyalists as chose to accompany them, were precipitately embarked and conveyed ^X^yA to Halifax. Next day, general Washington enter- ed Boston in triumph. Soon after, congress, in a solemn declaration, withdrew all allegiance from the king of Great Britain, and assumed for the colonies the style and character of " Free and In- dependent States." They also published articles of con- federation and perpetual union between the provinces ; while in proportion as the prospect of bringing them to submission was lessened, the arrogance and infatuation of the British ministry, at the head of whom was lord North, seemed to increase. An unsuccessful attempt was made upon Charlestown, in which the English suffered severely ; but about the same time, general Howe obtained possession of New-York; and general Clinton and sir Peter Parker took Rhode Island. General Howe, and his brother, admiral lord Howe, were regarded with partiality by the Americans ; and some overtures of reconciliation were made by the two brothers ; but the manifesto which they published offered only pardon to the colonists, and produced no beneficial purpose. The ill success of the Americans, however, was pro- ductive of those internal effects which operate as strongly as external force ; and at this period, if terms of conces- sion had been offered by Great Britain, the constitutional supremacy of the mother country might probably have been acknowledged ; but the time of conciliation was ne- glected, and the infatuation of ministers prevailed. In the next campaign, the Americans were defeated by 36 422 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. general Howe in the battle of Brandy wine ; and the Eng lish entered Philadelphia in triumph. On the othei ■t'fyiyj hand, general Burgoyne, who had set out from Quebec with an army often thousand men, in order to form a line of communication between New- York and Canada, after driving the Americans before him for some time, was at last surrounded at Saratoga by general Gates, and obliged to lay down his arms. The success of the Americans now determined the court of France to declare in favour of the new republic ; ,1^Q and so gloomy was the prospect of Great Britain, that ministers sent commissioners to America to treat of peace ; but this attempt at conciliation was of no essential service. Hostilities commenced with France, by a naval engage- ment between admiral Kepple and count d'Orvilliers ; and victory would have been decisive in favour of the British, if sir Hugh Palliser had obeyed the signals of the admi- ral. Both officers were tried before a court-martial. Pal- liser, though found guilty, was only slightly censured ; while admiral Kepple was honourably acquitted. Meanwhile, Pondicherry in the East, and the island of St. Lucia in the West Indies, were captured by the Eng- lish ; but Dominica, St. Vincent, and Grenada, were taken by the French, who assisted the Americans with a fleet commanded by the count d'Estaing. In attempt- |l«,q ing the relief of Grenada, an indecisive -engage- ment took place between admiral Byron with a fleet of twenty-one ships, and the count d'Estaing, who had twenty-five or twenty-six ships of the line, besides twelves frigates, under his command. After this action, the French admiral, in conjunction with the Americans, attempted the reduction of Savannah, but was frustrated by general Prevost. In Europe, the French made a de- scent with a considerable force on Jersey, but were re- Dulsed by the promptitude of major Pearson, the English commandant, who fell in the moment of victory, at the head of his small corps. Before the close of this session, his majesty announced „o parliament that Spain had joined the alliance against England ; and this new enemy having joined the French with thirty ships of the line, the combined fleets of those two neighbouring powers for some time rode triumphant GEORGE III. 423 in the British channel, and menaced the Enghsh coast with impunity. Spain also took New-Orleans on the Mississippi, and closely invested Gibraltar. Admiral sir George Rodney, being appointed to the chief naval command in the West Indies, obtained a complete victory over a Spanish fleet of eleven i^orj sail off Cape St. Vincent ; and after relieving Gib- raltar, he proceeded to execute his ulterior orders, and had three indecisive engagements with the French fleet in the West Indies. In June, the same year, happened one of the most dreadful riots in London which history records. It arose from the fanaticism of an association of protestant secta- ries, who fancied that religion was in danger, on account of some just and equitable indulgences which the legisla- ture had recently granted to the Roman catholics. A mob, collected by a procession of this association, pulled down or burnt several popish chapels, broke open many of the prisons, and liberated both felons and debtors. In a few days, however, the riots were quelled, and lord George Gordon, the president of the association, was committed to the tower. From the agitations of war and faction, we turn with pleasure to the progress made by science and the arts, under the munificent patronage of George the Third, Byron, who was commissioned in 1764 to explore the Atlantic and Pacific oceans, and circumnavigate the globe, corrected by his observations the errors of former charts, and discovered several islands in the South Pacific. A few years after, captain Wallis sailed on a similar expedi- tion, and, on the 19th of June, 1767, perpetuated his name by the discovery of Otaheite, (or King George's Island,) in the South Pacific, and of other islands in the same ocean. Carteret also traversed the Pacific, and circumnavigated the globe. Each of these navigators contributed an ac- cession of geographical knowledge. To captain James Cook, however, more than to any other individual since the time of Columbus, we are in- debted for extending the boundaries of geographical sci- ence. In his first voyage to the Pacific ocean, in 1770, he discovered the Society Islands, determined the insula- rity of New Zealand, and explored the eastern coast ot New-Holland. In his second voyage, in 1773, he disco 424 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. vered New Caledonia, the island of Georgia, and an un- known coast, which he named Sandwich Land. In 1776, another voyage of discovery being proposed by the govern- ment, the Resolution and Discovery were fitted out for that purpose, and captains Cook and Clerke were appoint- ed to this expedition. This last voyage was particularly distinguished by the extent and importance of its disco- veries. Besides several small islands in the South Pacific, Cook discovered the group of islands called the Sand- wich Islands, explored the western coast of America from the latitude of forty-three to seventy degrees north, and ascertained the proximity of the two great continents of Asia and America. In September, 1780, the Resolution and Discovery returned to England from this voyage round the world, but to the grief of every person who respected worth and talents, without captain Cook, who had been unfortunately killed by the natives of Owyhee, one of the Sandwich Islands which he had discovered. This year was also memorable for the armed neutrality- entered into by the northern powers for the purpose of re- sisting the English in exercising the right of searching- neutral vessels, on the principle that " free bottoms make free goods." It being discovered that the States General had concluded a treaty with the American government, England declared war against Holland. The Dutch island of St. Eustatius, and the settlements of Demarara, Berbice, and Issequibo, submitted to the British ; and a severe engagement took place between admiral sir Hyde Parker and the fleet of Holland ofi" the Dogger Bank, but without any decisive issue on either side. In America, alternate successes and reverses attended the arms of Britain ; but even victory was fatal to Eng- iand, while defeats were doubly injurious, and rendered the colonists certain of a prosperous issue. Indeed, the cause of Britain in this contest with her American colonies daily declined, and became more desperate. Earl Cora- waliis, who had distinguished himself on various occasions, was at length surrounded by General Washington, ^l,^' assisted by the marquis de la Fayette, and obliged to surrender the whole of his forces, amounting to seven thousand men, to the combined French and Ameri- can army, at York Town, in Virginia ; an event which GEORGE III. 425 terminated the hopes of the British government in Ameri- ca, and ended the war. About the same time, St. Eustatius was recovered from the English ; and the Spaniards made thems&lves masters of West Florida. The sieo-e of Gibraltar was also carried on with vigour ; but the place was very ably defended by the heroic governor, general Elliot. In the East Indies, Hyder Ally, the confederate of France, took Arcot by assault, and cut to pieces, or made prisoners of a detachment under colonel Baillie. Sir Eyre Coote, however, defeated Hyder in two subsequent en- gagements, relieved Vellore, and retrieved the fortune of the war in the Carnatic. After the surrender of earl Cornwallis to general Wash- ington, the influence of the British ministry was at an end ; and a change of measures appearing absolutely necessary, a complete revolution in the cabinet took place on the twenty-seventh of March, under the auspices i^qq of the marquis of Rockingham, who was appointed '^ first lord of the treasury. The earl of Shelburne and Mr. Fox were appointed secretaries of state. Peace was now ardently desired by all ranks of people in this countiy j and the new ministry consented that the independence of America should be allowed, and entered into measures for effectuating a general treaty of pacifica« tion. For this purpose, Mr. Grenville was sent to Paris, • with full powers to treat with all the belligerent nations, and orders were despatched to the commanders in chief in America, to acquaint them with the pacific views of the British cabinet, and with the offer of independence to the United States. After the capture of lord Cornwallis and his army, the English suffered a series of losses in America. The French took Nevis, St. Christophers, and Montserrat ; the Baha- ma islands surrendered to the Spaniards ; and Jamaica was threatened by the fleets of Spain and France, on board of which was an army of twenty thousand men. This for- midable armament, however, was prevented from uniting by the promptitude and bravery of admiral Rodney, who engaged and totally defeated the French under count de Grasse, before it could form a junction with the Spanish fleet. The French admiral, in the Ville de Paris of 12G guns, was taken, with two seventy- four sun ships, and one 36* 426 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. of sixty- four guns. Two other ships of the line were lost in the action ; and a few days after, sir Samuel Hood cap- tured two more French ships of the line and two frigates. This decisive and glorious victory, which was achieved on the 12th of April, put a stop to the intended project against Jamaica ; and admiral Rodney, in reward for his services, was gratified with a peerage and a pension. The valour of the British arms wa^ most remarkably displayed at Gibraltar, where the English, under that brave veteran general Elliot, acquired immortal honour, and converted one of the most formidable attacks that had ^ . ever been made in the history of sieges, to the de- ^A ' struction of the assailants, and the frustration of all ITj^b ^^^® hopes of the enemy. The enthusiasm and gal lantry of Elliot and his garrison were emulated by lord Howe and the fleet. To the admiration of all Eu- rope, that brave admiral, with thirty-four sail of the line, passed the straits in the face of a superior enemy, and threw succours into the fortress. This was the last transaction of importance during the continuance of the war in Europe ; and thus the military career of Britain, after her repeated misfortunes, termi- nated with great splendour. All the belligerent powers, were now inclined to listen to overtures of pacification. The happy prospect, however, of peace and prosperity v/as obscured for a time by the death of the marquis of Rockingham, from whose administration the nation had formed great expectations. He was succeeded by the earl of Shelburne, and Mr. Fox resigned his office of secretary of the northern department. The new ministers, however, continued the negotiation fcr peace ; and as the independence of America was vir- tually recognised, the war with the colonies had in fact terminated. At length, on the 30th of November, 1782, provisional articles, between England and America, were signed at Paris. By this treaty, the sovereignty and inde pendence of the United States were fully acknowledged So great, indeed, were the concessions of ministers on this occasion, that they neglected the interests of the loy- alists in America, whose estates had been confiscated, and who were thus thrown on the generosity of the British. In our treaties with the French, the Dutch, and the Spaniards, the same improvident facility was apparent GEORGE III. ^7 and these treaties, when submitted to parliament, extorted the severest animadversions. By this ca- 1700 lamitous war, Great Britain lost the best part of her transatlantic colonies, and, besides many thousands of valuable lives, expended or squandered nearly 150 millions of money. The address of thanks for the peace was carried in the house of lords by a majority of 72 to 59, but lost in the house of commons by a majority of 224 to 208. It was now discovered that Mr. Fox, in his animosity to the earl of Shelburne, had formed a coalition with his for- mer political antagonist, lord North. This unnatural and unprincipled coalition, which excited general indignation, was defended by Mr. Fox on the strange plea, that the question of American independence being now at rest, he had no desire to perpetuate his enmity to a statesman whom he had found honourable as an adversary, and of whose openness and sincerity as a friend he had no doubt. Their united opposition prevailed, and a change took ^lace in the ministry. The duke of Portland was placed Tit the head of the treasury, lord John Cavendish was made chancellor of the exchequer, and lord North and Mr. Fox were appointed joint secretaries of state. The coalition administration became the theme of universal and pas- sionate execration ; and when public confidence is once lost, it can never be completely regained. Mr. Pitt, the son of th-e immortal earl of Chatham, and who afterwards rivalled his father's glory, made a motion for a parliamentary reform, and proposed to add one hun- dred members to the counties, and abolish a proportiona- ble number of the obnoxious boroughs. This plan, though certainly the most judicious that has yet been proposed for the independence of parliamentary representation, was negatived by a large majority. Soon after the meeting of parliament in November, Mr. Fox introduced a bill for regulating the affairs of the East- India Company. This famous bill proposed to deprive the directors and proprietors of the entire administration, not only of their territorial, but also of their commercial afiairs, and to vest the management and direction of them in seven commissioners named in the bill, and irremovable by the crown, except in consequence of an address of either house of parliament. It passed through the Icwei 428 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. house by a great majority, but was lost in the upper, after very anim-ated debates, in which its unconstitutional prin ciples were fully exposed. The king, being informed of the nature and tendency of this bill, considered himself duped and deceived ; and the coalition ministiy, which had been deservedly unpopular, were suddenly dismissed. Mr. Pitt, then a very young man, was declared first lord of the treasuiy, and chancellor of the exchequer ; the marquis of Caermarthen, and Mr. Thomas Town shend, created lord Sydney, were nominated secretaries of state ; and lord Thurlow was appointed to the office of lord-chancellor. The intelligence of this change was received by the nation vt^ith transports of joy. The discarded ministers, however, still maintained their influence in the house of commons ; and the singular spectacle was exhibited of a minister retaining his situation in defiance of the votes of the commons, and of an oppo- sition restraining the power of the executive, by prohibiting the issuing of payments from the bank or the exchequer, for the public service. At length, after strong and repeated 1^ 7 contests between the two factions, during which ^(. the miniser found himself frequently in a minority, i^QA the parliament was dissolved by proclamation, and a new one convened. So complete was the rout of the coalition party, that of one hundred and sixty mem- bers who lost their seats at the general election, nearly the whole were the friends either of Mr. Fox or lord North. The arrangements of a plan for the future government of India, was the most important business to which the at- tention of the new parliament was first directed. The bill which Mr. Pitt introduced for that purpose, was carried through the house of commons by a great majority ; and in the upper house, though strongly opposed, it passed with a few dissenting votes. In the next session, Mr. Pitt brought forward his plan for a reform in the representation, varying in some \ly^K measure from his former project, but in every re- spect temperate and judicious. The result of this plan was to give one hundred members to the popular in- terest, and to extend the elective franchise to more than one hundred thousand persons, who, by the existing laws, were excluded from voting for members of parliament. After a debate of considerable length, in which Mr. Foa GKORGE III. 4^9 bestov/ed on the plan a just and liberal tribute of praise, the bill was rejected by a majority of 274 to 174. Mr. Pitt was equally unsuccessful in attempting to settle the com- merce of England and Ireland on a mutual and equitable footing. His propositions, which were amended in the house of lords, passed in England with difficulty ; but, in the Irish parliament, they were rejected with marked dis- approbation. Among the various measures agitated by parliament du ring the next session, was a plan for extinguishing the na tional debt. This celebrated plan was founded on a report framed by a select committee, who had i^o^j been appointed to examine the annual income and expenditure of the state. By this report it appeared, that the public income for the year 1785 exceeded the annual expenditure by £900,000. This surplus the minister pro- posed to increase to one million, and to appropriate the annual sum of one million to the liquidation of the national debt. This annual million Mr. Pitt proposed to be vested in the hands of certain commissioners, to be by them ap- plied regularly in the purchase of stock. In the progress of the bill, Mr. Fox suggested an amendment, which was gratefully received by the minister — that whenever a new loan should in future be made, the commissioners should be empowered to accept of the loan, or such proportion of it as should be equal to the cash then in their hands ; a«nd that the interest and douceur annexed to it should be applied to the purposes of the sinking-fund. The bill finally passed, with great and deserved approbation ; and this measure has been in general pursued under almost every change of circumstances, and amidst unexampled diffi- culties. During the following year, the republican party in Hol- land having obtained an accession of strength, and being secretly favoured by the couit of France, renoun- ced the authority of the Stadtholder, under the pre- ^I^qZ text that he sacrificed the interests of his country to predilection for the English. The active interference, how- ever, of the king of Prussia, in defence of the prince of Orange, to whom he was nearly related by marriage, re- stored the authority of the Stadtholder, while the dignified tone and vigorous preparations of the British minister inti- midated the French from assisting the republicans 430 HISTORY OF ENCfLANB. This year is also remarkable for the impeachment of Warren Hastings, Esq., late governor- general of Bengal. The trial of this gentleman continued for seven years, and terminated in his honourable acquittal. The disgraceful procrastination of his trial, and the acrimony with which it was conducted, led many to compassionate a man, who, held up as a great public delinquent, seemed destmed to lead a life of impeachment, and to have become the object of a relentless persecution. If there were errors in the conduct of Warren Hastings, they were more than com- pensated by his exertions and moral intentions ; and it may safely be affirmed, that in the administration of India, he in general deserved praise rather than censure, and that his character will be always venerated in this country, which was essentially benefitted by his services. The next session was memorable for the first discussion in parliament on the subject of the inhuman traffic ^Iqq in slaves. Mr. Wilberforce, who had announced his intention of moving for the abolition of that abominable trade, was unavoidably absent from indisposi- tion ; but, at the suggestion of sir William Dolben, some regulations were enacted for restraining the cruelties prac- tised on board the slave-ships. The same year being the centenary of the glorious revo- lution of 1688, the 5th of November, the day of king Wil- liam's landing, was celebrated by rejoicings in various parts of the kingdom. Soon after the recess of parliament, the king, who had been rather indisposed, was advised to try the mineral wa- ters of Cheltenham, where he appeared to recover his health ; but on his return to London, late in the summer, ,_ his illness returned with new and alarming symptoms; and it could no longer be concealed, but that the malady with wliich he was afflicted was a mental derangement, that : rendered him wholly incapable of public business. - *'^^ It now became necessary to appoint a regent to exercise the royal functions till the health of his majesty should be restored ; and Mr. Fox claimed this high office in the name, and on the behalf of the heir-apparent, as appei» taining to his royal highness of right. On the other hand, Mr. Pitt and his adherents, who formed by far the most numerous body, both in and out of parliament, maintained, tliat the heir to the crown was merely a subject ; that it GEORGE III. 431 ivas little short of treason against the constitution to urge his right to the regency, and that it belonged entirely to ilie two remaining branches of the legislature to supply the temporary deficiency. Long and violent debates ensued in parliament, on the restraints under which the minister thought it necessary to subject the prince of Wales, as regent, in the exercise of his authority. At last, the regency bill was about to pass,* when to the unspeakable joy of the nation, as well as of every member of his august family^ his majesty, on the t^nth of March, sent a message to parlia- i^qq ment. to acquaint them with his recovery, and his ability to attend to the public business of the kingdom. These tidings diffused an universal and heartfelt satisfac* tion. Every town, every village, exhibited its testimonies of loyalty and affection to the best of sovereigns at the in- stant ; and these renewed on the twenty-third of April, when his majesty, in solemn procession, went to St. Paul's cathedral, to return thanks to Heaven for his recovery. In the month of July in this year, one of the most un- expected and extraordinary revolutions took place in France that the annals of history record. The deranged . ., state of the finances of France, and the mild disposition /<;' and moderate principles of Louis XVI., the reigning sove- », ? reign, inducing him to assemble the notables of his king- dom, an opportunity was taken to subvert the monarchy, and to reduce the king to a state of degradation, which prevented him not only from doing wrong, but from ren- dering any essential service to the state. The bastile, which had long been used for the most despotic purposes, was suddenly levelled to the ground, and the prisoners *^ liberated ; while a national assembly, chosen by the peo- ple, wrested from the king the privilege of making war or ,^; peace, and abolished all titles of peerage and distinction ^ ' of orders. The frame of government was entirely chan- ged, and a limited hereditary monarchy was established, in which the legislative authority was rendered superior to the executive, the latter being allowed only a suspensive vote. The person of the king was (iftclared inviolable, and the throne indivisible. * The parliament of Ireland invited the prince of Wales to ac cept the regency without any limitation, while the B.itish legisla ture imposed many nestrictions. 4^ HISTORY OP ENGLAND. Some British adventurers having estahlished a settle- ment at Nootka or King's Sounds* on the north-wost coast of America, for the purpose of trading with the native-s for furs, the Spaniards, vrho claimed the exchisive sove- , L^A reignty of this coast, from Cape Horn to the sixti- eth degree of north latitude, seized on the fort, and captured such Enghsh vessels as were found trading in those parts. This conduct produced remonstrances to the court of Spain ; but the Spaniards being unwilling to make any atonement for the act of violence of which they had been guilty, both nations prepared for war. The matter, however, was at last settled by a convention, by which Spain conceded every point in dispute, though the Spanish flag at the fort and settlement of Nootka was never struck. By an act passed in the next session of parliament, Ca- nada was divided into two distinct governments, to each of which a legislative council and assembly were appointed, after the model of the British constitution. The councils were nominated by the sovereign, and the houses of assem- bly were chosen by the people. The habeas corpus act became a fundamental law of the constitution of Canada; and the British parliament were restrained from imposing any other taxes than such as were necessary for the regu- lation of trade and commerce. This wise and salutary measure has been productive of the best effects, and will probably secure the dependence of that province on Great Britain, by the strong tie of gratitude and interest. In the course of this year, England was nearly involved in hostilities with Russia. That power, leagued with Austria, had for some time carried on a war against the Turks. The Germans, however, were very unsuccessful in this unjust warfare ; but the Russians defeated the Turks in every battle, and took from them several strong places, particularly Oczakow and Ismael. At the latter, the Turks made a gallant resistance ; but the savage Su- warroff, who commanded the Russians, caused about thirty thousani^ of the inhabitants to be put to death, and thus fixed an indelible stain on his character. These successe^and the cruelties which accompanied them, alarmed ther British court, and a large fleet was fit- ♦ First discovered by captain Cook, in his last voyage round tho world. grorue: nib 433 ted out, in order to prevent Russia from obtaining the na- vigation of the Black Sea ; but the majorities which the minister was able to command in parliament on this occa* sion, being very inconsiderable, and the popular voice be* ing decidedly against the policy of going to war with Rus- sia, the armament was laid aside, after an enormous ex- pense had been incurred, and the Porte concluded a peace with the czarina on her own terms. In justice, however, 10 administration, it should be observed, that the measures which they adopted on this occasion were founded in wis- dom and sound policy ; and that, if their designs had not been counteracted by the violence of faction in parliament, whose sentiments prevailed among the great mass of the people, it seems probable the partition of Poland, and other encroachments and revolutions which followed, might have been prevented. The events which had taken place in France had exci- ted much interest in this country, and provoked discussions which occasioned the supporters of the French revolution to be regarded as inimical to the British constitution, while the opponents of that measure were considered as the faithful guardians and defenders of our excellent estab- lishment in church and state. It was, indeed, natural that the dawn of liberty in a country long enslaved, should be hailed with joy by the generous sympathy of Britons, who had long enjoyed the blessings of civil and religious liberty ; but it was not to be expected, that the anarohy and violence which prevailed in Franc© would have been regarded with any other feelings than those of detestation and abhorrence, and that the friends of the British constitution would have evinced their approbation of principles, which they saw perverted, and apphed to the most dangerous purposes. On the anniversary of the 14th of July, the day on which the bastile had been demolished, the partisans of liberty in this country agreed to celebrate that event t^Qi by festive meetings in several of the principal towns and cities of the kingdom. This was certainly an act of indiscretion, as the French revolution had incurred great odium by the events which had lately taken place in France, and as the spirit of party prevailed in a most violent degree at this time m England. In Birmingham, where great animosity had long subsisted between the high-church 37 434 HISTORY OF ENGLAND* party and the dissenters, at the head of whom was the justly celebrated philosopher, Dr. Priestley, the meeting, was attended with the most lamentable consequences. The persons who there assembled to commemorate the French revolution, were insulted by a furious mob, who shouted " church and king,'* and who broke the windows of the hot^el in which the company were assembled. In- cited and inflamed by their leaders, the mob dispersed over vhe town and its vicinity, set on fire the meeting-houses, and the dwellings of the most eminent dissenters, and g ving a loose to every kind of intemperance, became equally formidable to both parties. The mansion of Dr* Priestley was consumed, with his valuable library and phi- losophical apparatus ; and thus a man, whose talents would have been an honour to any country, was treated by these Vandals as a foe to the human race, and ulti mately obliged to take shelter in America. No effectual effort was employed to check these infamous and disgrace- ful proceedings, till the arrival of some troops of dragoons from Nottingham, when, after four days of tumult and de- vastation, order and tranquility were restored. Many of the rioters were brought to trial, and three of them capi- tally punished. In the East Indies, earl Cornwallis, who had been ap- pointed governor-general of Bengal, carried on with equal conduct and good fortune the war against Tippoo Saib, in which this country bad been involved by the intrigues of the French. After overcoming all impediments, he form- ed the siege of Seringapatam, the capital of Mysore, and obliged Tippoo to conclude a peace on the terms offered to him, and to give his two sons as hostages for the per- formance of its conditions. When parliament met, Mr. Pitt, to the agreeable sur- prise of the nation, proved that the finances were in such a flourishing state, that government would be ena- t7Q9 ^^^^ ^^ lighten the burdens of the people, by taking off taxes to the amount of two hundred thousand pounds a year, and, at the same time, to appropriate dou- ble that sum for the reduction of the national debt. He also observed, that the general state of affairs in Europe promised a continuance of peace, and that he expected an immediate reduction of the naval and military establish- GEORGE III. 435 tnent. These brilliant prospects, however, were obscured before the conclusion of the year. The continental powers, jealous of the principles which had been developed in the French revolution, held a secret convention at Pilnitz, in Lusatia, where it was determined to prepare for war against France. The haughty demands of restitution urged by the emperor, left no other alterna- tive to the French people than to declare war against Aus- tria ; and Prussia joining against France, it was evident that Great Britain could not long be kept out of the vor- tex. The combined armies of Austria and Prussia enter- ed France under the duke of Brunswick, accompanied by the Prussian monarch in person ; and, under the sanction of the two courts, was issued a proclamation, which de- nounced the most dreadful vengeance against the French nation, and threatened to punish as rebels to their king, and destroyers of the public tranquility, all such as were found in arms against the troops of the allied powers. This savage and impolitic manifesto, which seemed pur- posely calculated to complete the ruin of the French king, filled up the measure of the popular fury. The palace of the Thuilleries was attacked by the Parisian populace ; and, being resolutely defended by the Swiss guards, . a most bloody conflict ensued, which terminated in ^^' the total defeat and destruction of the guards, and i-^qn the complete triumph of the Parisians. The king, with the queen, at the commencement of the engagement, had made a precipitate retreat to the hall of the national assembly, and that unfeeling body committed them close prisoners to the temple. Soon after, Louis XVI. was for- mally deposed, and the abolition of royalty in France de- creed by the national convention. Massacres, unparallel- ed in the annals of civilized nations, were perpetrated un- der the sacred name of liberty. The prisons were forced open ; and all those murdered, who had been con- <;v fined for imputed sentiments of royalty. In short, ^J^ ' the party which had usurped all power in France, were guilty of atrocities, which, to relate in simple terms, would turn humanity pale. On this occasion, the princess Lamballe was one of the many victims to their infernal vengeance ; and her fate was attended with such circum- "stances of horror as could scarcely enter into the imagina lion of man. 436 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. After the deposition of Louis, our ambassador was re- called from Paris ; and though Chauvelin, the French ambassador, still remained in London, he was not acknow- ledged in any official capacity. Not only were the Aus- trian and Prussian armies compelled to evacuate France, but the French general Dumourier overran the Low Coun- tries in a series of triumphs ; and, before the year had closed, the whole of the Austrian Netherlands, with the exception of Tjuxemburgh and Liege, had submitted to the arms of the republican invaders. In the exultation occa- sioned by these successes, the convention passed their famous decree, offering fraternity and assistance to all na- tions engaged in a struggle for liberty ; and, on the capture of Antwerp, they declared the navigation of the Scheldt free, which this country was bound by treaty to resist. These decrees were justly obnoxious to the British mi- nistry, as encouraging sedition and revolt in every mo- narchical government, and treating with contempt the rights of neutral nations. A royal proclamation appear- ed, in which it was declared, that evil disposed persons in this country were acting in concert with others in foreign parts, in order to subvert the laws and constitution ; and avowing his majesty^s design of forthwith embodying a part of the militia. Considerable alarm was spread through the sound part of the nation, of which description the ma- jority was immense ; and both public bodies and private individuals testified their zeal for preserving the public peace, and supporting the constitution of their country. Numerous associations were formed against republicans and levellers ; loyal addresses poured in from all parts ; and the pulpit and the press were alike employed in re- commending social order, and in disseminating those prin- ciples which had raised Britain to a state of unexampled political happiness. When the parliament met, the infamous fraternizing de- cree of France having excited just alarm and indignation, a bill was passed, by which his majesty should be empow- ered to order aliens to quit the kingdom, as circumstances might justify or policy require. It was now sufficiently evident, that hostilities between Great Britain and France would not be long deferred. A sentiment of horror pei*vaded the nation, when Intel \igence was received of the condemnation and public exe GEORfiK Itl. 437 cution of the unfortunate Louis XVI. the mildest and most inoffensive of a long line of kings, who suffer- , Ig^ ed death, by the punishment of the guillotine, on the 21st of January. The parliament being sitting, advantage was taken of the sensation which this melancholy event produced, to unite all parties in the vigorous prosecution of a war, for which pi*eparations had long been making. Chau- velin, the accredited minister of Louis XVI., was ordered to quit the kingdom ; and the French republic, regarding his dismission as a direct act of hostility, declared war against the king of Great Britain, and the prince of Orange, as stadtholder of the United Provinces. The necessity of this war, which was actively underta- ken by this country without any formal declaration, was warmly disputed in parliament ; and it was affirmed that hostilities with France, on the grounds alleged by minis- ters, were neither for the honour nor the interest of Great Britain, The English troops, under the command of th€ duke of York, having joined those of Austria and Prussia, the combined armies defeated the French generals, Va- lence, Miranda, Dumourier, and Dampierre, and took the cities of Valenciennes, Conde, Mentz, and Quesnoy. It was resolved in a council of war, that the British, Hanove- rians, and Dutch, should separate from the main army, and attack West Flanders. Accordingly, the British forces un- der the duke of York made an attempt on Dunkirk ; but the English army was compelled to retreat with the loss of all its heavy artillery. Meanwhile, the fury of the jacobins in France roused the people in several provinces to resistance ; and lord Hood being cruising in the Mediterranean, the inhabitants of Toulon entered into a negotiation with him, and deli- vered into his possession the town and the shipping; but the republicans, collecting a large irregular force, attacked tJie place with such impetuosity, that the English were obliged to withdraw, after destroying nine of the enemy's ships of the line and some frigates. Though this campaign was on the whole successful on the side of the allies, yet its termination was by no means equally auspicious as its commencement. They had pre- served Holland and recovered the Netherlands ; but the tide of success was now turned against the confederates, 37* 438 HISTORY OP ENGT.AND. who, acting without any regularly concerted plan, showed alternate vigour and irresolution. At home, revolutionary doctrines were industriously propagated, and seditious societies formed ; and several persons of talents, who had lent their aid in promoting schemes dangerous to the constitution, were arrested and brought to trial. By the severity of the laws of Scotland, some of them, being convicted of sedition in that country, were sentenced to be transported to Botany Bay, which was accordingly earned into execution ; but in England, the promoters of disorder and confusion, who had been indicted for high treason, were all eventually acquitted. The merits of the judgments on the delinquents in Scot- land afterwards underwent a discussion in parliament. A message from the king to both houses of parliament announced the avowed intentions of the enemy to invade this country. A great augmentation of the militia, ITQl ^^^^ ^^^ addition of volunteer fensible corps, were accordingly voted. The ardour with which young men of all ranks entered into these military associations, for the purpose of defending their country, equally damped the resolution of domestic traitors and foreign foes ; an(l the preparations which had been made for invading Eng land began to slacken, and were at last wholly discon tinned. On the continent, the arms of the allies, from a want ol cordial co-operation, had experienced many reverses ; but the English were consoled by the splendid naval victory obtained by lord Howe over the French fleet, which had J , ventured from Brest harbour, for the purpose of !^J^^.' protecting a large convoy from America. In this action, which was warmly contested, the French suffered a total defeat, with the loss of six ships of the line taken, and one sunk. The French fleet consisted of twenty-six sail of the line, and the English of twenty-five. In the West Indies, Martinico, St. Lucia, and Guada- loupe, were successively captured ; and in the East, Pon- dicherry, Chandernagore, and Mahie, fell under the power of the English. In short, signal as havl been the disasters of the allied armies on the continent, in almost every en- terprise in which the British were singly engaged, they were completely successful. An accession was made to the British empire by the an GEORGE m. 439 iiexation of Corsica to the crown of England ; but policy, or necessity, in a short time compelled this country to abandon an island, which would ever have been attended with more expense than advantage. When the victories of the French in the Netherlands had removed their apprehensions from foreign enemies, their attention was directed to internal tyranny. After the jacobins had triumphed over the girondists, they were themselves divided into two parties. Those called the faction of the cordeliers, being opposed to the views of Ro- bespierre, who had made rapid strides to single despotism, were arrested by his orders, and put to death. The French people, however, no sooner considered the atrocities of which Robespierre had been guilty, than a powerful party was formed against him ; and the fall of the tyrant put an end to the reign of terror in France ; but under every suc- cessive faction, the arms of the republic prevailed on the continent, and at once Germany, Spain, and Italy, felt their irresistible force. The united provinces were speedily overrun by a French army ; and the Stadtholder, with his family, sought refuge in England. In this year, Poland, overwhelmed by a foreign des- potism, was blotted out from the number of European king- doms, and its territories were divided between Prussia, Austria, and Russia, the three powers that conspired and effected its ruin. The splendid successes of the French in the last cam- paign, had disposed most of the neighbouring pow- ers to acknowledge the republic. Prussia and ^ly^^ Spain concluded a treaty with France ; and Hol- land, being fraternized by the French, the Dutch, from long treacherous friends, became the open enemies of this country. Warm debates took place in the British parlia- ment on the subject of peace ; but the warlike proposals of ministers were still supported by great majorities. At this period of the contest, the nation seemed weary and dispirited ; but another victory by sea, gained by lord Brid- port, off port I'Orient, tended to encourage the people, and to convince them that they were invulnerable on their na- tive element. The engagement began early in the morn- ing, and continued till three in the afternoon, by which time three ships of the line had struck their colours. The 440 ^ HISTORY OF ENGLAND* rest of the French squadron, keeping close in shore, es caped into I'Orient. In the spring of this year, his royal highness the prince of Wales contracted a matrimonial alliance with his cou- sin, the princess Caroline Amelia, daughter of the duke of Brunswick. This marriage, which gave great joy to the people, eventually proved a source of much domestic miseiy and national inquietude. In the following year, the princess gave birth to a daughter ; and, soon after, a formal separation of the parents took place. Various circumstances had inspired the English people with a spirit of discontent. The cruel and illegal practices of crimps for the recruiting service had occasioned several violent tumults ; and the increasing scarcity of provisions aggravated the public ill-humour. The reforming socie- ties began to act with great boldness ; and that denomina- ted the Corresponding Society held several public meet- ings, one of which, in the fields near Copenhagen House, was computed to be attended by fifty thousand persons, and was distinguished by the daring addresses made to the people. On the first day of the meeting of parliament, his majesty was grossly insulted in passing to the house of lords by a furious mob, who clamorously demanded peace, and the dismission of Mr. Pitt. In consequence of this outrage, two bills passed both houses of parliament ; one for the better security of his majesty's person, by extending the laws of treason : the other, for the prevention of seditious meetings. These bills, however, did not pass without strong opposition. This year, that valuable settlement, the Cape of Good Hope, and part of Ceylon, were wrested from the Dutch ; but an expedition to Quiberon, in which were embarked about three thousand French emigrants, entirely failed. An overture was made by the British government to ne- gotiate a peace with France ; but it was so captiously, not to say insolently received, that it was impossible to take any farther steps for the attainment of this object. The truth seems to be, that the two governments were less in- clined to a pacification than the people, who were anxious to be relieved from a war, the evils of which were severely felt, and the eventual advantages of which they did not comprehend, or did not think sufficient to compensate the pressures under which they laboured. GEORGE III. 441 During the last campaign, the French had been less successful than in the former year ; but the directory made vigorous preparations for placing the numerous armies of the republic in a most formidable posture ; and the success of the French arms was not surpassed in any former pe- riod. In Italy, the republican troops were com- ^'^qA manded by general Bonaparte,* whose advance into that country was an almost uninterrupted ca- reer of victory. He defeated the imperialists at Lodi, and compelled nearly the whole of Italy to sue for peace. In Germany, too, the campaign began successfully on the side of the French ; and generals Moreau and Jourdan penetrated to the very heart of the empire ; but they were afterwards repelled by the archduke Charles, who drove back the invaders. Hence the love of peace became more and more felt by the British and the Austrians, who now alone remained of the grand confederacy which had been formed against France ; but in proportion as the enemy was successful, he increased his demands, and refused to listen to equal terms of accommodation. To evince the sincerity of their desire for peace, the British ministry sent lord Malmesbury as plenipotentiary to Paris, to open a negotiation with the French republic. A mutual restitution of conquests was the basis on which his lordship was empowered to treat ; but the French refusing to restore the Netherlands, ordered lord Malmesbury to quit Paris in forty-eight hours, and the French territory with as much expedition as possible. Whether either of the two governments was really desirous of peace at this time, seems very doubtful. At the close of this year, the French, encouraged by re- ports of disaffection in Ireland, attempted, with thirteen ships of the line, and a large body of troops, to make a descent at Bantry-bay ; but the winds dispersing the ar- mament, the commander-in-chief, who had arrived at his * Napoleon Bonaparte was a native of Corsica, where he was born in 1769. With the most intrepid courage, and an aspiring am- bition, he possessed talents of the first order, which raised him to the summit of power in France, and rendered him formidable to all the neighbouring nations. After seating himself on the throne of the Bourbons, the whole of Europe, with the exception of Great Britain, submitted to the will of this wonderful man. 442 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. place of destination, returned to Brest with the loss of one ship of the hne and two frigates. In Saldanna bay, a Dutch fleet of seven sail of the line, which had sailed in hopes of retaking the Cape of Good Hope, was captured by admiral Elphinstone ; and thus ended a campaign, in which Britain was uniformly suc- cessful on her own element. The aspect of affairs, however, was gloomy and dismal. The rapid and enormous increase of the |I^q^ national debt had created an alarm among the pro- prietors of the public funds ; and the bank having advan- ced immense and extraordinary sums to government, it was found expedient to stop the payment in specie. This strong measure, which necessity alone could justify, caus- ed a great sensation ; but it appearing that the bank had still a great surplus property, confidence was restored ; and the notes of the bank passed as freely as ever, though the prohibition of payment in cash was ordered to be con- tinued. Scarcely had the public alarm from the bank subsided^ when other dangers occasioned equal dread and conster- nation. A serious mutiny broke out among the seamen of the channel fleet lying at Spithead ; but on obtaining an increase of pay, which the circumstances of the times and their own merits rendered necessary, order and discipline were speedily re-established. It was hoped, that the concessions of government would have prevented any fresh insurrection ; but a mutiny broke out at the Nore, much more outrageous and full of danger. New and extravagant demands were dictated to the Admi- ralty, delegates were chosen to conduct the meeting, and one Richard Parker was appointed admiral of the muti- nous fleet. The firmness of government, however, and the enactment of two bills, denouncing death against all who should seduce any of his majesty's seamen from their duty, or hold any communication with ships in a state of mutiny, at length overawed those misguided men. The red flag of mutiny was struck ; and many of the ring leaders, among whom was Parker, suffered deserved pun- ishment. To these disgraceful proceedings in the channel, the successful bravery of our seamen against the enemy forms a striking contrast. Admiral sir John Jervis, commanding GEORGE HI. 443 fifteen sail of the line, fell in with a Spanish fleet of twen- ty-seven sail off Cape St. Vincent ; and, after an engage- ment of five hours, in which the great superiority of Bri- tish tactics, skill, and bravery, was displayed, captured four of the number. The honour of a peerage was de served ly bestowed on the gallant admiral, with the title of earl St. Vincent, in allusion to the scene of this glorious achievement. After this victory, rear-admiral Nelson, who had parti- cularly distinguished himself in the action, was sent with a flotilla to make a nocturnal attack on the town of Santa Cruz, in the island of Teneriffe. This attempt, however, was unsuccessful ; the gallant admiral lost an arm ; and one hundred and fifty men were either killed or wounded in the assault. Admiral Duncan, who had long been engaged in blocking up the DiVich fleet in the Texel, having ^ ' i** returned to England to refit, the enemy ventured to sea. Duncan hastily returning, disposed his squadron in such a manner as to prevent the Dutch from escaping without a conflict. The action was extremely obstinate ; but, at last, nine of the largest ships, and two admirals, were the trophies of British prowess. For this service, the gallant admiral was raised to a peerage, by the style and title of lord viscount Duncan, of Camperdown, off which place this victory was achieved. Meanwhile, the British government attempted to renew the negotiation for peace ; and lord Malmesbury was ao-ain commissioned to proceed to Lisle ; but the French requi- ring that England should restore all the possessions which had been taken from France, Spain, and Holland, without offering any compensation on the part of those powers, the British plenipotentiary found it necessary to return. About this time, however, the Austrians being com- pletely discomfited in Italy, the emperor was induced to sign a definitive treaty with the French republic, at Campo Formio; and thus Great Britain was left singly to combat with an enemy, strengthened by a large accession of ter- ritory and population, after all the other powers had been successively withdrawn, or intimidated from our alliance. Ireland, which had long been agitated by foreign and domestic enemies, became this year the scene ^~J!Jj of an unnatural rebellion. The United Irishmen, 444 HISTORY OP ENCtLANfi. who had formed a conspiracy against government, being disappointed in their expectations of receiving assistance from France, prepared for an extensive insurrection, with- out waiting for a co-operation from the continent. Stimu* lated by some persons of rank and consequence among them, they were guilty of the most savage atrocities; and a few of the principal traitors being themselves betrayed, their wretched adherents, finding concealment no longer possible, broke out into open rebellion. It would be painful to enter into the details of the cru- elties and murders which were perpetrated in that unhap- py country. In this unnatural contest, in which one part of the British empire warred with the rest, numbers of the insurgents fell ; while the survivors of the United Irishmen wreaked their vengeance on the unhappy prisoners that fell into their handsi At last earl Camden was recalled, and the marquis Cornwallis, who, to the highest personal character united splendid military talents, was appointed to the vice-royalty of Ireland. By offering pardon to all, except to the lead- ers in the rebellion^ he prevailed on the greatest part of the insurgents to surrender their arms, and take the oath of allegiance to his majesty ; and the rest were defeated or awed by the king's troops. The French, with a ^nall body of forces, endeavoured to revive the rebellion ; and, surprising our troops by their sudden appearance, gained a temporary advantage, but were soon overpowered and captured by lord Cornwallis. A French squadron of one ship of the line, and eight fri- gates, with troops and ammunition on board, destined for Ireland, was taken or dispersed by sir John Borlase War- ren ; and the whole French equipment, with the exception of two frigates, fell ultimately into the hands of the English. Meanwhile, Bonaparte had sailed from Toulon with an armament, consisting of thirteen ships of the line, six fri- gates, and transports, having on board an army of thirty thousand men. Malta capitulated to this armament, by the treachery of some of the chiefs of that island ; and steering its course for Egypt, the French debarked their forces in that country, which they speedily overran, not- withstanding the spirited opposition of the Mamelukes. Admiral Nelson, who had been detached by lord St. Vincent in quest of the enemy, with thirteen sail of the GEORGE III. 445 line and one fifty gun ship, found the French fleet at an- chor in ihe bay of Aboukir. A severe and obsti- nate engagement ensued ; and, after a dreadful i^qg conflict, a complete victory rewarded the skill and gallantry of the British admiral, his officers and men. Besides the French flag-ship of 120 guns, one 74 was burnt ; one of 80 guns, and seven of 74, were captured ; two ships of the line and two frigates escaped by flight, but were soon after taken. If Bonaparte had iiot pos- sessed great talents and a fertile genius, this victory, which deprived his army of all communication with Europe, would have completely paralyzed the expedition to Egypt. For this service, the admiral was created lord Nelson of the Nile, and received a pension of two thousand pounds, be- sides other honours and rewards which were bestowed on him by some of the sovereigns of Europe. The grand seignior now declared war against France and Paul, the new emperor of Russia, in whose character passion and frivolity were chiefly predominant, displayed his detestation of French principles, and was subsidised by England. The emperor of Germany also joined the confederacy against France ; and the republic had again to contend with another powerful alliance. Meanwhile, the assessed taxes not having proved so productive as had been expected, the minister had re« course to a tax on income, requiring one tenth on all in- comes exceeding two hundred pounds a year. A measure, however, which will immortalize the me- mory of the premier, and deserve the lasting gratitude of both countries, was his projected union with Ireland ; which, after being canvassed with great attention in Eng- land, and violently opposed in Ireland, was at last carried into efl*ect, on principles peculiarly favourable to the real interests of the latter country. The arms of Russia speedily gave a new turn to the war in Italy ; the English recovered Naples for its former sove- reign ; and sir Sidney Smith, by his bravery and able con- duct, repelled an invasion of Syria, headed by Bonaparte himself. The perfidy and duplicity of Tippoo Saib having occa- sioned a new war in India, general Harris, with equal success and ability, made himself master of ^',yQ^ Seringapatam, in storming which the tyrant of the 38 446 HISTORY OF ENGLAND. Mysore fell in action, and with him the empire which had been established by his father Hyder Ally. The greater part of his dominions were seized by the East India Com- pany, and his family were sent to Calcutta. While the allies were engaged in endeavouring to make an impression upon France, Great Britain undertook an expedition to detach the Batavian republic from its con- nexion with the French ; and a powerful armament was sent to Holland, under the command of the duke of York. On the 27th of August, sir Ralph Abercrombie, with the British and Russian troops, landed at the Helder, and de- feated the forces opposed to them, after a short and sharp conflict. Soon after, however, the duke of York assuming the command, the enemy having assembled in great force, and the season being too far advanced to suffer them to continue in the field, in a hostile country, the English were obliged to abandon the enterprise with great loss. Meanwhile, Bonaparte left the army which he command- ed in Egypt, and embarking in an armed vessel, reached France in safety. The divisions and intrigues in the French directory, aided by the popularity which he had acquired, enabled him to seize the reins of government ; and dissolving the council of five hundred, he established a new constitution, the executive part of which was vested in himself as first consul, with two subordinate consuls as his colleagues. On his accession to the consular government, Bonaparte addressed a letter to the kino^ of Great Britain, and re- quested his majesty to concur with him in restoring peace to the world ; but these overtures being rejected, under the plea that his continuance in power might be as unsta- ble as his predecessors, he prepared to carry on the war J with vigour. At Marengo, he gave the Austrians ^Y^ a most signal defeat, and obliged the emperor to Iftn'fl conclude the treaty of Luneville. Malta having submitted to the arms of England, after a blockade of two years, the French entered into a treaty for evacuating Egypt ; but the British government unhappily refusing to ratify this convention, which had been formed under the auspices of Sir Sidney Smith, the French general in that country recommenced hostilities ; and in order to expel the enemy from that province, without which our India possessions could not have been secure, sir Ralph Aber- GEORGE III. 447 crbmbie was sent into Egypt with a powerful army. On the 21st of March, 1801, that gallant veteran defeated the French general, Menou, with great loss, but was mortally wounded in the action, and died a few days after, equally beloved and revered for his private virtues as for his mili- tary talents. General Hutchinson, who succeeded to the command, completed the reduction of Egypt. Meanwhile, as the union between Great Britain and Ireland had been fixed by the legislature to commence and be in force from the first day of the nineteenth century, the imperial parliament of both islands met at Westminster, on the 22d of January. The empe- ioqi ror of Russia had not only withdrawn himself from the confederacy against France, but listening to the coun- sels of Bonaparte, had stimulated Denmark and Sweden to enter into an armed neutrality against this country. When all Europe was thus combined against Britain, and almost every port shut against us, Mr. Pitt and his princi- pal coadjutors resigned their situations. The minister, apprehending, as has been supposed, that his continuance m office might prove an impediment to the restoration of peace, or considering, as is more probable, and has been asserted, that his pledge to the catholics at the time of the union, required either the fulfilment of his promise or the sacrifice of his place, relinquished all his employments. Mr. Addington, speaker of the house of commons, was ap- pointed first lord of the treasury, and chancellor of the exchequer; lord Hawkesbury, secretary of state for the foreign department ; and earl St. Vincent, first lord of the admiralty. The king of Prussia earnestly promoted the northern confederacy, and sent an army into Hanover ; but a Bri- tish fleet, under admirals sir Hyde Parker and lord Nelson, being despatched to open the Baltic, an engage- ment took place at Copenhagen, which had been ^q/^* strongly fortified, when the result was a complete victory on the part of the English, chiefly obtained by the intrepid conduct of lord Nelson. After this bloody battle, an armistice was agreed on ; and the emperor Paul being succeeded by his son Alexander, the northern confederacy was dissolved, and peace was restored between England and the nations of which it was composed. The chief difficulty in regard to a pacification with 448 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. France being removed by the evacuation of Egypt by the French, preliminaries of peace were signed on the first of October, to the unbounded joy of the united kingdom. The terms, however, were far from giving universal satis- ihoi ^^^^^^^^» ^^^ many saw in them the seeds of a new war at no great distance ; but, after various delays and difficulties, a definitive treaty was signed at Amiens, on the 27th of March following. By this treaty, Great 1802 ■'^^'i^^^^ restored to France and her allies every possession or colony which she had taken from them during the war, except the Spanish island of Trini- dad, and the Dutch settlement of Ceylon. Egypt was to be restored to fhe Porte ; and the integrity of the Turkish empire was guarantied. The French were to evacuate the territories of Naples and of Rome. Malta was to be restored to its own order of knights. It was soon, however, evident that the treaty of Amiens would not be productive of any long period of tranquility. The restless ambition of Bonaparte, which, whilst it could not suflfer neighbouring nations to repose in peace and se- curity, was at last fatal to himself. No man, either of ancient or modern times, can be compared with this ex- traordinary person, who, as if regarding Europe as too confined a theatre for his ambition, grasped at the domi- nion of the whole world, and whose unparalleled life seems to resemble a fiction and romance, rather than a history of real actions. His assumption of the presidency of the Italian republic, and the convention which he had formed with Spain, were objects of jealousy to the British government ; but the subjugation of Switzerland was a wanton aggression, which excited indignation in the breast of every friend of liberty ; and the aims at dominion which were every where visible, withheld the English ministry from surrendering Malta unconditionally. This produced a rupture between 1 S(V? *^^® *^^*^ countries, and war was proclaimed by Great loUd ;gj,-^ajj^ against France, on the 18th of May. One of the first measures of Bonaparte, after the renewal of hostilities, was to seize on the electorate of Hanover ; but the invasion of England appeared at this time the prin- cipal object which occupied his attention. A flotilla was prepared for conveying the military hordes of France to the British shores ; extensive camps were formed in the GEORGE III. 449 vicinity of the harbours ; and the troops were kept in con- stant readiness for embarkation. Such, however, were the exertions made to receive the boasted invaders of England, that volunteer associations were every where formed ; men of all ranks and professions, animated with one common feeling of indignation, devoted a great portion of their time to preparations for the defence of their country ; and the whole kingdom presented the appearance of one wide tented field. The regular military force of Great Britain was also augmented beyond all former precedent, and stationed in different parts of the kingdom ; while our fleets blockaded the enemy's ports, and confined their squadrons arid flo- tillas within the protection of their own batteries. Meanwhile, a new insurrection broke out in Dublin, which occasioned some alarm, but which was speedily re- pressed ; but lord Rilwarden, and his nephew Mr. Wolfe, unfortunately passing at the time, were dragged out of their carriage by the insurgents, and barbarously put to death. This year, the French government transferred Louisia- na to the United States of America, for the sum of fifteen millions of dollars. The majorities on the side of ministers being greatly reduced, by the opposition of Mr. Pitt, who had hitherto supported the administration, Mr. Ad- ^oni dington resigned the oflice of chancellor of the ex- chequer and first lord of the treasury, and was succeeded by Mr. Pitt. At the same time, the duke of Portland was appointed president of the council ; and lord Eldon lord chancellor. Various attempts against the enemy's flotilla on their own coasts were unsuccessful. The most considerable of this kind, was an undertaking by lord Keith, with a fleet of men of war and other ships, to destroy about one hun- dred and fifty French vessels moored on the outside of Boulogne pier. The instruments chiefly depended on for this purpose, were certain exploding vessels, called cata- marans, which, however, entirely disappointed the expec- tations that had been formed. Though Spain had not declared war against Britain, yet the English government considered that power as wholly under the control of Bonaparte; and a British 38* 450 msToRY OP* fiNGLAjio. squadron was, therefore, sent to intercept the Spanish fri- gates which conveyed specie from America to Cadiz. An engagement ensued, in wJiich one of the Spanish vessels blew lip; and the rest, with the treasure, fell into the hands of the English ; but this act of the British govern- ment can scarcely be considered otherwise than as a vio- lation of the law of nation s» The aggressions of Bonaparte in Germany and Italy, provoked another coalition among the European powers ; and the " mighty army of England," which was said to be intended for the invasion of this countiy, and which had remained nearly two years stationary and in- ^Qfx^ active, was withdrawn from the shores of the channel ; but the fatal battle of Austerlitz destroy- ed the hopes of Russia and Austria, and compelled the latter power to accept such terms of accommodation as France thought fit to dictate* Meanwhile, Goree, which had been taken by the French, was recaptured ; and the Dutch settlement of Surinam capitulated to a force under the command of sir Charles Green and commodore Hood. Bonaparte, on whom the people of France had conferred the rank and title of em- peror of the French, made an overture to the king, in which he expressed a wish for peace, and deprecated the continuance of hostilities as tending to a useless effusion of blood. The reply of the British government declared, that the king, though ardently desirous of peace, was con- vinced that this object could be attained only by arrange- ments which should provide for the future safety and tran- quility of Europe, and, in consequence, till he had com- municated with the continental powers with whom he was engaged in confidential relations, he felt it impossible to give a more particular answer to the overture. The misfortunes of our allies on the continent were in some degree com.pensated by the brilliant success whicli attended the fleets of Great Britain. A fleet of twelve French, and six Spanish ships of the line, had sailed for the West Indies, under the command of admiral Ville- neuve ; and lord Nelson, with only eleven sail of the line, pursued the French admiral, who, terrified by the intelli- gence of his approach, hastened back to Europe, and, near cape Finisterre,was encountered by sir Robert C alder, who took two of his large ships. GEORGfi 111. 451 Soon after, the combined fleets of France and Spain, amounting to thirty-three sail of the line, again sailed un- der the same admiral, with the intention of giving battle to lord Nelson. The British admiral, however, had been re-enforced with seven ships, which augmented his fleet to the number of twenty-seven sail of the line. On the 21st of October, lord Nelson, to his great joy, descried the mighty armament of the enemy, about seven miles east of cape Trafalgar. The last memorable signal of the British admiral, " England expects every man to do his duty,'' was received with acclamations from the whole fleet* About noon the dreadful contest began, by the leading ships of the British column breaking through the enemy's line. In this bloody battle, lord Nelson was mortally wounded by a musket-ball, fired from the shrouds of the Redoubtable, to which the admiral's ship, the Victory, was opposed, after having compelled Villeneuve to strike his flag on board the Bucentaur. The British hero, however, did not close his eyes in death till he had received assu- rance of a decisive victory, when, faintly smiling, he ex- claimed, " God be praised !" and expired. In this engage- ment, nineteen of the enemy's ships were captured by the English. The patriotic hero, by whom this victory had been achieved, was interred in the most magnificent man- ner, at the public expense ; the title of earl Nelson was conferred on his brother, with a suitable income ; and mo- numents to the memory of him who had been the pride and the glory of his country, arose in all the principal towns of the empire. Meanwhile, the arms of Britain were crowned with new triumphs in India, where sir Arthur Wellesley, now duko of Wellington, defeated Scindiah, a powerful Mahratta chieftain, and obliged him to cede a large tract of country to the British ; and, before the close of the year 1805, a peace was concluded with Holkar, another Mahratta chief, who was also deprived of a veiy considerable extent of territory. France and Prussia concluded a treaty, by which Ha- nover was transferred to the latter power ; and Frederic William occupied nearly the whole of that electorate, the property of his old ally, with his troops. The total failure of the continental coalition greatly aug- mented the gloom which prevailed in England, in conse- 452 HISTORY OiP ENGLAND. quence of the alarming illness of Mr. Pitt. This distin- guished statesman, whose infirm state of health had beeo increased by anxiety and disappointment, expired- on the 23d of January, after having directed the affairs of IftOfi ^^^^^ country for a longer period than any formei minister. Under his auspices, the maritime su- premacy of England was confirm.ed by a series of most splendid victories ; but the public burdens were enor- mously augmented. He laboured successfully to preserve Great Britain from the contagion of revolutionary princi- ples ; and he exerted himself with equal zeal, but with less success, to resist the military despotism by which France threatened to subjugate the continent. In short, he was a statesman of great ability and strength of mind, who rendered momentous services to his country ; and it must be allowed, that never was the force of the British cha- racter tried by greater dangers, or graced by more splendid achievements, than under the administration of William Pitt. On the death of this distinguished and disinterested statesman, lord Grenville was appointed first lord of the treasury ; Mr. Fox, secretary of state for foreign affairs ; lord Henry Petty, chancellor of the exchequer ; and Mr. Windham, secretary of state for the department of war and the colonies. About ten days after these appointments, a negotiation took place with France, which was no less singular in its commencement than fruitless in its result. A Frenchman, calling himself Gevrilliere, disclosed to Mr. Fox a plan for the assassination of Bonaparte ; but that minister dismiss- ed the wretch with indignation, and informed the French government of the meditated crime. This extorted from Bonaparte a well merited compliment to the honour and generosity of Mr. Fox ; and a negotiation for peace be- tween the two countries commenced ; but, after being con- tinued for a considerable length of time, the continental policy of France prevented a satisfactory issue. One of the first measures of the new ministers was an increase on the income-tax, which, already odious and op- pressive, was raised from five to ten per cent, on all in- comes exceeding fifty pounds. , In the house of commons, Mr. Fox moved a resolution, which was carried into effect, and which may be said to C150UGE III. 453 have closed the parliamentary career of that great states man. This resolution proposed to take effectual measures for abolishing the Slave Trade ; and an address from both houses was carried to the king, beseeching him to obtain oy negotiation the concurrence of foreign powers in the abolition of the iniquitous traffic. The Cape of Good Hope again surrendered to the Bri- tish ; but an attempt on Spanish South America, though at first successful, finally proved abortive. In Italy, how- ever, the British arms were triumphant, and sir John Stuart defeated at Maida a French army under general Regnier, with great loss ; but this brilliant victory, which was achiev- ed with a comparatively small force, produced no permanent change in the state of the kingdom of Naples, though it preserved Sicily from invasion. Naples had been seized on by the French emperor, and Joseph Bonaparte was proclaimed king of that country. The emperor Napoleon carried into effect a scheme for subverting the ancient constitution of the German empire, by establishing what is called the confederation of the Rhine. The members of this confederation were the em- peror of the French, the kings of Bavaria and Wirtemberg, and several other German princes. Separating themselves from the Germanic empire, these princes chose Bonaparte for their protector, and established a federal alliance, by which they engaged to furnish a certain contingent of troops, in case of a continental war. Conformably to an arrangement with Napoleon, Francis resigned his office and title of emperor of Germany, and annexed his German provinces to the empire of Austria. On the 13th of September died that illustrious statesman and friend to the human race, Charles James Fox, whose last moments were embittered, by finding that the ambition of Bonaparte deprived him of the plea- lorj/^ sure dearest to his heart — that of terminating the sufferings of distracted Europe, and restoring to his coun- try the blessings of peace. As a senator, Mr. Fox was distinguished alike for the comprehensiveness of his views, the liberality of his principles, and the persuasive and con- vincino- power of his eloquence ; as a minister, he displav- ed in the management of public affairs the same noble simplicity which characterized his conduct in private life ; and| as a man, his great and amiable qualities acquired 454 HISTORY OF BNGL.4ND. him the cordial affection of his friends, and the generous atlmiralion of his adversaries. On the death of this lamented statesman, lord Howick was appointed secretary of foreign affairs, and Mr. Thomas Grenville became first lord of the admiralty. The fate of Prussia proved the danger to which all the old governments were exposed. After Napoleon was en- gaged in hostilities with Great Britain and Sweden, he rendered himself formidable to all Europe, by the prompt- ness and energy of his conduct. Frederic William disco- vered that the French emperor, who had guarantied to him the possession of Hanover, was offering the restoration of that electorate as the basis of negotiation with the English court. Indignant at the danger of losing this acquisition, he resolved to try the hazard of war ; and, after successive actions, in which the Prussians were uniformly defeated, a tremendous conflict took place on the 14th of October, in the plains between Weimar and Auerstadt. The issue of this engagement, in which Frederic William suf- tsnfi f'^i'^d ^ ^^^^^ defeat, laid Prussia at the mercy of Bonaparte, who took possession of Berlin, and completely subjugated that country. Between the French and Russian armies a series of bloody contests also took place, in which the former were uniformly victorious ; and, at length, peace was signed at Tilsit by the emperors of France and Russia. Napoleon now controlled the whole of the continent. His brother Louis was created king of Holland ; his bro- ther Joseph, king of Naples ; and his brother Jerome was in person created king of Westphalia, with territories ce ded by Prussia and other neighbouring states. Napoleon himself was not only emperor of France, but also king of Italy ; and Spain was entirely subservient to the policy of that ambitious and daring, though able ruler. Whilst at Berlin, Bonaparte issued a decree, interdict- ing all commerce and correspondence between the coun- tries under his control and the British Islands, which he declared to be in a state of blockade. The well known reluctance of the king to extend the privileges of the catholics, did not prevent lord Grenville and his associates from introducing a bill into parliament, for the purpose of empowering persons of that persuasion to fill the highest offices in the army and navy. The king GEORGE III. 455 expressed his decided objection to this measure, and de- miitided from his ministers a written pledge, that they would never again bring forward any proposal connected vvith the catholic question. As the ministers could not assent to this, they resigned their situations, and a new ad- ministration was formed. The duke of Portland was ap- pointed first lord of the treasury ; Mr. Perceval, chancellor of the exchequer; lord Eldon, lord chancellor ; lord Liver- pool, secretary for the home department ; and Mr. Can- ning, secretary for foreign affairs. A new parliament was assembled, which fully establish- ed the strength of the new ministers ; and the first / AT) important measure was a plan for increasing the -I'^f^y^ regular army from the militia, and supplying the deficiencies arising from such a transfer, by a supplemen- tary militia. In the beginning of this year, the island of Curracoa surrendered to the English. A confederacy of the northern powers against Britain being now apprehended, the ministers sent a powerful ar- mament against Denmark, which was compelled to sur- render her fleet to the English, after the bombardment of her capital. This measure justly excited the indignation of Europe, and gave to the enemies of Great Britain a plausible pretext for their hostility. In consequence of the decree of Bonaparte from Berlin, the English ministers issued orders, subjecting all ports and places in Europe, from which the British flag was excluded, and all those in the colonies of his majesty's enemies, to the restrictions consequent on actual blockade, declaring all trade in the produce or manufactures of such countries or colonies to be unlawful, and authorizing the capture of all vessels engaged in that trade. To these orders Bonaparte published a rejoinder at Milan, in which he decreed, that all ships which should be searched by a British vessel, or should pay any tax to the English go- vernment, were denationalized, and might be lawfully cap- tured wherever found. These conflicting regulations respecting the trade of neutrals, occasioned an act in the American congress, im- posing a strict embargo on all vessels belonging to the American states, and commanding all foreign ships to quit the harbours of the United States. The designs of Bonaparte against Spam became daily 456 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. more manifest ; and a treaty was concluded at Fontaine- bleau for the partition of Portugal. A French army was already on its march to Lisbon, when the Portuguese fleet j^ set sail from the Tagus, with the prince regent and nq ' the whole royal family on board, and proceeded to ^onj Rio de Janeiro, escorted by an English squadron. The French army under Junot, already on the heights above Lisbon, took possession of that capital, and subjected the inhabitants to military law. Madeira was placed under the protection of the Eng- lish ; and the Danish islands in the West Indies, St. Tho- mas, St. John, and St. Croix, surrendered to a British squadron under sir Alexander Cochrane. The French had obtained possession of the principal fortresses in Spain ; and the approach of Murat, with a powerful army, to the capital, increased the alarm of the Spanish people. Charles IV. abdicated the crown in favour of his son, the prince of the Asturias, who com- menced his reign under the title of Ferdinand the Seventh ; but this arrangement did not suit the policy of France, and, the father and son quarrelling, Charles transferred to Napoleon the sovereignty of Spain, who, having persuaded Ferdinand to meet him at Bayonne, compelled him to re- nounce the crown in favour of his family. Charles, his queen, and Godoy, prince of peace, retired to Rome ; and Joseph Bonaparte was installed king of Spain ^'ana ^nd the Indies ; while Joachim Murat, the bro- ther-in-law of the French emperor, was made king of Naples. These transactions, however, did not take place without causing great commotions and much effusion of blood in Spain ; and the Spanish people, exasperated by the cruel- ties committed by the French in that country, declared war against France, and sent deputies to implore the as- sistance of England. This request was readily granted, and a force of ten thousand men sailed to Corunna, under the command of sir Arthur Wellesley ; but on communica- ting with the Spanish leaders in that district, it was deter- mined to proceed to Portugal, where the troops were dis- embarked in Mondego bay. Junot, collecting his whole for^e, attacked the British army in a strong position at Vimiera ; but, after an obstinate contest, the French were defeated with the loss of between three and four thousand OEOtlGfE Itl. 457 men. Sir Hugh Dalrymple, who arrived from Gibraltar to assume the commaad of the British army, concluded a disgraceful convention at Cintra, by which the French troops were sent to France, at the expense of the Eng- lish government, without being considered as prisoners of war. The command of the British army in Portugal devolved on sir John Moore, who arrived with a reinforcement of twelve thousand men. That officer had been intrusted with an expedition for the assistance of Sweden, against which war had been declared by Russia, Prussia, and Denmark ; but through the capricious and violent con* duct of the Swedish monarch, he had been constrained to return without landing his troops. Meanwhile, the disasters which befel the French armies in Spain, intimidated Joseph Bonaparte, who, after a resi- dence of ten days in Madrid, decamped from that capital, taking with him the regalia and crown jewels, and some other valuables from the palaces and treasury. On this occasion, the Spaniards contemptuously observed, that " Joseph had put into his pocket, the crown which he durst not wear upon his head." The French emperor, indignant at the conduct of the Spaniards, and the discomfiture of his armies, announced to his legislative body, that, placing himself at the head of his troops, he would crown his brother at Madrid, and plant his eagles on the fortresses of Portugal. Accordingly, a large and overwhelming force entered Spain ; and the un- disciplined troops of that country were easily defeated by the hosts of French veterans, commanded by the most able generals, and animated by the the presence of Napoleon. By the representations and remonstrances of Mr. Frere, the English minister at Madrid, sir John Moore had been urged to direct his march to that capital ; but hearing that Madrid had surrendered to the French, and that Napoleon was marching against him with a great body of forces, the English general found himself compelled to retreat. The distresses Avhich the British army suffered in this retreat were dreadful. With few intervals of re- pose which the French forces allowed them, they traversed two hundred and fifty miles in a mountainous country, in the middle of a severe winter, and by roads almost im^ passable. At length, after a most painful and harassirijij 458 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. retreat, in which they lost several thousand men, the British army readied Corunna on the 12th of Ja- IROQ ^'^^^^TJ ^^^^ ^^ ^^^ l^t^^ of that month, when the embarkation of the troops was about to commence, they were attacked by the French^ under the command of marshal Soult. The British, however, though inferior in number, exhausted by harassing marches, and deprived of their artillery, which had been embarked, repulsed the enemy, and achieved a victory under the most adverse circumstances ; but, in this engagement, the English lost their brave commander, who was killed by a cannon ball, and who, in his last moments, expressed a hope that his country would do him justice. Sir Arthur Wellesley being again appointed to the command of the army in the peninsula, landed with rein- forcements in Portugal. Soult was driven from Oporto ; and sir Arthur Wellesley, joined by the Spanish general Cuesta, hastened to meet marshal Victor in the south. The allied army was strongly posted at Talavera, where it was attacked by Victor. An obstinate engagement en- sued, in which the French were defeated with the loss of ten thousand men. This victory occasioned great joy in England ; and sir Arthur Wellesley was honored with a peerage, by the title of lord viscount Wellington. After this battle, the enemy collected in great force, under marshals Ney, Soult, and Mortier, and the British army was obhged to retreat into Portugal. In the other districts of Spain, the French arms were triumphant ; and, at the close of the campaign, the principal armies of the patriots had been successively defeated and dispersed. The island of Martinico was taken by the EngHsh ; and lord Cochrane destroyed or rendered unserviceable ten French ships in Basque roads. War being again declared between Austria and France, the hostile armies were put in motion ; and battles were fought at Abensberg, at Eckmuhl, and at Ratisbon, all in favour of the French. In the battle of Asperne, however, Bonaparte was unsuccessful against the archduke Charles ; but at Wagram, a short time after, he obtained a decisive victory over the Austrians, and compelled the emperor again to sue for peace, which he granted. An expedition was fitted out for making a descent oi the Dutch island of Zealand ; and an armament, consist GEORGE III 450 iiig of a military force of nearly forty thousand men, under the command of the earl of Chatham, and a fleet of thirty- nine sail of the line, and thirty-six frigates, under the di- rection of sir Richard Strachan, sailed from England. After a vigorous siege, Flushing was compelled to surren- der ; but the ulterior objects of this expedition completely failed ; and the occupation of the low and marshy islands of Walcherin and South Beveland, proved greatly destruc- tive to the troops, Avho were seized witli a pestilential fever. The reduction of Zante, and the consequent surrender of the Ionian islands, effected by the joint efforts of lord Collingwood and sir John Stuart, may be reckoned among the more fortunate events of this year. A partial change of administration took place, in con- sequence of the resignations of lord Castlereagh, Mr. Can- ning, and the duke of Portland. Mr. Perceval united in his own person the offices of first lord of the treasury, and chancellor of the exchequer ; the marquis Wellesley was appointed secretary for foreign affairs ; and lord Liverpoo. secretary at war. The next session of parliament commenced with violent debates on the disastrous expedition to Walcherin ; and lord Chatham thought proper to resign his '^'q^A office of master general of the ordnance. In Spain, the cause of independence was still unsuc- cessful ; but Cadiz, which had become the seat of govern- ment, being protected by a combined British and Spanish fleet, and occupied by a considerable military force, bade defiance to any attack of the enemy. Ciudad Rodrigo and Almeida fell successively into the hands of the French. At Buzaco, however, the English obtained a victory, but afterwards retired to the strong lines of Torres Vedras ; and marshal Massena, the French general, fixed his head quarters at Santarem. Napoleon divorced the empress Josephine, and married the archduchess Maria Louisa, daughter to the emperor of Austria. Europe beheld with astonishment this alliance ; which was not less disgraceful to the emperor Francis, than injurious in France to the popularity of Bonaparte. The sovereignty of Holland was resigned by Louis; and the Seven United States were annexed to the French em- pire. In Sweden, the states elected the French marshal Bernadotte, crown prince of that country. 460 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. In the "West Indies, the English took the island of Grau- daloupe ; and in the Indian ocean, the French islands of Bourbon and the Mauritius. They also took Amboyna from the Dutch. In consequence of the return of the king's malady, the prince of Wales was appointed regent, subject to all the restrictions which, on a former occasion, had been 1811 P^^P^^^^ ^y ^^^' P^tt. On the 6th of February, his royal highness was installed as regent ; and he declared his intention not to remove from their stations those whom he found his majesty's official servants, lest any act of his might interfere with his royal father's re- covery. The commercial distress of the nation necessarily de- manded the attention of parliament ; and a bill was passed empowering the treasury to issue exchequer bills to the amount of six millions sterling, the same to be reimbursed in three quarterly instalments ; but the effects of this bi ( Quicelm $ * 611 643 648 This kingdom began 491, ended 685. was Adelwach. Its first christian king The kingdom of East Saxons contained the counties of Essex and Middlesex ; its kings were. Erchenwin, began . 527 Sledda 587 Sebert . . . . . 598 ( Sexred i < Seward > . . . 616 f Sigebert ) Sigebert the Little . 623 Sigebert the Good . 653 Swithelme . . . . 655 10 11 14 8 Sighere and Sebbi . 665 9 Sebbi 693 Sigherd and > y^^A Seofrid I ' ^94 Offa 700 12 Ceolfred .... 709 13 Suithred .... 746 Sigered 799 This kingdom began 527, ended 827. was Sebert. Its first christian king 476 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. The kingdom of Northumberland contained the counties ol Yorkshire, Durham, Lancashire, Westmoreland, Cumberland, and Northumberland ; its kings were. 1 Ella, or Ida, began . 547 2 Adda 559 3 Clappea .... .565 4 Theodwald ... 572 5 Fridulph .... 573 6 Theodorick ... 579 7 Athelrick .... 586 8 Athelfrid .... 593 9 Edwin 617 10 Osric 633 11 Oswald 634 12 Oswy 643 13 Ethelward .... 653 14 Egfrid 670 15 Alkfryd 685 16 Osred I. .... 705 This kingdom began 547, ended 827. was Edwin. 17 Cenred 716 18 Osrick 718 19 Ceolulphe .... 730 20 Egbert ..... 737 21 Oswulph . . . . 758 22 Edildwald .... 759 23 Alured . . . . . 765 24 Atheldred .... 774 25 Alswald 1 779 26 Osred II. • • -^ . 789 27 Atheldred restorecF . 790 28 Osbald . . . . . 796 29 Ardulph ... . 797 30 Alswald 11. ... 807 31 Andred . . . . . 810 Its first christian king The kingdom of Mercia contained the counties of Huntingdon, Rutland, Lincoln, Northampton, Leicester, Derby, Notting- ham, Oxford, Chester, Salop, Gloucester, Worcester, Stafford, Warwick, Buckingham, Bedford, and Hertford Creda, began Wibba . Cheorlas Penda . Peada . 6 Wolf here 7 Ethelred 8 Kenred . 9 Ceolred . 582 595 616 625 656 659 704 709 10 Ethelbald 11 Offa . . 12 Egfryd . 13 Cenolf . 14 Kenelme 15 Ceolwolf 675 16 Burnulf 17 Ludecan 18 Wiglafe . its kings were, 716* 757 794 795 819 819 821 823 825 This kingdom began 582, ended 827. was Peada. Its first christian king The kingdom of East Norfolk, Cambrid^ 1 Uffa, began 2 Titillus . 3 Redwald 4 Erpinwald 5 Sigebert 6 ^fg^il^ ^ Annas 7 Ethelhere Angles contained the counties of Suffolk, ;e, and the isle of Ely ; its kings were, 575 578 599 624 636 644 654 9 10 11 12 13 14 Ethwald Adwulf . . Alswald . . < Beorna and ( Ethelbert Beorna alone Ethelred . Ethelbert . 659 664 r>83 , 49 /»8 ?t'\ 7t''> This kingdom began 575, ended 792. was Redwald. Its first christian kin^ APPENDIX. 47T ^he kingdom of West Saxons contained tlie counties of Corn- wall, Devon, Dorset, Somerset, Wilts, Hants, and Berks ; its kings were, 1 Cherdic, began . . 519 -.rj ( Censua, Escwin, ) r.^^ 2 Kenrick 534 ^" { and Centwin S 3 Chevline .... 560 4 Ceolric 592 5 Ceoluph .... 598 ( Quinthelin > 7 Ceonowalch . . . 643 8 Adelwalch . . . . 648 9 Sexburga .... 672 'fe' 11 Ceadwald .... 686 12 Ina 688 13 Adelard 726 14 Cudred 740 16 Brithnck .... 784 17 Egbert 800 This kingdom began 519, ended 828. Its first christian king was Kingills. The Saxons, though they were divided into seven kingdoms, were, for the most part, subject only to one monarch, who was styled king of the English nation ; the most powerful giving the law unto the others, arid succeeded as follows : HENGIST, first monarch of Britain, landed in the Isle of Thanet, 449 ; laid the foundation of the monarchy in 455 ; de- feated Vortimer at Crayford, in Jan. 457; massacred 300 Bri- tish nobles on Salisbury plain, May 1, 474. He bore in his standard the white horse, blazoned in the same manner as now borne by the dukes of Brunswick. He was born at Angria, in Westphalia, reigned 34 years, died in 484. ELLA, second monarch, landed at Shore.ham, ia Sussex, in 477 ; assumed the title of king of the South Saxons in 491 ; died in 499. CHERDIC, third monarch, arrived in Britain, and overcame Arthur, near Chard, in Somersetshire, 519; began the king- dom of the West Saxons the same year ; died in 534. KENRICK, second king of the West Saxons, fourth monarch, eldest son of Cherdic, succeeded in 534 ; and died in 560. CHEVELINE, third king of the West Saxons, and fifth mo- narch, succeeded his father, 560; seized on Sussex in 590; abdicated in 591 ; and died, in banishment, in 592. ETHELBERT I., fifth king of Kent, and sixth monarch, in 592; St. Augustine first arrived in his dominions, who, with his followers, were entertained by the king at Canterbury, where they settled ; to whose doctrine Ethelbert became a convert. He gave Augustine an idol temple, without the walls of the city, as a burial place for him and his successors, which was converted into the first monastery. The king was the first that caused the laws of the land to be collected and translated into Saxon. He died Feb. 24, 617, and was buried at Canterbury. REDWALD, third king of the East Angles, seventh monarch, 616 ; he died 624. EDWIN the Great, king of Northumberland, succeeded ag eighth monarch in 624. He was the first christian, and the 478 HISTORY OF ENGLAND second king of Northumberland. He lost his life in a battle at Hatfield, Oct. 3, 6.33. OSWALD, third king of Northumberland, and ninth monarch, 634. He was slain at Maserfield, in Shropshire, Aug. 1, 642. OSVVY, fourth king of Northumberland, tenth monarch, on Oct. 13, 634. He defeated Penda, the Mercian, and Ethelred, king of the East Angles, Nov. 6, 655. He died Feb. 15, 670. WOLFHERE, sixth king of the Mercians, eleventh monarch, in 670 ; died 674, and Avas buried at Petersborough. ETHELRED, ses^enth king of Mercia, and twelfth monarch, in 675. He desolated part of Kent, and, in 677, destroyed Ro- chester, and many religious foundations ; to atone for which he became a monk, 703, and died abbot of Bradney, in 716. CENRED, his nephew, eighth king of Mercia, and thirteenth monarch, in 704, reigned four years, and following his uncle's example, became a monk. CEOLRED, son to Ethelred, ninth king of the Mercians, and fourteenth monarch, in 709, was killed in battle with the West Saxons, in 716 ; and was buried at Litchfield. ETHELBALD 1., tenth king of the Mercians, fifteenth mo- narch, in 716; built Croyland abbey, in Lincolnshire. He was slain by his own subjects, when he was leading his troops against Cuthred, the West Saxon, at Secondine, three miles from Tamworth, in Warwickshire, and was buried at Repton, in Derbyshire, in 756. OFF A, the eleventh king of the Mercians, and the sixteenth monarch, 756. He was hotn lame, deaf, and blind, which con- tinued till he arrived at manhood. He took up arms against Kent, slew their king at Otteford, and conquered that king- dom. He caused a great trench to be dug from Bristol to Basingwerk, in Flintshire, as the boundary of the Britons, who harboured in Wales, 774. Offa first ordained the sound- ing of trumpets before the kings of England, to denote their appearance, and require respect. He admitted his son. Eg-- fryd, a partner in his sovereignty ; and, out of devotion, paid a visit to Rome, where he made his kingdom subject to a tri- bute, then called Peter-pence, and procured the canonization of St. Alban. At his return he built St. Alban's monastery, in Hertfordshire, 793. He died at Offley, June 29, 794, and was buried at Bedford, in a chapel since swallowed up by the river Ouse. EGFRYD, twelfth king of the Mercians, and seventeenth mo- narch, July 13, 794; but died Dec. 17 following, and was bu- ried at St. Alban's. CENOLE, thirteenth king of the Mercians, and eighteenth mo- narch, in 795. He conquered Kent, and gave that kingdom to Cudred, 798. He built Winchcomb monastery, in Glou- cestershire, where he led the captive prince, Pren, to the altar, and released him without ransom or entreaty. He died in 819, and was bniried at Winchcomb. EGBERT, seventeenth king of the West Saxons, and nine- teenth, but first sole monarch, of the English. He conquered APPENDIX. 479 Kent, and laid the foundation of the sole monarchy in 823, which put an end to the Saxon heptarchy, and was solemnly Civjvvned at Winchester; when, by his edict, he ordered all the south of the island to be called England, 827. He died Feb. 4, 837, and was buried at Winchester. GTHEL^VOLF, eldest son of Egbert, succeeded his father, notwithstanding at the time of Egbert's death he was bishop of Winchester. In 846 he ordained tithes to be collected, and exempted the clergy from regal tributes. He visited Rome in 847, confii^ming the grant of Peter-pence, and agreed to pay Rome 300 marks per annum. His son Ethelbald obliged him to divide the sovereignty with him, 856. He died Jan. 13, 857, and was buried at Winchester. ETHELBALD U., eldest son of Ethelwolf, succeeded in 857. He died Dec. 20, 860, and was buried at Sherborn, but remo- ved to Salisbury. ETHELBERT IL, second son of Ethelwolf, succeeded in 860, and was harassed greatly by the Danes, who were repulsed and vanquished. He died in 866, was buried at Sherborn, and was succeeded by ETHELRED L, third son of Ethelwolf, in 8r6, when the Danes again harassed his kingdom. In 889, they destroyed the mo- nasteries of Bradney, Crowland, Petersborough, Ely, and Huntingdon, when the nuns of Coldingham defaced them- selves to avoid their pollution; and, in East Anglia, they mur- dered Edmund, at Edmundsbury, in Suffolk. Ethelred over- threw the Danes, 871, at Assendon. He had nine set battles with the Danes in one year, and was wounded at Wittingham, which occasioned his death, April 27, 872, and was buried at Winborne, in Dorsetshire. ALFRED, the fourth son of Ethelwolf, succeeded in 872, in the 22d year of his age ; was crowned at Winchester, and is dis- tinguished by tlie title of Alfred the Great. He was born at Wantage, in Berkshire, 849, and obliged to take the field a^^ainst the Danes within one month after his coronation, at Wilton, in Oxfordshire. He fought seven battles with them in 876. In 877 another succour of Danes arrived, and Alfred was obliged to disguise himself in the habit of a shepherd, in the isle of Alderney, in the county of Somerset, till, in 878, collecting his scattered friends, he attacked and defeated them in 879, when he obliged the greatest part of their army to quit the land ; in 897 they went up the river Lea, and built a for- tress at W^are, where king Alfred turned off the course oif the river, and left their ships dry, which obliged the Danes to re- move. He died Oct. 28, 901. EDWARD the Elder, his son, succeeded him, and was crown- ed at Kingston-upon-Thames, in 901. In 911, Leolin, prince of Wales, did homage to Edward for his principality. He died at Farringdon, in Berkshire, in 924, and was buried at Winchester. ATHELSTAN, his eldest son, succeeded him, and was croAvn- ed with far greater magnificence than usual, at Kingston-upon- 480 HlSTOilY OP ENGLAND. Thames, in 929. In 938 he defeated two Welsh pdnces, but soon after, on their making submission, he restored them their estates. He escaped being assassinated in his tent, 933, which he revenged by attacking the enemy, when five petty sove- reigns, twelve dukes, and an army who came to the assistance of Analf, king of Ireland, were slain; which battle was fought near Dunbar, in Scotland. He made the princes of Wales tri- butary, 939; and died Oct. 17, 940, at Gloucester. EDi\iUND I., the fifth son of Edward the elder, succeeded at the age of 18, and was crowned king at Kingston-upon- Thames, 940. On May 26, 947, in endeavouring to part two who were quarrelling, he received a wound, of which he bled to death, and was buried at Glastonbury. EDRED, his brother, aged 28, succeeded in 947, and was crown- ed at Kingston-upon-Thames, the 17th of August. He died in 955, and was buried at Winchester. EDWy, the eldest son of Edmund, succeeded, and was crowned at Kingston-upon-Thames, in 955. He had great dissensions with the clergy, and banished Dunstan, their ringleader, which occasions little credit to be given to the character the priests give him. He died of grief in 959, after a turbulent reign ol four years, and was buried at Winchester. EDGAR, at the age of 16, succeeded his brother, and was crown- ed at Kingston-upon-Thames, in 959, and again at Bath, 972. He imposed upon the princes of Wqles a tribute of wolves' heads, that for three years amounted to 300 each year. He obliged eight tributary princes to row him in a barge on the river Dee, in 974. lie died July 1, 975, and was buried at Glastonbury. EDWARD the Martyr, his eldest son, succeeded him, being but 16 years of age ; was crowned by Dunstan, at Kingston-upon- Thames, in 975. He was stabbed by the instructions of his mother-in-law, as he was drinking at Corfe-castle, in the isle of Purbeck, in Dorsetshire, on March 18, 979. He was first buried at Wareham, without any ceremony, but removed three years after, in great pomp, to Shaftsbury. ETHELRED H. succeeded his half-brother, and was crowned at Kingston-upon-Thames, on April 14, 979. In 982, his palace, with great part of London, was destroyed by a great fire. England was ravaged by the Danes, avIi©, in 999, re- ceived at one payment about £16,000, raised by a land-tax call- ed Danegelt. A general massacre of the Danes, on Nov. 13, 1002. Sweyn revenged his countrymen's deaths, 1003, and did not quit the kingdom till Ethelred had paid him £36,000, which he the year following demanded as an annual tribute. In the spring of 1008 they subdued great part of the kingdom. To stop their progress, it was agreed to pay the Danes £48,000, to quit the kingdom, 1012. In the space of twenty years they had £469,687 sterling. Soon after Sweyn entered the Hum- ber again, wken Ethelred retired to the Isle of Wight, and sent his sons, with their mother Emma, into Normandy, to her brother, and Sweyn took possession of the whole kingdom, 1013. APPENDIX. 481 SWEYN was proclaimed king of England in 1013, and no per- son disputed his title. His first act of sovereignty was an insup- portable tax, which he did not live to see collected. He died Feb. 3, 1014, at Thetford, in Norfolk. CANUTE, his son, was proclaimed March, 1014, and endea- voured to gain the affections of his English subjects, but without success, retired to Denmark, and ETHELRED returned, at the invitation of his subjects. Canute returned, 1015, soon after he had left England, and landed at Sandwich. Ethelred retired to tlie north, but by evading a battle with the Danes, he lost the affections of his subjects, and retiring to London, he expired April 24, 1016. (SDMUND IRONSIDE, his son, was crowned at Kingston- upon-Thames, April, 1016 ; but by a disagreement among the nobility, Canute was also crowned at Southampton. In June following, Canute totally routed Edmund, at Assendon, in Es- sex, who soon after met Canute in the Isle of Alderney, in the Severn, where a peace was concluded, and the kingdom divided between them. Edmund did not survive above a month after, being murdered at Oxford, Nov. 30, 1016, before he had reign- ed a year. He left two sons and two daughters ; from one ol which daughters James I. of England descended, and from him George IV. CANUTE was established 1017; made an alliance with Nor- mandy, and married Emma, Ethelred's widow, 1018; made a voyage to Denmark, attacked Norway, and took possession of the crown, 1028; died at Shaftsbury, 1036; and was buried at Winchester. HAROLD I. his son, began his reign, 1036; died April 14, 1039, and was succeeded by his younger brother, HARDICANUTE, king of Denmark, who died at Lambeth, 1041 ; was buried at New-Winchester, and succeeded by a son of Queen Emma, by her first husband, Ethelred II. EDWARD the Confessor was born at Islip, in Oxfordshire, be- fan his reign in the 40th year of his age. He was crowned at V^inchester, 1042; married Editha, daughter of Godwin, earl of Kent, 1043: remitted the tax of Danegelt, and was the first king of England that touched for the king's evil, 1058 ; die^ Jan. 5, 1066, aged 65 ; was buried in Westminster-abbey, which he rebuilt, where his bones were enshrined in gold, set with jewels 1206. Emma, his mother, died 1052. He was suc- ceeded by HAROLD II. son of the earl of Kent, who began in 1066; de- feated by his brother Tosti and the king of Norway, who had invaded his dominions, at Stamford, Sept. 25, 1066; but was killed by the Normans at Hastings, Oct. 14 following. 41 SOVEREIGNS FROM THE CONQUEST. Norman Family. Kin^* Names. Began their Reig'n. Reigned y. M. D. Age. Deaths. Where buried. W. Conq. W. RufuB Henry . . 1 Stephen 1066 Oct. 14 1087 Sept. 9 UOO Aup. 2 1135 Dec. 1 20 10 26 12 10 24 35 3 29 18 10 24 eo 43 67 49 Burst leap. Slain accidentally. Caen. VVinchester. Reading. Feversham. The Saxon Line restored. Henry . 2 1154 Oct. 25 34 8 U 55 Fontevrault. Richard . . 1 1189 July 6 9 9 43 Slain with an arrow. Fontevrault. John 1 199 April 6 17 6 13 50 Worcester. Henry . 3 1215 Oct. 19 55 28 65 Westminster Edward . . 1 1272 Nov. 16 34 7 21 67 Westminster £dward . . 2 1307 July " 19 6 IS 43 Deposed and mtir- Gloucester. Edward . . 3 1327 Jan. 25 50 4 27 65 dered. Weatmiristsr. Richard . . 2 1377 June 21 22 3 8 33 Dep. and mur. Westminster. Henry Henry Wenry The Family of Lancaster. 1393 Sept. 23| 1413 March 20 1422 Aug. 311 13 5 20 40 9 5 11 33 33 6 4 49 Dep. and mur. Canterbury. Westminster. Windsor. Edward Edward Richard The Family of York. I4G1 March 4 22 1 5 41 1 1483 April 9 2 13 12 1 1433 June 22 2 2 42 1 Smothered, jIn battle. The Families united. House of Stuart. House of Guelph. George George George George Windsor. Tower. Leicester* Henry . . 7 1485 Au?. 22 23 8 52 Westminster- Henry . ; 8 1509 April 22 37 9 6 55 Windsor. Edward . . 6 1547 Jan. 28 6 5 8 15 Westminster. Q. Mary *l>53July 6 5 4 11 42 Westminster. Q,. Elizabeth 1558 Nov. 17 44 4 7 69 1 Westminster. James ... I 1603 March 24 22 3 53 Westminster. Charles . . 1 1625 March 27 23 10 3 43 Beheaded. Windsor. Charles . . 2 1549 Jan. 30 36 7 54 Westminster. James . . • 2 1685 Feb. 6 4 7 67 Abdicated. Paris. Will, and Mary 1689 Feb. 13 13 23 32 Westminster. Q. Anne 1702 March 8 12 4 24 43 Westminster, i 1714 Aug. 1 12 10 10 67 2 n27 June 11 33 4 5 77 3 1760 Oct. 25 59 3 14 88 4 IS20 Jan. 31 Crowned July 19, 1S21. - - 1 HanoTer. Westininster. Windsor. - APPENDIX. 483 II. EMINENT AND REMARKABLE PERSONS WHO HAVE FLOURISHED IN BRITAIN. Abercrombt, sir Ralph, killed in Egypt, 1801. Addison, Joseph, born 1672, died June 17, 1719. Akenside, Dr. Mark, bom 1721, died June 23, 1770. Alban, St. the first English martyr, died 303. Anson, admiral, died 1/62, aged 62. Arkwright, sir Richard, inventor of the spinning jennies, died August 2, 1792. Arne, Michael, the musician, died 1785. Bacon, Roger, born 1214, died 1294. Francis, lord Verulam, sent to the tower, 1622 ; died, April 9, 1626, aged 57. Becket, Thomas, Chancellor to Henry II. 1157 ; made archbi- shop of Canterbury, 1162; murdered in the cathedral church at Canterbury, Dec. 29, 1170. Berkely, bishop of Cloyne, died 1753, aged 73. Bernard, sir John, died 1764, aged 80. Blackstone, Judge, born 1723, died Feb. 14, 1780. Blair, Dr. Hugh, died Dec. 27, 1800, aged 83. Blake, admiral, born 1589, died 1657. Bolingbroke, lord, died 1751, aged 73. Boulton, Matthew, the machinist, born 1728, died Sept. 1809. Boyle, Robert, the philosopher, died 1691, aged b'5. Bruce, Robert, Scottish general and king, died 1329. Buckingham, duke of, killed at Portsmouth by Felton, Aug. 23, 1628, aged 35. Bunyan, John, born 1628, died 1688. Burke, Edmund, died July 8, 1797, aged.68. Burleigh, lord Exeter, 1560, died 1598. Burnet, bishop of Sarum, born 1643, died 1715. Butler, Samuel, author of Hudibras, born 1612, died 1680. Camden, the historian, died Nov. 2, 1623, aged 72. Caxton, William, the first printer in England, 1474, died 1491, aged 70. Chaucer, Geoffry, born 1328, died 1409. Chicheley, Henry, archbishop of Canterbury, died 1443. Churchill, Rev. Charles, born 1731, died 1764. Clarendon, Hyde, earl of, born 1612 ; banished Dec. 12, 1667 ; died Dec. 7, 1674. Clarke, Rev. Dr. Samuel, born 1675, died May 17, 1729. Coke, lord chief justice, born 1549, died 1634. Corigreve, William, born 1752, died 1729. Cook, captain James, the navigator, bom Oct. 27, 1728 ; killed , Feb. 14, 1779. Cornwallis, marquis K. G. born 1738, died in India, 1805 Cowley, Abraham, born 1618, died 1667. 484 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. Cowper, William, poet, died 1800. Cranmer, archbishop of Canterbury, born 1489, burnt at Oxford, March 21, 1556. Cromwell, lord, beheaded July 28, 1540. Defoe, Daniel, political Avriter, died 1731. Drake, sir Francis, born 1545 ; set sail on his voyage round the world, 1577 ; died Jan. 28, 1595. Dry den, John, born August 9, 1613, died May 1, 1700. Evelyn, John, natural philosopher, born 1629, died 1706. Fairfax, sir Thomas, born 1644, died 1671. Fielding, Henry, English writer, born 1707, died 1754, aged 47. Flamstead, John, astronomer, born 1646, died 1719. Foote, Samuel, died Oct. 21, 1777, aged 56. Fox, George, founder of the Quakers, died 1681. Garrick, David, born at Hereford, 1716, died Jan. 20, 1779. Gay, John, English poet, died 1732. Gibbs, James, architect, died ]754. Glover, Richard, English writer, born 1712, died 1785. Goldsmith, Oliver, born 1731, died April 4, 1774. Gray, Thomas, the poet, born 1716, died July 30, 1771. Gresham, sir Thomas, died 1580. Hale, sir Matthew, born 1609, died Dec. 25, 1676. Hampden, John, born 1594, killed in battle, June 24, 1643. Holinshed, the historian, died 1580. Home, John, born 1724, died Sept. 4, 1808. Hotspur, Henry Percy, killed July 22, 1403. Howard, Mr., the philanthropist, born about 1725, died Jan. 20, 1790. Howe, lord viscount, slain in America, July 8, 1758, aged 34. Hume, David, philosopher and historian, born 1711, died Aug. 25, 1776. Hogarth, William, died 1765, aged 64. Johnson, Dr. Samuel, born Sept. 18, 1709, died Dec. 14, 1784, aged 78. Jones, Inigo, tne celebrated architect, born 1572, died 1651. , sir William, died in Bengal, April 27, 1797, aged 47. Knox, J ohn, the reformer, born 1505, died 1 572. Latimer, bishop of Worcester, burnt at Oxford, Oct. 1555. Leland, John, the antiquarian, died 1552, aged 45. Lowth, Dr. Robert, bishop of London, learned writer, died 1787. Lucius, the first christian king of Britain, reigned 11 years, founded the first church, in London, at St. Peter's Cornhill, 179. Lydgate, John, the historian, lived in 1440. Macklin, Mr. CKarles, the comedian, died July 11, 1797, aged 97. Maitland, William, the historian, died 1757. Mallet, David, dramatic author, died 1765. Marlborough, John, duke of, died June 16, 1722, aged 72. Marvel, Andrew, the patriot, born 1620, died 1678. Maskelyne, Neville, English astronomer, died 1772. APPENDIX. ^^5 Maskelyne, Rev. Nevil, astronomer royal, born Oct. 6, 1782, died Feb. 9, 1811. Monk, general, born 1608, died January 4, 1669-70. Monmouth, duke of, beheaded 1685, aged 35. Moore, sir John, killed in the battle of Corunna, Jan. 16, 1809. More, sir Thomas, born 1480, beheaded July 6, 1535, aged 55. Mozart, Wolfang Amadeus, musical composer, born Jan. 27, 1756, died Dec. 5, 1792. Murphy, Arthur, died June 18, 1805, aged 11. Nelson, admiral lord viscount, duke of Bronte, killed in battle in the glorious victory off Trafalgar, Oct. 21, 1805, buried at the public expense, in St. Paul's cathedral, Jan. 10, 1806. Newton, sir Isaac, born Dec. 25, 1642, died March 20, 1726—7. Northumberland, Dudley, beheaded for attempting to put lady Jane Grey on the English throne, 1553. Oldcastle, Sir John, hanged and burnt without Temple-bar, 1418; the first protestant martyr. Ormond, duke of, impeached June 21, 1715? retired to France August following ; died in France, and was buried May 22, 1749. Ossian flourished as a poet in 300. Palliser, sir Hugh, died March 19, 1796, aged 75. Paris, Matthew, the historian, died 1259. Partridge, John, the astrologer, born 1644, died 1715. Perceval, Spencer, prime minister of England, assassinated May 11, 1812. Pitt, William, earl of Chatham, died May 11, 1778, aged 70, and buried at the public expense in Westminster abbey, June 9, following. , William, son of the foregoing, and prime minister of Eng- land, died January 23, 1806. Plot, Dr. Robert, antiquarian and historical writer, bom 1641, died 1698. Pomfret, Rev. Mr. the poet, died young, 1709. Pope, Alexander, the poet, died 1744, aged 55. Pretender, the old, born June 10, 1688, died 1766. , the young, his son, born Nov. 31, 1720, died January 31, 1788, without male issue. Prior, Matthew, died Sept. 18, 1721, aged 56. Raleigh, sir Waltar, beheaded October 29, 1618, aged 65. Randolph, Thomas, English historian, born 1605, died 1634. Rapin, de Thoyras, English historian, died May 16, 1725, aged 64. Richardson, Samuel, moral writer, died 1761, aged 72. Russel, lord William, beheaded July 21, 1683. Reynolds, sir Joshua, died Feb. 24, 1792, aged 69. Sacheverel, Rev. Dr. silenced, March 23, 1710, died 1723. Sancroft, archbishop of Canterbury, born 1616; committed to the tower, tried and acquitted, 1688 ; deprived, 1689 ; died Nov 26, 1693, aged 11. Selden, John, born 1584, died Oct. 30, 1654. 41* 486 HISTORY OP ENGLAND. Shakspeare, born 1564, die-d April 3, 1616. Sharp, Granville, one of the first who set on foot the inquiry into the African slave trade, died April 3, 1616. Shenstone, William, English poet and miscellaneous writer, died 1763. Sheridan, Richard Brinsley, born Oct. 1751, died July 7, 1816. Shovel, sir Cloudesly, lost on the rocks of Scilly, Oct. 22, 17. by a charter granted the town by Henry HI. ; first used, 1280? diers, brewers, &c. in the reign of Edward I. began to use sea-coal for fire, in 1350, and he published a proclamation against it, 1398, as a public nuisance. Imported from New- castle to London in IdSO; in general use in London, 1400. Coffee first brought into England, in 1641. Coffee-trees were conveyed from Mocha to Holland in 1616 ; and carried to the West Indies in the year 1726; first cultiva- ted at Surinam by the Dutch, 1718 ; its culture encouraged in the plantations, 1732. Coin first made round in England, in 1101 ; silver halfpence and farthings were coined in the reign of John, and pence the largest current coin; gold first coined in England, 1087; Copper money used only in Scotland and Ireland, 1399 ; gold coined in England, 1345 ; groats anu half-groats the largesl silver coin in England, 1531; in 1347, a pound of silver was coined into 22 shillings, and in 1352, a pound was coined into 25 shillings ; in 1414 they were increased to thirty shillings ; and in 1500, a pound of silver was coined into 40 shillings. In 1530 they were extended to 62, whicli is the same now ; the money in Scotland, till now the same as in England, begari to be debased, 1354; gold first coined in Venice, 1346; shillings first coined in England, 1068; crowns and half-crowns first coined, 15.51 ; copper money introduced into France by Hep- ry HI. 1580 ; the first legal copper coin introduced, which put an end to private leaden tokens, universally practised, espe- cially in London, 1609; copper money introduced into Eng- land by James I. 1620; milling coin introduced, 1662; half- pence and farthings first coined by government, Aug. 16, 1672; guineas were first coined, 1673; silver coinage, 1696; broad pieces of gold called in by government, and coined into guineas, 1732; five-shillings and three-penny pieces in gold were issued in 1716 and 1761. Sovereigns were first coined in 1820. Cow-pox, inoculation by, as a security against small-pox, intro- duced by Dr. Jenner, 1800. Creed, Lord's prayer, and ten commandments, first translated into the Saxon tongue, 746. Currants first planted in England, 1533. Cider, called wine, made in England 1284. Distaff spinning first introduced into England, 1505. England, so named by Egbert, 829 ; first divided into counties, tithings, and hundreds, 890 ; the first geographical map of it 1520. Fairs and markets first instituted in England by Alfred about 886. The first fairs took their rise from wakes ; when the numbei of people then assembled brought together a variety of tra- ders annually on these days. From these holidays they were called Jen<^, or fairs. Fans, muffs, masks, and false hair, brought into England from France, 1572. Figures in arithmetic introduced into England, in 1454. APPENDIX. 403 Fniitg and flowers, sundry sorts before unknown, brought into England in the reigns of Henry VII. and Vlll. from about 1500 to 1578, as the musk and damask roses, and tuhps; seve- ral sorts of plum-trees and currant-plants. Gardening introduced into England from the Netherlands, from whence vegetables were imported, till 1509; musk melons and apricots cultivated in England; the pale gooseberry, with salads, garden-roots, cabbages, &c. brought from Flanders, and hops from Artois, 1520 ; the damask rose brought here by Dr. Linacre, physician to Henry VIlI. ; pippins brought to England by Leonard Mascal, of rlumstead, in Sussex, 1525; currants, or Corinthian grapes, first planted in England, 1555, brought from the Isle of Zant, belonging to Venice ; the musk- rose, and several sorts of plums, from Italy, by lord Crom- well ; apricots brought here by Henry VlII's gardener ; tu- matisk plant from Germany, by archbishop Grindal ; at and about Norwich the Flemings first planted flowers unknown in England, as gilly flowers, carnations, the Provence rose, &c. 1.5^7 ; woad, originally from Thoulouse, in France ; tulip roots first brought into England, from V^ienna. 1578; also beans, peas, and salads, now m common use, 1660. Gas, use of, introduced in London, for lighting streets, 1814. Glass introduced into England by Benedict, a monk, 674 ; glass- windows began to be used in private houses in England, 1180 ; glass first made in England into bottles and vessels, 1557 ; the first plate glass for looking-glasses and coach windows made at Lambeth, 1673 ; in Lancashire, 1773 ; window-glass first made in England, 1557. Grapes brought to England, and planted first in 1552. Gunpowder first made in England, 1418. Hats first made in London, 1510. Hemp and flax first planted in England, 1533. Heraldry had its rise, 1100. Hops, first used in malt liquors in England, 1525. Horse-shoes introduced into general use in 800; first mado of iron, 481. inouulation first tried on criminals,' 1721. Iron first cast in England, 1544. Knives first made in England, 1563. Lamp for preventing explosion by fire-damp in coal-mines, in- vented in 1815. Lanterns invented by king Alfred, 890. Leaden pipes for conveying water invented, 1236. Life-boats invented, 1802. Linen first made in England, 1253. Table linen very scaroc) in England, 1386. ^ Lithograpnic printing orougnt into England, 1801. Magic lantern invented by Roger Bacon, 1252. Magnifying glasses invented by Roger Bacon, 1260. Mulberry trees first planted in England, 16tf*). Muslins first manufactured in England, in 178J. Navigable canal, the first in England, 1104. 42 494 IIISTOR\ ur ENGI.AND. Navy of England, at the time of the Spanish Armada, was only 28 vessels, none larger man frigates. James 1. increased 10 ships of 1400 tons, of 64 guns, the largest then ever built. The list of the royal navy of England was, in the years 1808 and 1817. King's ships in ordinary - 176 370 in commission ----- 627 124 building at different places - - 66 36 Total, 869 530 Needles first made in England, 1545. Newspapers. — First puoiisael i^i England, by order of queen Elizabeth, and was entitled the English Mercury, one of which is remaining in the l^ritish Museum, dated July 28, 1588. A private newspaper, called the Weekly Courant, was printed in London, in 1622. A newspaper was printed by Robert Barker, at Newcastle, in 1639. The Gazette was first published at Oxford, Aug. 22, 1642. After the revolution, the first daily paper was called the Orange Intelligencer, and from that to 1662, there were 26 newspapers, tn 1709, there were 18 weekly and one daily paper, the London Courant. in 1795, there were 38 published in London, 72 in the country, 13 in Scotland, and ^5 in Ireland; in all, 158 papers. In 1809, there were 63 published in London, 93 in the country, 24 in Scotland, and 3/ in Ireland; making a total of 217 news- papers in the United Kingdom. New-style introduced into England, 1752. Paper, the manufacture of, introduced into England at Dartford, in Kent, 1588 ; scarcely any but brown paper made in England till 1690 ; white paper first made in England, 1690. Parish registers first introduced by lord Cromwell's order, 1538. Park, the first in England, made by Henry I. at Woodstock, 1123. Penny-post set up in London and suburbs, by one Murray, an upholsterer, 1681. Pins were first used in England by Catharine Howard, queen of Henry VHI. Port-holes in ships of war introduced, 1545. Posts, regular, established between London and most towns of England, Scotland, Ireland, &c. 1635. Post-horses and stages established, 1483. Post-offices first established in England, 1581 ; and made general in England, 1656; and, m Scotland, 1695. Increased as fol- lows : 1644 it yielded l^ fx^ , " o * ^